Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n find_v king_n write_v 2,645 5 5.5654 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54580 The happy future state of England, or, A discourse by way of a letter to the late Earl of Anglesey vindicating him from the reflections of an affidavit published by the House of Commons, ao. 1680, by occasion whereof observations are made concerning infamous witnesses : the said discourse likewise contains various political remarks and calculations referring to many parts of Christendom, with observations of the number of the people of England, and of its growth in populousness and trade, the vanity of the late fears and jealousies being shewn, the author doth on the grounds of nature predict the happy future state of the realm : at the end of the discourse there is a casuistical discussion of the obligation to the king, his heirs and successors, wherein many of the moral offices of absolution and unconditional loyalty are asserted : before the discourse is a large preface, giving an account of the whole work, with an index of the principal matters : also, The obligation resulting from the Oath of supremacy to assist and defend the preheminence or prerogative of the dispensative power belonging to the king ... Pett, Peter, Sir, 1630-1699. 1688 (1688) Wing P1883; ESTC R35105 603,568 476

There are 56 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

guymenius_n short_o after_o in_o that_o year_n appear_v in_o print_n as_o a_o champion_n for_o the_o principle_n so_o damn_v the_o college_n of_o sorbon_n short_o after_o that_o damn_a the_o work_n of_o guymenius_n in_o the_o 11_o of_o may_v the_o same_o year_n and_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o june_n so_o short_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o year_n the_o same_o pope_n alexander_n the_o seven_o damn_v that_o very_a sorbon_n censure_n of_o guymenius_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o great_a scene_n of_o virtue_n appear_v in_o this_o pope_n say_a decree_n may_v with_o a_o short_a turn_n of_o apostolical_a power_n receive_v too_o the_o fate_n of_o pageantry_n and_o present_o disappear_v and_o that_o the_o great_a mountain_n which_o his_o faith_n have_v remove_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sea_n may_v in_o little_a more_o than_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n return_v to_o its_o old_a place_n but_o in_o answer_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v do_v that_o right_n to_o the_o papacy_n to_o clear_v the_o mistake_n in_o the_o objection_n and_o inform_v the_o reader_n that_o though_o alexander_n the_o seven_o do_v exit_fw-la cathedra_fw-la damn_v that_o sorbon-censure_n as_o aforesaid_a yet_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o condemnatory_a bull_n itself_o that_o what_o that_o pope_n there_o do_v be_v not_o out_o of_o favour_n to_o guymenius_n or_o the_o jesuit_n themselves_o or_o their_o tenet_n and_o that_o to_o satisfy_v the_o world_n in_o that_o point_n he_o there_o give_v the_o reason_n for_o his_o damn_v the_o sorbonist_n censure_n namely_o because_o it_o intermedle_v in_o censure_v some_o other_o proposition_n or_o principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n that_o concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n the_o office_n of_o the_o parish_n priest_n and_o the_o privilege_n grant_v by_o pope_n and_o but_o for_o the_o sorbons_n complicate_v which_o with_o their_o censure_n of_o the_o other_o scandalous_a principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n no_o doubt_v but_o the_o sorbon_n censure_n have_v stand_v as_o a_o rock_n unshaken_a let_v therefore_o such_o who_o fear_v every_o thing_n fear_v that_o this_o great_a pope_n will_v after_o his_o say_a condemnatory_n decree_n appear_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o self-condemned_n while_o i_o observe_v it_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o justice_n that_o he_o make_v that_o decree_n and_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o prudence_n that_o before_o nature_n have_v cause_v the_o detestable_a principle_n therein_o censure_v silent_o to_o evaporate_v he_o give_v the_o world_n this_o loud_a warm_n of_o they_o as_o it_o likewise_o may_v be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o that_o great_a seminary_n of_o the_o divine_n of_o our_o church_n of_o england_n our_o university_n of_o oxford_n observe_v that_o before_o the_o seditious_a principle_n and_o tenet_n of_o jesuit_n and_o some_o dissenter_n come_v to_o be_v natural_o exterminate_v out_o of_o the_o english_a world_n by_o fear_n and_o shame_n they_o notify_v they_o to_o this_o age_n and_o to_o posterity_n there_o be_v no_o subject_a that_o have_v since_o the_o year_n 1641_o more_o employ_v the_o english_a press_n than_o that_o of_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n pro_fw-la and_o con_v and_o the_o fierce_a and_o sharp_a of_o the_o write_n concern_v it_o be_v what_o pass_v between_o the_o independent_o and_o presbyterian_o on_o the_o occasion_n of_o presbytery_n great_a effort_n to_o make_v the_o english_a nation_n by_o one_o short_a general_n turn_v proselyte_v to_o its_o model_n and_o when_o it_o push_v for_o the_o auspicious_a fate_n of_o former_a great_a religionary_a conversion_n happen_v as_o it_o be_v simul_fw-la and_o semel_fw-la and_o when_o nation_n seem_v to_o be_v like_o the_o hyena_n which_o have_v but_o one_o backbone_n can_v turn_v except_o it_o turn_v all_o at_o once_o but_o the_o independent_o observe_v the_o kingdom_n and_o presbytery_n frown_v on_o one_o another_o think_v they_o can_v do_v nothing_o more_o popular_a than_o to_o take_v the_o argument_n they_o find_v in_o the_o many_o pamphlet_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o lie_v on_o every_o stall_n for_o toleration_n under_o the_o old_a hierarchy_n and_o turn_v they_o upon_o presbytery_n and_o every_o one_o then_o who_o have_v fear_n and_o jealousy_n of_o the_o arbitrariness_n of_o presbytery_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o well_o wisher_n to_o those_o book_n for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n and_o the_o destroy_n of_o the_o credit_n of_o presbytery_n by_o book_n that_o have_v so_o much_o contentious_a fire_n in_o they_o be_v real_o a_o acceptable_a sweet-smelling_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o nation_n and_o after_o the_o king_n restoration_n though_o some_o few_o book_n be_v write_v of_o that_o subject_a and_o with_o much_o more_o candour_n than_o the_o other_o yet_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o king_n be_v ecclesiastical_a law_n be_v so_o easy_a to_o the_o people_n as_o that_o the_o write_n of_o book_n against_o it_o be_v not_o encourage_v by_o popular_a applause_n the_o king_n declaration_n of_o indulgence_n afterward_o appear_v and_o as_o not_o gain_v by_o dint_n of_o pen_n but_o ex_fw-la mero_fw-la motu_fw-la be_v applaud_v by_o some_o few_o particular_a writer_n among_o the_o popish_a and_o protestant_n recusant_n discourse_v in_o print_n at_o their_o ease_n of_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n but_o as_o if_o nature_n mean_v that_o book_n of_o that_o subject_n shall_v no_o more_o here_o divert_v the_o curious_a world_n the_o empire_n toleration_n have_v thereby_o gain_v do_v present_o labour_v under_o its_o own_o weight_n and_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v jealous_a of_o that_o declaration_n prove_v a_o precedent_n of_o the_o prerogative_n suspend_v act_n of_o parliament_n in_o general_n and_o suspect_v that_o the_o popish_a recusant_n will_v have_v the_o better_a of_o that_o game_n as_o suppose_v to_o have_v many_o great_a court-card_n here_o and_o abroad_o in_o the_o world_n and_o likely_a to_o have_v more_o while_o the_o protestant_a recusant_n have_v not_o so_o good_a in_o their_o hand_n though_o yet_o they_o have_v here_o what_o amount_v to_o the_o point_n in_o picquet_n i_o mean_v the_o advantage_n of_o their_o number_n do_v present_o thereupon_o cause_v all_o the_o card_n to_o be_v throw_v up_o but_o first_o have_v in_o concert_n with_o the_o dealer_n provide_v for_o the_o pack_v they_o to_o their_o own_o advantage_n in_o a_o new_a deal_n in_o plain_a english_a some_o loyal_a person_n and_o firm_a adherent_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o think_v that_o declaration_n illegal_a and_o whether_o just_o or_o no_o i_o here_o presume_v not_o in_o the_o least_o to_o question_v endeavour_v tanquam_fw-la pro_fw-la aris_fw-la &_o focis_fw-la to_o get_v that_o declaration_n cancel_v and_o know_v they_o can_v not_o effect_v the_o same_o without_o the_o help_n of_o the_o dissenter_n party_n in_o parliament_n engage_v their_o help_n therein_o by_o give_v they_o hope_n to_o carry_v a_o act_n of_o parliament_n for_o their_o indulgence_n but_o what_o a_o little_a foresight_n will_v have_v make_v appear_v to_o they_o impossible_a to_o be_v gain_v for_o many_o consideration_n too_o obvious_a to_o be_v name_v and_o the_o natural_a result_n of_o this_o fact_n which_o be_v on_o all_o hand_n confess_o true_a can_v but_o be_v the_o make_n of_o the_o former_a fashion_n of_o polemical_a writing_n for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n to_o pass_v away_o we_o have_v since_o see_v some_o few_o florid_n sheet_n publish_v by_o some_o of_o the_o dissent_v clergy_n on_o that_o subject_a but_o they_o have_v make_v no_o other_o figure_n then_o that_o of_o the_o poor_a resemblance_n of_o flower_n extract_v by_o chemical_a art_n out_o of_o their_o ash_n and_o any_o little_a shake_v they_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o time_n must_v make_v they_o present_o fall_v in_o piece_n i_o have_v in_o this_o discourse_n express_o own_v my_o have_a no_o regret_n against_o any_o due_a or_o legal_a relaxation_n of_o the_o penal_a law_n against_o recusant_n but_o what_o any_o due_a or_o legal_a way_n may_v be_v therein_o i_o inquire_v not_o the_o power_n of_o the_o king_n in_o dispense_n with_o the_o penalty_n in_o case_n of_o particular_a person_n be_v not_o that_o i_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o least_o controvert_v in_o the_o debate_n of_o the_o commons_o about_o that_o declaration_n and_o fuller_n in_o his_o church_n history_n relate_v that_o when_o bishop_n williams_n be_v lord-keeper_n there_o be_v a_o toleration_n grant_v under_o the_o great_a seal_n to_o mr._n john_n cotton_n a_o famous_a independent_a divine_a for_o the_o free_a exercise_n of_o his_o ministry_n notwithstanding_o his_o dissent_v in_o ceremony_n so_o long_o as_o do_v without_o disturbance_n to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o which_o particular_a indulgence_n i_o suppose_v none_o in_o that_o age_n controvert_v as_o i_o think_v none_o will_v any_o thing_n of_o that_o kind_n in_o this_o
as_o i_o find_v he_o cite_v by_o dr._n donne_n in_o his_o forementioned_a book_n p._n 135._o he_o quote_v there_o mariana_n de_fw-fr rege_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 7._o for_o caution_v against_o a_o king_n be_v a_o self-homicide_n by_o drink_v poison_n prepare_v and_o minister_v by_o another_o he_o be_v ignorant_a for_o after_o he_o conclude_v how_o a_o heretical_a king_n may_v be_v poison_v he_o be_v diligent_a in_o this_o prescription_n that_o a_o king_n be_v not_o constrain_v to_o take_v the_o poison_n himself_o but_o that_o some_o other_o may_v administer_v it_o to_o he_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v prepare_v and_o convey_v in_o some_o other_o way_n than_o meat_n and_o drink_n because_o else_o say_v he_o either_o willing_o or_o ignorant_o he_o shall_v kill_v himself_o so_o that_o he_o provide_v that_o the_o king_n who_o must_v die_v under_o the_o sin_n of_o tyranny_n and_o heresy_n must_v yet_o be_v defend_v from_o concur_v to_o his_o own_o death_n though_o ignorant_o as_o though_o this_o be_v a_o great_a sin._n be_v not_o this_o pleasant_a to_o see_v any_o of_o they_o catch_v of_o king_n in_o a_o theological_a mousetrap_n and_o play_v with_o they_o like_o mouse_n before_o they_o devour_v they_o to_o see_v they_o sweeten_v a_o cup_n of_o poison_n for_o a_o king_n with_o their_o damn_a church_n sophistry_n and_o to_o shame_n man_n as_o liquorish_a fly_n to_o be_v swallow_v up_o in_o the_o cup_n i_o wish_v that_o some_o of_o the_o most_o considerable_a of_o the_o grandee_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v answer_v this_o accusation_n of_o their_o sham_n otherwise_o than_o by_o commit_v it_o the_o novo_fw-la for_o if_o they_o say_v that_o some_o of_o their_o doctor_n write_v against_o this_o and_o other_o crime_n as_o well_o as_o some_o for_o they_o as_o particular_o some_o write_v against_o the_o use_n of_o equivocation_n and_o as_o father_n parson_n the_o jesuit_n write_v against_o king_n james_n succession_n another_o english_a jesuit_n namely_o creswel_o write_v for_o it_o and_o so_o that_o when_o some_o of_o their_o doctor_n break_v the_o church_n head_n other_o present_o give_v it_o plaster_n be_v not_o this_o a_o fearful_a shall_v i_o say_v or_o contemptible_a shame_n do_v we_o not_o know_v that_o the_o discipline_n of_o their_o church_n be_v as_o exact_a as_o any_o military_a discipline_n can_v be_v by_o which_o alone_o it_o have_v preserve_v itself_o so_o long_o in_o be_v and_o that_o none_o among_o they_o can_v publish_v book_n without_o pass_v several_a court_n of_o guard_n of_o superior_n nor_o contradict_v one_o another_o in_o rule_n of_o practice_n more_o than_o trumpeter_n of_o a_o army_n dare_v sound_v a_o charge_n or_o a_o retreat_n but_o when_o command_v to_o it_o and_o what_o a_o face_n of_o something_o like_o shame_n the_o present_a pope_n declaration_n about_o some_o opinion_n of_o the_o casuist_n carry_v with_o it_o i_o have_v already_o mention_v and_o do_v not_o every_o one_o know_v their_o avow_a doctrine_n the_o opinion_n probabili_fw-la namely_o that_o though_o a_o opinion_n be_v false_a a_o man_n may_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n follow_v it_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o teacher_n and_o that_o a_o confessor_n be_v bind_v to_o absolve_v the_o penitent_a when_o there_o be_v but_o one_o opinion_n for_o his_o be_v absolve_v though_o he_o believe_v that_o opinion_n not_o only_o improbable_a as_o to_o the_o principia_fw-la intrinseca_fw-la but_o false_a in_o sum_n according_a to_o the_o old_a observation_n of_o popery_n prevail_v by_o have_v that_o in_o it_o which_o may_v fit_v the_o temper_n and_o humour_n of_o every_o individual_a person_n and_o to_o be_v like_o manna_n answer_v every_o man_n taste_n whether_o he_o have_v a_o gusto_n for_o miracle_n or_o even_o for_o starve_v or_o abstinence_n for_o business_n or_o retirement_n for_o life_n or_o for_o death_n for_o honour_n or_o for_o beg_v it_o may_v to_o these_o be_v add_v that_o if_o any_o one_o affect_v to_o be_v a_o ruffian_n or_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n sheriff_n as_o aforesaid_a there_o be_v a_o most_o ample_a field_n in_o the_o kill_n of_o king_n fire_v of_o town_n massacre_a their_o inhabitant_n for_o the_o talon_n of_o such_o a_o pavure_fw-fr diable_fw-fr and_o indeed_o incarnate_a one_o to_o expatiate_v in_o and_o if_o any_o account_n it_o a_o luscious_a thing_n to_o be_v cheat_v or_o to_o be_v shammed_a as_o some_o few_o or_o to_o cheat_v or_o shame_n as_o many_o think_v it_o behold_v a_o religion_n make_v for_o the_o nonce_n in_o that_o point_n too_o but_o while_o they_o be_v thus_o play_v with_o all_o thing_n sacred_a and_o profane_a he_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o heaven_n have_v they_o in_o derision_n and_o leave_v not_o the_o protestant_n to_o fall_v final_o as_o a_o portion_n to_o fox_n such_o who_o turn_v tail_n to_o tail_n carry_v firebrand_n between_o they_o and_o their_o shamme_n do_v only_o enter_v on_o the_o stage_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v instant_o hiss_v off_o my_o lord_n i_o have_v not_o be_v rash_a in_o censure_v either_o the_o principle_n or_o practice_n of_o some_o roman_a catholic_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o particular_o i_o well_o know_v that_o even_o the_o most_o ingenious_a of_o our_o english_a papist_n can_v now_o in_o this_o conjuncture_n endure_v to_o hear_v of_o father_n parson_n his_o book_n write_v by_o he_o to_o invalidate_v the_o right_n of_o king_n james_n to_o succeed_v queen_n elizabeth_n principal_o because_o he_o be_v as_o father_n parson_n thought_n a_o heretic_n a_o very_a great_a man_n that_o jesuite_n be_v and_o so_o considerable_a that_o one_o of_o our_o eminent_a divine_n in_o his_o sermon_n in_o print_n give_v he_o this_o character_n that_o he_o be_v perhaps_o one_o of_o the_o great_a man_n that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n have_v produce_v and_o methinks_v it_o be_v pity_n he_o shall_v play_v at_o such_o small_a game_n of_o shame_n when_o he_o publish_v that_o book_n as_o to_o entitle_v it_o to_o doleman_n a_o honest_a secular_a priest_n who_o parson_n hate_v and_o to_o make_v he_o odious_a lay_v the_o brat_n at_o his_o door_n moreover_o a_o kind_n of_o inglorious_a shame_n it_o be_v that_o creswel_o who_o be_v parson_n his_o fellow_n jesuite_n write_v as_o i_o say_v at_o the_o same_o time_n for_o king_n james_n his_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n not_o out_o of_o any_o desire_n he_o shall_v enjoy_v that_o right_n but_o that_o on_o all_o event_n they_o may_v have_v something_o to_o say_v in_o apology_n for_o their_o society_n and_o bring_v grist_n to_o its_o mill_n for_o if_o king_n james_n have_v not_o come_v to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n the_o honour_n of_o hinder_v his_o succession_n have_v be_v attribute_v to_o parson_n and_o creswel_o the_o jesuit_n expect_v the_o credit_n for_o his_o writing_n on_o the_o event_n fall_v as_o it_o do_v thus_o i_o remember_v to_o have_v hear_v a_o passage_n of_o two_o astrologer_n who_o on_o the_o day_n before_o the_o former_a great_a prince_n of_o parma_n be_v to_o throw_v the_o die_n of_o war_n agree_v together_o to_o predict_v luck_n to_o he_o perfect_o contrary_a to_o one_o another_o that_o so_o they_o may_v save_v the_o credit_n of_o their_o art_n by_o one_o of_o the_o artist_n be_v in_o the_o right_n the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n call_v the_o catholic_n apology_n with_o a_o reply_n &c._n &c._n and_o which_o book_n i_o think_v the_o author_n of_o the_o compendium_n mention_n as_o one_o of_o the_o book_n write_v by_o the_o roman_a catholic_n of_o england_n since_o the_o king_n restoration_n say_v p._n 366._o speak_v of_o dolemans_n book_n for_o dolemans_n book_n who_o write_v it_o god_n know_v parson_n deny_v it_o at_o his_o death_n and_o i_o believe_v he_o be_v not_o the_o author_n because_o in_o several_a of_o his_o work_n he_o speak_v very_o much_o to_o the_o advantage_n of_o king_n james._n but_o as_o to_o father_n parson_n have_v in_o that_o conjuncture_n be_v of_o the_o spanish_a faction_n and_o have_v apply_v his_o whole_a soul_n and_o strength_n to_o hinder_v king_n james_n succession_n and_o his_o have_v write_v that_o book_n the_o great_a forementioned_a cardinal_n namely_o d'ossat_fw-la who_o in_o several_a of_o his_o print_a letter_n give_v the_o world_n a_o more_o satisfactory_a and_o particular_a scheme_n of_o the_o whole_a design_n to_o hinder_v that_o king_n succession_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n than_o i_o know_v any_o or_o all_o else_o to_o have_v do_v say_v among_o his_o letter_n print_v in_o folio_n at_o paris_n 1664._o in_o that_o in_o book_n seven_o anno_fw-la 1601._o a_o letter_n to_o the_o king_n letter_z 131._o what_o may_v be_v thus_o render_v in_o english_a viz._n it_o may_v please_v your_o majesty_n to_o remember_v that_o since_o the_o year_n 1594._o there_o be_v a_o book_n print_v in_o
part_n of_o its_o patrimony_n queen_n elizabeth_n alienate_v to_o secure_v the_o protestant_a religion_n ib._n the_o fear_n of_o popery_n further_o censure_v p._n 198._o ridly_n and_o latimer_n prophesy_v at_o the_o stake_n that_o protestancy_n will_v never_o be_v extinguish_v in_o england_n p._n 198._o roger_n holland_n prophesy_v at_o the_o stake_n at_o smithfield_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o last_o that_o shall_v there_o suffer_v martyrdom_n ib._n observation_n on_o the_o natural_a prophesy_v of_o die_a man_n and_o its_o effect_n p._n 199._o the_o vanity_n of_o man_n trouble_v the_o world_n by_o supposition_n ib._n and_o p._n 200._o it_o be_v a_o degree_n of_o madness_n to_o trouble_v it_o by_o put_v wanton_a impossible_a case_n p._n 200._o the_o author_n without_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o prophecy_n and_o only_o by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n presage_v that_o the_o excessive_a fear_n of_o popery_n as_o we●l_v as_o its_o danger_n will_v here_o be_v exterminate_v ib._n the_o justice_n of_o the_o claim_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o first_o to_o the_o title_n of_o martyr_n assert_v p._n 201_o 202_o 203._o the_o author_n judge_v that_o some_o vile_a nominal_a protestant_n by_o the_o publication_n of_o many_o seditious_a pamphlet_n have_v give_v the_o government_n a_o just_a alarm_n of_o their_o design_n against_o it_o p._n 203._o of_o papist_n and_o protestant_n be_v antagonist_n in_o shamm_n p._n 204._o mr._n nye_n cite_v for_o represent_v the_o dissenter_n act_v by_o the_o jesuit_n in_o think_v it_o unlawful_a to_o hear_v the_o sermon_n of_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 204._o false_a witness_n among_o the_o jew_n allow_v against_o false_a prophet_n p._n 205._o the_o earl_n of_o anglesy_n courage_n and_o justice_n assert_v in_o the_o profess_v in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n his_o disbelief_n of_o such_o a_o irish_a plot_n as_o be_v swear_v by_o the_o witness_n though_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o reality_n of_o such_o a_o plot_n have_v obtain_v the_o vote_n of_o every_o one_o else_o in_o both_o house_n ib._n above_o 2000_o irish_a papist_n in_o the_o barony_n of_o enishoan_n demean_v themselves_o civil_o to_o the_o english_a during_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o rebellion_n ib._n several_a eminent_a ingenious_a papist_n in_o england_n and_o foreign_a part_n celebrate_v for_o their_o avow_a candour_n to_o protestant_n p._n 206_o 207_o 208_o etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr ossat_n acquaint_v the_o pope_n that_o if_o his_o holiness_n be_v king_n of_o france_n he_o will_v show_v the_o same_o kindness_n to_o the_o huguenot_n that_o harry_n the_o four_o do_v p._n 208._o cromwell_n be_v necessitate_v to_o keep_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n divide_v be_v likewise_o necessitate_v to_o keep_v up_o all_o religion_n according_a to_o the_o politic_n of_o julian_n p._n 211._o of_o the_o papist_n call_v king_n james_n julian_n ib._n the_o author_n inveigh_v against_o the_o calumny_n of_o any_o protestant_n who_o call_n any_o one_o apostate_n for_o the_o alteration_n of_o his_o judgement_n in_o some_o controvertible_a point_n of_o faith_n between_o papist_n and_o protestant_n ib._n the_o author_n reason_n why_o it_o be_v foolish_a to_o fear_v that_o any_o rightful_a prince_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n persuasion_n that_o can_v come_v here_o will_v follow_v the_o politic_n of_o julian_n ib._n it_o be_v show_v that_o any_o protestant_a usurper_n here_o must_v act_v à_fw-fr la_fw-fr julian_n ib._n the_o usurper_n cromwell_n show_v to_o be_v a_o fautor_n of_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n by_o the_o attestation_n of_o mr._n prynn_n and_o the_o lord_n hollis_n p._n 212_o 213._o the_o danger_n of_o popery_n that_o will_v have_v ensue_v lambert_n usurpation_n p._n 213_o 214._o how_o true_a soever_o any_o usurper_n religion_n be_v he_o must_v be_v false_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n p._n 214._o observe_v that_o the_o king_n long_a parliament_n by_o the_o act_n for_o the_o test_n do_v enjoin_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n to_o be_v take_v ib._n those_o oath_n lay_v on_o the_o taker_n a_o obligation_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n without_o any_o distinction_n of_o the_o religion_n true_a or_o pretend_a of_o such_o heir_n and_o successor_n ib._n mr._n prynn_n book_n call_v concordia_n discor_n print_v anno_fw-la 1659._o to_o prove_v the_o obligation_n by_o those_o o●hs_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n commend_v ib._n the_o author_n mention_n the_o reason_n that_o induce_v he_o to_o write_v casuistical_o concern_v such_o obligation_n and_o promise_v to_o send_v that_o his_o write_n to_o his_o lordship_n ib._n the_o author_n judge_v that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v severe_a to_o any_o papist_n before_o he_o have_v a_o moral_a certainty_n of_o such_o papist_n have_v imbibe_v any_o of_o the_o principle_n imputable_a to_o p●pery_n that_o be_v unmoral_a or_o inhuman_a ib._n the_o author_n observe_v that_o few_o or_o no_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v late_o think_v fit_a by_o their_o pen_n to_o assert_v the_o inheritable_a right_n of_o prince_n without_o respect_n to_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n they_o may_v hold_v p._n 215._o the_o author_n think_v that_o for_o a_o protestant_n at_o this_o time_n to_o write_v for_o the_o divest_v any_o roman_a catholic_n prince_n of_o his_o property_n and_o right_n of_o succession_n when_o few_o or_o no_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n either_o do_v or_o dare_v for_o fear_v of_o offend_v the_o pope_n employ_v their_o pen_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o such_o his_o property_n and_o right_n without_o respect_n to_o to_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n he_o may_v hold_v be_v like_o draw_v against_o a_o naked_a man_n ib._n de_fw-fr ossat_n affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o whole_a court_n of_o rome_n hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o deprive_v a_o prince_n of_o any_o country_n to_o preserve_v it_o from_o heresy_n ib._n a_o animadversion_n on_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n concern_v the_o succession_n ib._n reflection_n on_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o proceed_n in_o the_o exclusion_n bill_n ib._n and_o p._n 216._o the_o author_n give_v a_o explanatory_a account_n of_o the_o tempus_fw-la acceptabile_fw-la he_o in_o p._n 25_o mention_n p._n 216._o his_o majesty_n constant_a contend_v for_o the_o protestant_a faith_n celebrate_v and_o likewise_o his_o justice_n in_o preserve_v the_o property_n of_o the_o succession_n in_o the_o legal_a course_n by_o all_o his_o message_n to_o the_o parliament_n p._n 217._o the_o unhappy_a state_n of_o that_o prince_n who_o shall_v for_o fear_n of_o the_o populace_n do_v any_o act_n of_o the_o justice_n whereof_o he_o doubt_v and_o much_o more_o of_o the_o injustice_n whereof_o he_o be_v full_o convince_v p._n 217._o at_o large_a the_o caution_n to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n apply_v to_o such_o a_o prince_n viz._n hold_v fast_o that_o which_o thou_o have_v that_o no_o man_n take_v away_o thy_o crown_n ib._n at_o large_a it_o be_v not_o only_a popery_n but_o atheism_n in_o masquerade_n to_o do_v a_o unjust_a act_n to_o support_v religion_n p._n 218._o king_n james_n disavow_v the_o act_n of_o his_o son-in_a law_n accept_v the_o title_n of_o king_n of_o bohemia_n ib._n a_o observation_n that_o in_o the_o common-prayer_n in_o king_n charles_n the_o 1_o st_n time_n relate_v to_o the_o royal_a family_n the_o prayer_n run_v for_o frederick_n prince_n palat●ine_a elector_n of_o the_o rhine_n and_o the_o lady_n elizabeth_n his_o wife_n ib._n the_o author_n observe_v that_o in_o the_o assembly_n directory_n the_o lady_n elizabeth_n be_v style_v queen_n of_o bohemia_n p._n 219._o a_o account_n of_o the_o government_n avow_v sense_n in_o king_n james_n time_n that_o any_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o england_n ought_v not_o by_o become_v roman_n catholic_n to_o be_v prejudice_v in_o their_o right_n of_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n ib._n the_o same_o sense_n of_o the_o government_n in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o 1_o sy_n ib._n the_o parliament_n during_o the_o civil_a war_n project_v not_o any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o right_n of_o succession_n on_o the_o account_n of_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n p._n 220._o mention_v of_o somewhat_o more_o to_o confirm_v the_o claim_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o 1_o sy_n to_o the_o title_n of_o martyr_n beside_o his_o adhesion_n to_o episcopacy_n and_o its_o revenue_n ib._n a_o account_n of_o the_o protestation_n of_o the_o nonconform_a minister_n in_o the_o year_n 1605_o relate_v to_o the_o king_n supremacy_n wherein_o they_o assert_v the_o royal_a authority_n inseparable_o fix_v to_o the_o true_a line_n whatever_o religion_n any_o prince_n thereof_o may_v profess_v p._n 221._o the_o author_n pe●stringeth_v the_o protestant_n will_v be_v his_o and_o new_a statist_n of_o the_o age_n that_o will_v for_o religionary_a tenet_n bar_v any_o of_o the_o
business_n of_o england_n and_o in_o case_n of_o a_o prohibition_n to_o any_o man_n little_a court_n of_o conscience_n in_o that_o cause_n he_o will_v certain_o give_v himself_o a_o consultation_n the_o very_a humour_n of_o the_o english_a nation_n long_o have_v and_o still_o do_v run_v against_o what_o they_o think_v but_o like_o popery_n or_o make_v for_o it_o and_o that_o with_o such_o a_o rapid_a current_n of_o antipathy_n as_o be_v never_o likely_a to_o be_v stem_v and_o nothing_o be_v more_o out_o of_o fashion_n then_o a_o kind_n of_o sir-positive_a or_o dictatorian_a humour_n in_o common_a discourse_n much_o less_o than_o will_v a_o dogmatical_a pope_n infallibility_n ever_o be_v digest_v here_o while_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o st._n positive_a the_o gentile_a humour_n of_o the_o age_n here_o that_o abhor_v hard_a word_n as_o loathsome_a pedantry_n will_v never_o be_v reconcile_v to_o one_o certain_a long_a hard_a word_n in_o popery_n namely_o transubstantiation_n nor_o to_o another_o namely_o incineration_n or_o burn_a man_n for_o not_o understand_v the_o former_a word_n according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o the_o historian_n imperator_fw-la aegrè_fw-la tulit_fw-la incinerationem_fw-la johannis_n husse_n and_o people_n will_v account_v their_o protestant_a bible_n more_o agreeable_a to_o they_o then_o the_o english_a one_o publish_v by_o the_o college_n of_o douai_n where_o the_o translator_n study_v for_o hard_a word_n in_o the_o room_n of_o plain_a one_o as_o for_o the_o passeover_n phase_n for_o foreskin_n praepuce_fw-la for_o unleavened_a bread_n azym_n for_o high_a place_n excelse_n and_o other_o such_o word_n we_o have_v in_o the_o english_a rhemish_n testament_n viz._n exinanite_n parasceve_fw-la didragme_n neophyt_n spiritualness_n of_o wickedness_n in_o the_o celestial_n in_o our_o busy_a english_a world_n while_o man_n be_v most_o yary_a after_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n and_o the_o study_n of_o thing_n if_o very_o few_o or_o none_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o learn_v the_o universal_a real_a character_n and_o which_o will_v tend_v to_o the_o propagate_a real_a knowledge_n among_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n accordingly_z as_o the_o excellent_a propounder_n of_o it_o in_o print_n with_o great_a modesty_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a that_o he_o have_v slender_a expectation_n if_o its_o come_n into_o common_a use_n our_o ingeniosi_fw-la or_o wit_n which_o all_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v now_o as_o they_o do_v in_o the_o late_a time_n to_o be_v saint_n though_o yet_o as_o few_o be_v wit_n now_o as_o be_v saint_n then_o will_v not_o care_v for_o trouble_v their_o brain_n with_o the_o study_v of_o the_o religion_n who_o pretend_a universality_n appear_v but_o a_o kind_n of_o universal_a character_n and_o not_o real_a and_o tend_v to_o obscure_v the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o world._n if_o they_o shall_v see_v here_o a_o religion_n that_o be_v full_a of_o pageantry_n and_o seem_v to_o be_v whole_o theatrical_a they_o will_v think_v it_o be_v as_o much_o their_o birthright_n to_o censure_v it_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v eternal_a talk_a critic_n in_o the_o pit_n to_o damn_v play_n and_o will_v think_v two_o supremes_n in_o a_o kingdom_n to_o be_v of_o the_o low_a nature_n of_o two_o king_n of_o branford_n and_o rather_o than_o part_v with_o their_o money_n and_o stake_n down_o their_o soul_n for_o see_v such_o a_o moral_a representation_n of_o a_o absolute_a spiritual_a and_o absolute_a temporal_a power_n on_o the_o stage_n of_o the_o kingdom_n they_o will_v be_v too_o apt_a with_o mr._n hobbs_n to_o thrust_v the_o whole_a nation_n of_o spiritual_a being_n out_o of_o the_o world_n i_o mean_v rather_o than_o they_o will_v be_v to_o their_o face_n cheat_v and_o harrass_v by_o a_o spiritual_a power_n and_o our_o people_n inspire_v with_o wit_n as_o well_o as_o those_o with_o the_o zealous_a spirit_n of_o religion_n will_v cry_v out_o conclusum_fw-la est_fw-la contra_fw-la manichaeos_n ay_o and_o against_o the_o schoolman_n too_o i_o mean_v our_o romanist_n manichaei_n who_o make_v two_o summa_fw-la principia_fw-la in_o every_o state._n in_o this_o age_n where_o the_o low_a or_o six_z rate_n wit_n do_v so_o overvalue_v themselves_o on_o turn_v every_o thing_n into_o ridicule_n the_o mass_n will_v have_v here_o a_o reception_n according_a to_o what_o the_o gloss_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n observe_v that_o when_o a_o place_n have_v lie_v long_o under_o a_o interdict_v the_o people_n laugh_v at_o the_o priest_n when_o they_o come_v to_o say_v mass_n again_o nor_o will_v any_o papal_a interdiction_n unless_o it_o can_v interdict_v we_o from_o the_o use_n of_o fire_n and_o water_n be_v of_o any_o moment_n the_o world_n will_v now_o laugh_v at_o any_o prize_n that_o shall_v be_v play_v between_o the_o two_o sword_n the_o very_a glossator_fw-la on_o the_o clementines_n say_v occasionly_a that_o resipiscente_fw-la mundo_fw-la the_o world_n be_v grow_v wise_a there_o must_v be_v no_o long_o strive_v for_o both_o sword_n and_o any_o one_o that_o will_v obtrude_v on_o we_o gross_a explode_a error_n in_o church_n or_o state_n will_v appear_v as_o ridiculous_a as_o st._n henry_n the_o dane_n who_o as_o the_o martyrology_n mention_n when_o worm_n craul_v out_o of_o a_o corrupt_a ulcer_n in_o his_o knee_n put_v they_o in_o again_o my_o lord_n i_o will_v further_o offer_v it_o to_o your_o lordship_n consideration_n that_o if_o it_o be_v find_v so_o hard_o to_o keep_v up_o the_o external_a polity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n tho'_o in_o itself_o so_o rational_a and_o so_o merit_v the_o name_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o twenty_o year_n discontinuance_n of_o it_o insomuch_o that_o dr._n glanvile_n in_o the_o first_o page_n of_o his_o book_n call_v the_o zealous_a and_o impartial_a protestant_n have_v these_o word_n the_o first_o occasion_n of_o our_o further_a danger_n that_o i_o shall_v mention_v be_v the_o present_a diminution_n not_o to_o say_v extinction_n of_o reverence_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o p._n 4._o write_v large_o to_o that_o effect_n what_o quarter_n can_v popery_n expect_v here_o from_o a_o age_n of_o sense_n and_o reason_n when_o it_o shall_v break_v in_o upon_o both_o after_o the_o forementioned_a hundred_o year_n discontinuance_n according_a to_o the_o foresay_a argument_n of_o the_o bee_n for_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a monarchy_n we_o see_v it_o improbable_a for_o he_o ever_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o a_o rendezvouz_n in_o his_o church_n again_o for_o the_o sad_a experience_n we_o have_v have_v of_o the_o sect_n here_o that_o leave_v the_o hive_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o gather_v together_o into_o any_o one_o new_a hive_n but_o divide_v into_o several_a swarm_n and_o hive_n and_o never_o return_v to_o the_o old_a may_v show_v the_o hive_n of_o holy_a church_n how_o little_a of_o our_o company_n it_o be_v to_o expect_v have_v say_v all_o this_o about_o the_o mist_n of_o popery_n be_v to_o contend_v with_o knowledge_n in_o its_o meridian_n i_o think_v i_o shall_v comply_v with_o the_o measure_n take_v by_o our_o philosopher_n in_o this_o critical_a age_n in_o sound_v their_o observation_n upon_o experiment_n if_o i_o further_o add_v that_o the_o former_a experiment_n england_n have_v have_v of_o popery_n be_v pernicious_a to_o its_o external_a polity_n and_o grandeur_n will_v perpetuate_v and_o heighten_v the_o fermentation_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o our_o angry_a people_n against_o it_o all_o our_o monkish_a historian_n do_v attest_v the_o experience_n our_o king_n have_v in_o be_v bereave_v of_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n while_o they_o enrich_v the_o pope_n here_o by_o give_v he_o the_o office_n to_o keep_v the_o theological_a thistle_n which_o he_o rail_v in_o with_o so_o many_o censure_n and_o distinction_n and_o non_fw-la obstantes_fw-la that_o our_o king_n can_v not_o pass_v to_o their_o palace_n but_o by_o his_o leave_n and_o on_o his_o term_n a_o english_a king_n then_o be_v but_o the_o pope_n premier_n minister_fw-fr and_o yet_o pay_v great_a wage_n too_o for_o the_o be_v a_o servant_n to_o the_o servus_n servorum_fw-la king_n john_n use_v to_o say_v that_o all_o his_o affair_n in_o the_o world_n be_v unprosperous_a and_o go_v cross_a and_o untoward_o after_o he_o have_v once_o subject_v himself_o and_o his_o kingdom_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n his_o word_n be_v postquam_fw-la i_o &_o mea_fw-la regna_fw-la romanae_fw-la subject_n ecclesiae_fw-la nulla_fw-la mihi_fw-la prospera_fw-la omne_fw-la contraria_fw-la advenerunt_fw-la and_o it_o be_v obvious_a to_o consider_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n what_o a_o great_a figure_n henry_n the_o eight_o make_v in_o the_o world_n after_o he_o have_v manumit_v himself_o and_o his_o kingdom_n from_o the_o papal_a usurpation_n and_o how_o he_o hold_v the_o balance_n of_o the_o world_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o tread_v on_o
be_v likely_a to_o have_v do_v be_v disappoint_v as_o to_o their_o gratiae_fw-la expectativae_fw-la of_o the_o land_n of_o the_o bishop_n have_v they_o be_v let_v loose_a to_o have_v depend_v on_o maintenance_n by_o oblation_n in_o such_o town_n and_o city_n and_o where_o they_o will_v have_v probable_o try_v with_o a_o diversify_v curse_v you_o meros_n to_o fly_v in_o the_o face_n of_o master_n who_o will_v not_o feed_v they_o i_o have_v before_o say_v how_o the_o parliament_n sweeten_v they_o into_o obedience_n by_o the_o luscious_a power_n of_o oppress_v their_o fellow_n subject_n but_o neither_o by_o any_o revenue_n adequate_a to_o those_o impropriate_a tithe_n nor_o by_o any_o such_o power_n of_o oppress_v that_o prerogative_n of_o devil_n to_o torment_v can_v it_o be_v imagine_v that_o a_o popish_a successor_n will_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o ensure_v the_o obedience_n of_o his_o clergy_n to_o himself_o his_o bishop_n and_o dignitary_n will_v be_v like_o the_o pope_n trent_n titulars_n without_o a_o title_n i_o mean_v one_o to_o a_o dignity_n or_o benefice_n and_o the_o burden_n of_o the_o clerical_a papist_n maintenance_n lie_v still_o on_o the_o laity_n will_v make_v popery_n soon_o visible_o grow_v weary_a o●_n itself_o i_o shall_v here_o take_v occasion_n to_o observe_v that_o tithe_n be_v first_o call_v impropriate_a by_o the_o sarcasm_n of_o the_o dislodge_a monk_n who_o think_v that_o the_o tithe_n appropriate_v for_o that_o be_v the_o ancient_a law-term_n for_o they_o be_v improper_o place_v on_o layman_n but_o both_o the_o present_a possessor_n and_o all_o that_o know_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o england_n be_v a_o kingdom_n and_o no_o province_n that_o its_o riches_n accrue_v by_o the_o number_n of_o its_o inhabitant_n and_o by_o improvement_n of_o its_o soil_n shall_v keep_v its_o weight_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o christendom_n especial_o consider_v the_o growth_n of_o france_n will_v for_o ever_o think_v it_o very_o improper_a that_o so_o much_o of_o its_o land_n and_o wealth_n and_o populousness_n shall_v be_v sacrifice_v to_o religious_a idler_n and_o that_o according_a to_o bishop_n sanderson_n account_n almost_o half_a of_o the_o land_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o frank_n for_o boar_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v fly_v for_o such_o as_o be_v epicuri_fw-la de_fw-la grege_fw-la porci_fw-la or_o such_o as_o be_v call_v barnevelt_v hog_n he_o have_v call_v the_o monkish_a herd_n by_o that_o name_n of_o who_o if_o any_o anger_v one_o they_o all_o rise_v against_o he_o and_o if_o he_o please_v they_o all_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v get_v but_o bristle_n that_o herd_n be_v not_o a_o little_a molest_v as_o mr._n fox_n tell_v we_o by_o a_o private_a gentleman_n one_o mr._n simon_n fish_n in_o the_o year_n 1527._o who_o write_v a_o little_a book_n call_v the_o supplication_n of_o beggar_n address_v to_o the_o king_n and_o it_o have_v the_o honour_n to_o reach_v his_o eye_n and_o to_o be_v lodge_v in_o his_o bosom_n three_o or_o four_o day_n and_o to_o bring_v its_o author_n to_o be_v embrace_v by_o the_o king_n and_o to_o have_v long_a discourse_n with_o he_o as_o mr._n fox_n affirm_v who_o print_v that_o book_n wherein_o the_o author_n with_o much_o labour_a curiosity_n attaque_v the_o revenue_n of_o the_o monk_n with_o arithmetic_n a_o science_n necessary_a for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o political_n no_o less_o military_a discipline_n he_o say_v there_o in_o the_o beginning_n that_o the_o multitude_n of_o leper_n and_o other_o sick_a people_n and_o poor_a be_v so_o increase_v that_o all_o the_o alm_n of_o the_o realm_n suffice_v not_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o die_v for_o hunger_n and_o that_o this_o happen_v from_o counterfeit_a holy_a beggar_n and_o vagabond_n be_v so_o much_o increase_v these_o say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o herd_n but_o wolf_n etc._n etc._n who_o have_v get_v into_o their_o hand_n more_o than_o the_o three_o part_n of_o your_o realm_n the_o goodly_a lordship_n and_o manor_n be_v they_o beside_o this_o he_o set_v forth_o that_o they_o have_v tithe_n oblation_n mortuary_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o therein_o say_v that_o there_o be_v in_o england_n 52000_o parish_n and_o ten_o household_n in_o every_o parish_n and_o five_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o thousand_o household_n in_o all_o and_o every_o of_o the_o five_o order_n of_o friar_n receive_v a_o penny_n a_o quarter_n that_o be_v twenty_o penny_n in_o all_o yearly_a from_o every_o one_o of_o these_o household_n the_o total_a sum_n be_v 430333_o l._n 6_o s._n 8_o d._n sterling_n he_o further_o set_v forth_o that_o the_o friar_n be_v not_o the_o four_o hundred_o person_n of_o the_o realm_n have_v yet_o half_o its_o profit_n there_o be_v in_o that_o little_a book_n many_o thing_n so_o pungent_a and_o so_o confirm_v by_o calculation_n that_o the_o clergy_n put_v no_o mean_a a_o person_n then_o sir_n thomas_n more_o on_o the_o answer_v it_o in_o print_n and_o it_o occasion_v the_o bishop_n of_o london_n publish_v a_o edict_n to_o call_v in_o that_o little_a book_n and_o the_o english_a new_a testament_n and_o many_o book_n write_v against_o the_o excess_n of_o the_o priest_n well_o therefore_o may_v sir_n thomas_n more_n be_v favour_v with_o a_o licence_n to_o read_v heretical_a book_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v at_o the_o fatigue_n of_o answer_v they_o sir_n thomas_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o it_o make_v a_o just_a exception_n to_o mr._n fish_n estimate_n of_o the_o number_n of_o parish_n in_o the_o realm_n but_o admit_v there_o be_v then_o ten_o thousand_o parish_n in_o england_n and_o about_o forty_o house_n in_o one_o parish_n with_o another_o in_o the_o country_n beside_o what_o be_v in_o great_a town_n and_o city_n he_o may_v modest_o calculate_v 520000_o household_n in_o all_o nor_o be_v it_o to_o be_v much_o wonder_v at_o that_o a_o private_a gentleman_n shall_v err_v in_o the_o excess_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o parish_n when_o we_o be_v tell_v in_o cotton_n collection_n that_o in_o the_o 45_o of_o e._n 3._o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o in_o parliament_n grant_v the_o king_n a_o subsidy_n of_o 50000_o l._n at_o the_o rate_n of_o 22_o s._n 4_o d._n for_o each_o parish_n they_o estimate_v the_o parish_n then_o near_o that_o number_n but_o be_v afterward_o inform_v by_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n that_o by_o return_n make_v into_o the_o chancery_n on_o commission_n of_o enquiry_n it_o be_v find_v there_o be_v not_o so_o many_o parish_n in_o the_o realm_n it_o have_v be_v very_o acceptable_a to_o those_o who_o in_o this_o age_n take_v their_o political_a measure_n of_o the_o power_n and_o growth_n of_o kingdom_n from_o number_n if_o either_o mr._n fish_n or_o sir_n thomas_n more_n who_o answer_v his_o golden_a little_a book_n as_o i_o may_v call_v it_o for_o his_o endeavour_n therein_o to_o fix_v matter_n relate_v to_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o calculation_n and_o for_o his_o be_v a_o columbus_n to_o discover_v rich_a mine_n without_o go_v to_o america_n nor_o yet_o further_a than_o home_n or_o if_o any_o of_o our_o monkish_a historian_n or_o even_o our_o polish_v and_o ingenious_a one_o and_o particular_o my_o lord_n bacon_n and_o my_o lord_n herbert_n have_v give_v the_o world_n rational_a estimate_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n in_o the_o time_n they_o write_v of_o or_o particular_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o male_n then_o between_o the_o year_n of_o 16_o and_o 60_o for_o if_o they_o have_v do_v that_o as_o on_o the_o public_a muster_n make_v by_o occasion_n of_o warlike_a preparation_n they_o may_v perhaps_o well_o have_v perform_v we_o may_v now_o easy_o by_o the_o help_n we_o have_v have_v from_o the_o observator_fw-la on_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n conclude_v what_o the_o entire_a number_n of_o the_o people_n then_o be_v and_o may_v likewise_o have_v better_o agree_v on_o a_o state_v rule_n of_o the_o period_n of_o nation_n double_v a_o curiosity_n in_o knowledge_n not_o unworthy_a the_o genius_n of_o a_o inquisitive_a or_o philosophical_a statesman_n and_o which_o present_v to_o his_o view_n as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o anatocisme_n of_o the_o faetus_fw-la populi_fw-la resemble_v the_o interest_n upon_o interest_n of_o money_n as_o for_o example_n when_o we_o see_v that_o one_o pound_n in_o seventy_o year_n the_o age_n of_o a_o man_n be_v at_z 10_o per_fw-la cent_n increase_a to_o a_o thousand_o but_o it_o be_v our_o misfortune_n that_o through_o the_o aforesaid_a omission_n of_o our_o historian_n we_o be_v not_o so_o much_o illuminate_v about_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o english_a nation_n as_o we_o be_v about_o the_o gradual_a multiplication_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n so_o many_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o indeed_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o writer_n of_o other_o european_a country_n we_o be_v
go_v hence_o for_o our_o plantation_n do_v contribute_v some_o way_n to_o the_o trade_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o many_o of_o they_o return_v hither_o again_o but_o mr._n roger_n coke_n in_o his_o book_n call_v england_n improvement_n pag._n 21._o say_v it_o be_v believe_v above_o 12000._o of_o the_o king_n scotish_n subject_n yearly_o go_v out_o of_o scotland_n into_o poland_n sweden_n germany_n france_n holland_n and_o other_o place_n and_o never_o after_o return_v into_o scotland_n and_o that_o author_n have_v before_o in_o the_o same_o page_n mention_v that_o 5_o l._n give_v with_o a_o apprentice_n to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o woollen_a or_o any_o manufacture_n by_o which_o mean_n be_v afterward_o yearn_v 30_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la this_o in_o 20._o year_n become_v 600_o l._n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v more_o valuable_a to_o the_o nation_n then_o if_o 600_o l._n have_v be_v give_v it_o and_o the_o people_n not_o employ_v thereupon_o he_o afterward_o compute_v that_o the_o benefit_n which_o may_v accrue_v to_o the_o nation_n by_o employ_v so_o many_o thousand_o of_o the_o scottish_a subject_n there_o may_v in_o 20._o year_n time_n be_v above_o 6_o million_o and_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o that_o worthy_a gentleman_n we_o may_v further_o be_v incline_v to_o think_v the_o number_n of_o the_o scot_n remove_v into_o foreign_a part_n to_o be_v very_o great_a when_o we_o find_v among_o sir_n john_n denham_n poem_n one_o with_o this_o inscription_n or_o title_n on_o my_o lord_n crofts_n and_o my_o journey_n into_o poland_n from_o whence_o we_o bring_v 10000_o l._n for_o his_o majesty_n by_o the_o decimation_n of_o his_o scotish_n subject_n there_o but_o moreover_o the_o satisfy_v the_o inquisite_fw-la genius_fw-la of_o our_o people_n concern_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o number_n may_v be_v of_o some_o importance_n to_o they_o and_o the_o public_a quiet_n in_o satisfy_v they_o of_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o former_a moddeller_n of_o a_o republic_n here_o a_o form_n of_o government_n though_o easy_o suppose_v practicable_a in_o large_a city_n yet_o not_o so_o in_o great_a and_o populous_a nation_n and_o likewise_o of_o the_o vanity_n of_o all_o fear_n of_o a_o universal_a monarchy_n bridle_v the_o world_n again_o a_o thing_n which_o though_o it_o be_v of_o old_a feasable_a when_o mankind_n make_v not_o so_o mighty_a a_o mass_n be_v now_o far_o from_o be_v so_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o imagine_v it_o possible_a and_o indeed_o to_o effect_v it_o in_o the_o day_n when_o aristotle_n teach_v man_n that_o no_o city_n ought_v to_o have_v above_o 10000_o citizen_n and_o when_o however_o the_o number_n of_o citizen_n be_v grow_v at_o athens_n to_o 20000._o and_o when_o in_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o number_n of_o the_o citizen_n be_v not_o so_o vast_a as_o be_v by_o many_o imagine_a and_o so_o according_o the_o excellent_a discourser_n de_fw-fr magnitudine_fw-la romanâ_fw-la lipsius_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 7._o then_o speak_v of_o the_o multitudo_fw-la romanorum_fw-la under_o augustus_n say_v ipse_fw-la de_fw-la se_fw-la in_o lapide_fw-la ancyrano_n clare_v hoc_fw-la dicit_fw-la in_o consulatu_fw-la svo_fw-la sexto_fw-la lustrum_fw-la condidisse_fw-la quo_fw-la lustro_fw-la censita_fw-la sunt_fw-la civium_fw-la romanorum_fw-la capita_n quadragiens_fw-la centum_fw-la millia_fw-la &_o sexaginta_fw-la tria_fw-la i._n e._n four_o million_o and_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o and_o lipsius_n afterward_o mention_v that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o roman_n increase_v under_o claudius_n cite_v tacitus_n for_o make_v it_o then_o sexagies_fw-la movie_n centena_fw-la sexaginta_fw-la quatuor_fw-la millia_fw-la i._n e._n about_o seven_o million_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o people_n of_o the_o province_n do_v vast_o exceed_v that_o number_n but_o since_o according_a to_o the_o estimate_n of_o bodin_n in_o his_o the_o rep._n it_o be_v probable_a that_o the_o roman_a empire_n when_o at_o its_o great_a extent_n in_o trajan's_n time_n scarce_o contain_v the_o thirty_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o prolifit_n north_n style_v general_o by_o author_n officina_fw-la &_o vagina_fw-la gentium_fw-la by_o the_o increase_n of_o its_o populacy_n so_o humble_v the_o roman_a sword_n that_o within_o about_o 154._o year_n afterward_o some_o of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n become_v their_o ally_n and_o gallus_n submit_v to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o the_o goth_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o the_o thirty_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v since_o reduce_v to_o cease_v from_o domineer_a over_o all_o the_o other_o part_n of_o it_o and_o notwithstanding_o maximine_v boast_v to_o the_o senate_n in_o the_o fragment_n of_o his_o account_n to_o they_o of_o his_o german_a success_n cite_v by_o jul._n capitolinus_n in_o his_o life_n tantum_fw-la captivorum_fw-la abduxi_fw-la ut_fw-la vix_fw-la sola_fw-la romana_fw-la sufficiant_fw-la his_o resvery_n of_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o roman_a power_n on_o the_o stage_n of_o the_o world_n be_v liable_a to_o confutation_n from_o the_o same_o way_n of_o argue_v as_o his_o conceit_n of_o his_o own_o immortality_n be_v which_o have_v be_v observe_v to_o have_v taint_v his_o fancy_n on_o the_o occasion_n of_o his_o great_a and_o robu_v body_n the_o same_o capitolinus_n in_o his_o life_n say_v be_v correct_v by_o a_o player_n recite_v these_o line_n on_o the_o stage_n in_o his_o presence_n qui_fw-la ab_fw-la uno_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la a_o multis_fw-la occiditur_fw-la elephans_fw-la grandis_fw-la est_fw-la &_o occiditur_fw-la leo_fw-la fortis_fw-la est_fw-la &_o occiditur_fw-la tigris_n fortis_fw-la est_fw-la &_o occiditur_fw-la cave_fw-la multos_fw-la si_fw-la singulos_fw-la non_fw-la time_n but_o what_o i_o find_v by_o lipsius_n in_o the_o second_o book_n three_o chapter_n there_o cite_v out_o of_o tertullian_n be_v much_o more_o applicable_a to_o the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o world_n then_o to_o that_o wherein_o it_o be_v write_v he_o say_v there_o at_o tertulliani_n locum_fw-la non_fw-la insuper_fw-la habeo_fw-la qui_fw-la egregie_n asserit_fw-la copiam_fw-la hominum_fw-la cultumque_fw-la orbis_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la i._n e._n severi_n saeculo_fw-la de_fw-fr animâ_fw-la cap._n 30._o certè_fw-la quidem_fw-la ipse_fw-la orbis_fw-la in_o promptu_fw-la est_fw-la cultior_fw-la de_fw-la die_fw-la &_o instructior_fw-la pristino_fw-la omnia_fw-la jam_fw-la peruia_fw-la omne_fw-la nota_fw-la omne_fw-la negotiosa_fw-la solitudines_fw-la famosas_fw-la retrò_fw-la fundi_fw-la amaenissimi_fw-la obliteraverunt_fw-la sylvas_fw-la arva_fw-la domuerunt_fw-la feras_fw-la pecora_fw-la fugaverunt_fw-la arenae_n seruntur_fw-la saxa_n panguntur_fw-la raludes_n eliquantur_fw-la tantae_fw-la urbes_fw-la quantae_fw-la non_fw-la casae_fw-la quondam_a jam_fw-la nec_fw-la insulae_fw-la horrent_n nec_fw-la scopuli_n terrent_fw-la ubique_fw-la domus_fw-la ubique_fw-la populus_fw-la ubque_fw-la resp._n ubique_fw-la vita_fw-la summum_fw-la testimonium_fw-la frequentiae_fw-la humanae_fw-la onerosi_fw-la sumus_fw-la mundo_fw-la vix_fw-la nobis_fw-la elementa_fw-la sufficiunt_fw-la &_o necessitate_v arctiores_fw-la &_o querelae_fw-la apud_fw-la omnes_fw-la dum_fw-la jam_fw-la nos_fw-la natura_fw-la non_fw-la sustinet_fw-la then_o add_v lipsius_n nihil_fw-la impressius_fw-la dici_fw-la potest_fw-la de_fw-la pleno_fw-la frequentique_fw-la orbe_fw-la and_o that_o strong_a and_o populous_a nation_n conspire_v to_o break_v their_o chain_n have_v nothing_o of_o wonder_n in_o it_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o freedom_n the_o world_n have_v gain_v since_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o even_o by_o mean_n thereof_o have_v hang_v out_o such_o a_o picture_n before_o all_o man_n eye_n of_o populous_a mankind_n draw_v to_o the_o bigness_n of_o the_o life_n as_o have_v make_v the_o notion_n of_o erect_v another_o universal_a monarchy_n seem_v but_o a_o portraiture_n of_o imagination_n contain_v nothing_o but_o bold_a stroke_n of_o colour_n without_o regular_a proportion_n and_o design_n and_o the_o copy_n only_o a_o landscape_n of_o the_o devil_n mountain_n and_o his_o show_v thence_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world._n how_o be_v the_o world_n ashamed_a now_o of_o its_o have_v be_v in_o the_o last_o forego_v age_n amuse_v with_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n being_n its_o catholic_n monarch_n and_o of_o have_v torment_v itself_o with_o jealousy_n about_o such_o a_o great_a nothing_o and_o which_o i_o believe_v be_v never_o model_v in_o the_o fancy_n of_o that_o prince_n and_o be_v only_o project_v by_o court-sycophant_n and_o mercenary_a writer_n and_o that_o he_o himself_o never_o enter_v any_o express_a claim_n to_o it_o one_o will_v think_v who_o read_v the_o duke_n of_o buckingham_n answer_n to_o the_o spanish_a embassador_n information_n etc._n etc._n anno_fw-la 1624._o where_o the_o duke_n have_v aggravate_v some_o state-practice_n the_o spanish_a minister_n add_v and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o proclamation_n to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o they_o aspire_v to_o such_o a_o absolute_a monarchy_n as_o so_o many_o book_n story_n discourse_n and_o the_o general_a complaint_n of_o all_o prince_n and_o state_n have_v long_o charge_v they_o with_o but_o for_o such_o writer_n as_o i_o last_o mention_v to_o
in_o that_o quarter_n to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o that_o which_o begin_v in_o nomine_fw-la domini_fw-la and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v the_o rather_o will_v so_o to_o do_v in_o regard_n that_o the_o north_n make_v the_o world_n feel_v the_o malignity_n of_o both_o those_o proverb_n by_o its_o old_a well-meant_a charity_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o since_o in_o the_o day_n of_o popery_n here_o in_o harry_n the_o 8th_n time_n it_o do_v pass_v in_o rem_fw-la judicatam_fw-la that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o more_o power_n over_o we_o by_o the_o scripture_n than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n it_o can_v now_o but_o seem_v ridiculous_a to_o scruple_n whether_o he_o can_v thence_o claim_v more_o authority_n here_o than_o any_o other_o foreign_a prince_n and_o he_o who_o be_v explode_v here_o former_o when_o the_o critical_a spectator_n be_v not_o so_o many_o for_o have_v ill_o act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o king_n on_o our_o stage_n of_o the_o world_n will_v be_v think_v mad_a for_o personate_n one_o after_o the_o play_n be_v over_o thus_o too_o in_o a_o less_o people_n world_n bartolus_n the_o famous_a lawyer_n pronounce_v it_o to_o be_v heresy_n to_o deny_v the_o german_a emperor_n to_o be_v king_n of_o the_o universe_n the_o which_o any_o one_o will_v now_o account_v madness_n to_o affirm_v and_o if_o in_o france_n hundred_o of_o year_n ago_o its_o monarch_n greet_v the_o pope_n with_o the_o term_n of_o fatuus_fw-la &_o aman_n for_o claim_v a_o supremacy_n in_o temporal_n there_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o can_v be_v otherwise_o think_v there_o now_o prosecute_a a_o claim_n to_o supremacy_n in_o thing_n ecclesiastic_a for_o even_o his_o pretension_n to_o that_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n have_v damn_v in_o their_o declaration_n by_o set_v a_o general_n council_n above_o he_o and_o which_o declaration_n the_o great_a monarch_n have_v there_o ratify_v by_o a_o perpetual_a and_o irrevocable_a edict_n and_o it_o be_v but_o with_o a_o consonancy_n to_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n that_o the_o papal_a infallibility_n shall_v be_v conclude_v against_o in_o that_o declaration_n and_o since_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o policy_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n relate_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n there_o do_v so_o much_o swarm_n with_o new_a phil_n sopher_n there_o call_v cartesian_n and_o gassendists_n who_o new_a philosophy_n have_v be_v there_o by_o zealous_a catholic_n observe_v to_o have_v ruin_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n for_o so_o the_o word_n be_v in_o that_o book_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o the_o growth_n of_o the_o messieurs_fw-fr les_fw-fr scavant_n increase_n with_o the_o populacy_n of_o that_o realm_n make_v any_o man_n belief_n of_o his_o infallibility_n pass_v for_o a_o degree_n of_o madness_n according_o as_o mr._n hobbes_n chap._n 8._o of_o man_n well_o observe_v that_o excessive_a opinion_n of_o a_o man_n be_v own_o self_n for_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o wisdom_n become_v distraction_n and_o giddiness_n and_o this_o probable_o may_v be_v the_o final_a result_n there_o of_o the_o late_a fermentation_n about_o the_o regalia_z etc._n etc._n and_o the_o pope_n be_v tacit_o think_v so_o as_o aforesaid_a and_o his_o power_n there_o insensible_o evaporate_v and_o without_o any_o visible_a distrubance_n give_v to_o it_o by_o the_o ratio_fw-la ultima_fw-la regum_fw-la for_o no_o prudent_a person_n will_v declaim_v reproachful_o against_o any_o of_o a_o quiet_a frenzy_n or_o molest_v and_o vex_v such_o a_o one_o though_o live_v near_o he_o and_o will_v much_o less_o project_v the_o disgrace_n or_o mischief_n of_o such_o a_o one_o live_v at_o a_o great_a distance_n though_o he_o shall_v assume_v to_o himself_o big_a title_n than_o ever_o the_o king_n of_o india_n or_o persia_n do_v and_o call_v himself_o son_n of_o the_o sun_n or_o lord_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o land_n or_o like_o some_o of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n challenge_v divinity_n or_o be_v style_v dominus_fw-la deus_fw-la noster_fw-la papa_n and_o thus_o may_v the_o pope_n quiet_o go_v on_o long_a to_o call_v himself_o monarch_n of_o the_o world_n without_o be_v call_v name_n for_o it_o in_o france_n just_a as_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n style_v themselves_o king_n of_o cyprus_n without_o any_o gainsay_n from_o the_o turk_n who_o likewise_o do_v not_o menace_v the_o pope_n for_o cause_v the_o brother_n of_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n to_o be_v in_o rome_n proclaim_v king_n of_o jerusalem_n nor_o when_o that_o gentleman_n in_o requital_n of_o that_o favour_n from_o his_o holiness_n cause_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v in_o naples_n proclaim_v caliph_n of_o bandas_n be_v the_o mogul_n aggrieve_v thereby_o and_o thus_o probable_o too_o will_v the_o enthusiast_n who_o assert_v a_o millennium_n or_o universal_a reign_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n with_o that_o quietness_n and_o gentleness_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n before_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n do_v pass_v off_o the_o stage_n of_o the_o world_n but_o it_o will_v seem_v ridiculous_a not_o to_o bind_v such_o five_o monarchy_n man_n in_o chain_n as_o madman_n who_o have_v in_o england_n and_o germany_n endeavour_v to_o bi●d_a king_n so_o and_o noble_n with_o fetter_n of_o iron_n and_o who_o will_v again_o make_v convulsion_n in_o the_o state_n by_o the_o disease_n of_o their_o mind_n as_o once_o mahomet_n epileptic_a fit_n shake_v the_o world_n and_o who_o by_o promise_v we_o a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n will_v confound_v the_o old_a and_o only_o give_v we_o a_o new_a hell_n break_v loose_v but_o the_o world_n will_v not_o now_o be_v blunder_v into_o confusion_n by_o such_o wild_a reformer_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n of_o which_o bodin_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o methodus_fw-la ad_fw-la facilem_fw-la historiarum_fw-la cognitionem_fw-la that_o calvin_n opinion_n be_v ask_v he_o answer_v se_fw-la penitùs_fw-la ignorare_fw-la quid_fw-la velit_fw-la tam_fw-la obscurus_fw-la scriptor_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o style_n be_v agreeable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a text_n and_o that_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o future_a state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o its_o splendour_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o grosso_fw-it modo_fw-la utter_v or_o attend_v with_o any_o irregularity_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o god_n appear_v there_o as_o the_o god_n of_o order_n and_o apply_v all_o the_o exactness_n of_o proportion_n and_o number_n and_o its_o very_a fraction_n to_o the_o great_a thing_n foretell_v after_o one_o verse_n have_v account_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n to_o be_v 666_o the_o next_o mention_n st._n john_n vision_n of_o a_o lamb_n stand_v on_o mount_n zion_n and_o with_o he_o a_o hundred_o forty_o and_o four_o thousand_o the_o body_n of_o the_o witness_n be_v mention_v to_o be_v unbury_v three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a the_o 4_o angel_n be_v loose_v which_o be_v prepare_v for_o a_o hour_n and_o a_o day_n and_o a_o month_n and_o a_o year_n for_o to_o s●ay_v the_o three_o part_n of_o men._n the_o woman_n be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n 1260_o day_n and_o to_o be_v nourish_v there_o for_o a_o time_n and_o time_n and_o half_a a_o time_n blood_n come_v out_o of_o the_o winepress_n by_o the_o space_n of_o 1600_o furlong_n there_o be_v seal_v of_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n 144000._o and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o babylon_n mention_v in_o cap._n 18_o where_o the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n be_v hear_v come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n though_o all_o the_o various_a sect_n of_o religion_n that_o thrust_v one_o another_o into_o babylon_n will_v admit_v of_o no_o proportion_n in_o their_o revenge_n yet_o it_o be_v there_o say_v reward_v she_o even_o as_o she_o reward_v you_o and_o double_a unto_o her_o double_a according_a to_o her_o work_n in_o the_o cup_n which_o she_o have_v fill_v fill_v to_o her_o double_a but_o near_o the_o end_n of_o that_o book_n where_o the_o great_a scene_n of_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n open_v and_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n be_v describe_v a_o golden_a rod_n be_v give_v the_o angel_n to_o measure_v the_o city_n and_o the_o measure_n thereof_o be_v particularise_v and_o though_o i_o pretend_v not_o to_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o any_o of_o these_o obscure_a passage_n of_o scripture_n yet_o one_o thing_n seem_v to_o i_o there_o as_o conspicuous_a as_o the_o meridian_n light_n namely_o that_o as_o the_o divine_a providence_n do_v find_v the_o old_a world_n in_o number_n weight_n and_o measure_n so_o it_o likewise_o will_v the_o foretold_a new_a one._n the_o exactness_n of_o the_o number_n describe_v by_o st._n john_n in_o that_o prophetic_a book_n write_v in_o the_o island_n of_o pathmos_n have_v assure_v we_o that_o his_o imagination_n be_v much_o above_o the_o vapour_n that_o
of_o father_n parson_n about_o the_o succession_n part_n 2_o d_o where_o he_o weigh_v the_o several_a party_n of_o england_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o state_n and_o say_v it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o in_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n at_o this_o day_n there_o be_v three_o different_a and_o opposite_a body_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v of_o most_o bulk_n and_o do_v carry_v most_o sway_n and_o power_n which_o three_o body_n be_v common_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n puritant_n and_o papist_n and_o afterward_o speak_v of_o the_o great_a power_n of_o the_o protestant_a party_n for_o wealth_n and_o force_n he_o say_v p._n 140._o a_o chief_a member_n of_o the_o protestant_a body_n be_v the_o clergy_n of_o england_n especial_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o other_o man_n in_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n which_o be_v like_a to_o be_v a_o great_a back_n to_o this_o party_n at_o that_o day_n etc._n etc._n meaning_n the_o time_n after_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n when_o her_o successor_n shall_v enter_v on_o the_o stage_n and_o then_o have_v weigh_v the_o puritan_n party_n and_o its_o interest_n he_o say_v the_o three_o body_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v those_o of_o the_o roman_a who_o call_v themselves_o catholic_n which_o be_v the_o least_o in_o show_n at_o this_o present_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o law_n and_o tide_n of_o the_o time_n that_o run_v against_o they_o yet_o be_v they_o of_o no_o small_a consideration_n in_o this_o affair_n to_o he_o that_o weigh_v thing_n indifferent_o and_o this_o in_o respect_n as_o well_o of_o their_o party_n at_o home_n as_o their_o friend_n abroad_o for_o at_o home_n they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n as_o the_o world_n know_v the_o one_o more_o up●n_a that_o discover_v themselves_o which_o be_v the_o recusant_n and_o the_o other_o more_o close_a and_o privy_a that_o accommodate_v themselves_o to_o all_o external_a preceeding_n of_o the_o time_n and_o state_n so_o as_o they_o can_v be_v know_v or_o at_o leastwise_o not_o much_o touch_v we_o may_v imagine_v that_o their_o number_n be_v not_o small_a throughout_o the_o realm_n etc._n etc._n the_o vigour_n of_o the_o hope_n that_o popery_n have_v in_o that_o conjuncture_n appear_v out_o of_o that_o great_a historical_a letter_n of_o d'ossat_fw-la to_o his_o king_n anno_fw-la 1601_o where_o he_o make_v such_o a_o judicious_a abstract_n of_o this_o goodly_a book_n of_o parson_n for_o so_o he_o call_v it_o ce_fw-fr beau_fw-fr liure_fw-fr and_o animadversion_n on_o it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v about_o four_o year_n ago_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v create_v in_o england_n a_o certain_a arciprestre_fw-fr to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o ecclesiastic_n and_o catholic_n of_o the_o realm_n shall_v have_v one_o to_o who_o to_o go_v and_o have_v recourse_n about_o the_o thing_n relate_v to_o the_o catholic_n religion_n and_o by_o mean_n thereof_o to_o be_v unite_v among_o themselves_o and_o to_o understand_v what_o shall_v be_v good_a to_o be_v do_v for_o their_o preservation_n and_o the_o re-establishment_n of_o the_o catholic_n religion_n and_o some_o have_v give_v his_o holiness_n to_o understand_v that_o by_o that_o mean_v he_o will_v make_v a_o great_a party_n of_o the_o catholic_n in_o england_n for_o what_o he_o will_v effect_v and_o then_o acquaint_v the_o king_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v send_v three_o brief_n to_o his_o nuntio_n in_o the_o low-countries_n for_o he_o to_o keep_v till_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o after_o that_o to_o send_v they_o to_o england_n one_o to_o the_o ecclesiastic_n another_o to_o the_o nobility_n and_o another_o to_o the_o three_o estate_n by_o which_o the_o say_v three_o estate_n be_v admonish_v and_o exhort_v by_o his_o holiness_n to_o remain_v unite_v together_o to_o receive_v a_o catholic_n king_n that_o his_o holiness_n shall_v name_v and_o such_o a_o one_o who_o shall_v appear_v acceptable_a to_o they_o and_o honourable_a and_o all_o this_o for_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o restore_n the_o catholic_n religion_n etc._n etc._n here_o be_v it_o seem_v one_o brief_n more_o send_v to_o england_n then_o mr._n marvel_v mention_n in_o his_o growth_n of_o popery_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n send_v two_o brief_n in_o order_n to_o exclude_v king_n james_n from_o the_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n in_o fine_a popery_n be_v in_o a_o storm_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o in_o it_o the_o papist_n be_v sometime_o carry_v up_o to_o the_o sky_n and_o then_o down_o again_o and_o in_o their_o erterprise_n with_o variety_n of_o success_n in_o some_o conjuncture_n their_o fortune_n be_v to_o reel_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o stagger_v like_o a_o drunken_a man_n and_o as_o in_o a_o storm_n many_o hand_n be_v necessary_a so_o on_o the_o whole_a matter_n they_o find_v need_n of_o the_o number_n of_o more_o hand_n than_o they_o can_v command_v and_o their_o number_n decrease_v in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o people_n here_o as_o much_o by_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n ambition_n as_o do_v the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o unite_a province_n thereby_o and_o as_o they_o look_v big_a on_o the_o account_n of_o their_o number_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n so_o they_o do_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n james_n and_o as_o d'ossat_fw-la say_v in_o that_o letter_n to_o villeroy_n of_o april_n second_o 1603._o you_o will_v find_v that_o the_o spaniard_n who_o be_v most_o trouble_v about_o this_o event_n mean_v of_o the_o succession_n will_v be_v the_o first_o to_o congratulate_v the_o king_n of_o scotland_n so_o it_o happen_v here_o with_o the_o papist_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o book_n in_o 4_o to_o print_v for_o joseph_n barnes_n at_o oxford_n anno_fw-la 1604_o call_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o papist_n reason_n of_o state_n and_o religion_n for_o toleration_n of_o popery_n in_o england_n intimate_v in_o their_o supplication_n to_o the_o king_n majesty_n and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o present_a parliament_n where_o in_o their_o supplication_n at_o large_a print_v they_o in_o the_o begin_n thereof_o in_o a_o profession_n too_o as_o inauspicious_a as_o be_v possible_o say_v that_o his_o majesty_n direct_a title_n to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o the_o realm_n both_o by_o lineal_a descent_n and_o priority_n of_o blood_n and_o your_o highness_n most_o quiet_a access_n to_o the_o same_o do_v exceed_o possess_v and_o englad_a our_o heart_n the_o tide_n of_o the_o succession_n against_o which_o they_o have_v strive_v be_v make_v by_o fate_n to_o run_v smooth_a and_o clear_a and_o they_o be_v resolve_v to_o appear_v on_o the_o surface_n of_o it_o with_o a_o nos_fw-la poma_fw-la natamus_fw-la gabriel_n powel_n of_o st._n maryhall_n in_o oxford_n the_o publisher_n of_o that_o book_n say_v in_o his_o animadversion_n on_o the_o say_a beginning_n of_o that_o supplication_n how_o can_v papist_n without_o blush_v acknowledge_v his_o majesty_n title_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n to_o be_v direct_a see_v they_o have_v heretofore_o most_o indirect_o and_o most_o unjust_o oppugn_v the_o same_o which_o traitorous_a parson_n confess_v albeit_o for_o excuse_n he_o assure_v himself_o that_o whatsoever_o have_v be_v say_v write_v or_o do_v by_o any_o catholic_n against_o his_o majesty_n which_o with_o some_o other_o may_v breed_v disgust_n have_v be_v direct_v to_o this_o end_n to_o make_v his_o majesty_n first_o a_o catholic_n and_o than_o our_o king_n as_o if_o treason_n and_o treachery_n against_o his_o highness_n can_v make_v he_o a_o catholic_n and_o impugn_v of_o his_o direct_a and_o just_a title_n tend_v to_o make_v he_o king._n rob._n parson_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o three_o conversion_n in_o the_o dedicat_fw-la addition_n to_o the_o catholic_n but_o though_o they_o give_v themselves_o as_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o oblivion_n as_o to_o the_o many_o treason_n of_o parson_n his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n yet_o in_o this_o supplication_n they_o forget_v not_o again_o in_o effect_n to_o use_v parson_n his_o division_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n into_o three_o part_n and_o so_o to_o shape_v the_o estimate_n of_o their_o number_n and_o they_o say_v in_o their_o first_o reason_n of_o state_n the_o world_n know_v that_o there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o subject_n in_o the_o realm_n the_o protestant_n the_o puritan_n and_o the_o catholic_n affect_v and_o by_o general_a report_n the_o subject_n catholick_o affect_v be_v not_o inferior_a to_o the_o protestant_n or_o puritan_n either_o in_o number_n or_o alliance_n etc._n etc._n and_o say_v powel_n in_o his_o note_n on_o that_o clause_n if_o by_o catholick_o affect_v you_o mean_v plain_o papist_n the_o world_n know_v that_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o protestant_n they_o be_v but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o handful_n of_o thief_n among_o honest_a subject_n however_o
the_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o thereby_o the_o lay_n on_o the_o taker_n a_o obligation_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n that_o be_v to_o outlast_v the_o life_n of_o the_o king_n and_o without_o any_o distinction_n of_o the_o religion_n true_a or_o pretend_a of_o such_o heir_n and_o successor_n of_o the_o obligation_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n arise_v from_o those_o oath_n mr._n pryn_n in_o his_o concordia_fw-la discors_fw-la print_v in_o the_o year_n 1659._o have_v write_v useful_o but_o because_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o late_a fermentation_n many_o pamphlet_n have_v be_v write_v pro_fw-la and_o c●n_n of_o the_o political_a part_n of_o the_o question_n relate_v to_o a_o popish_a successor_n and_o none_o that_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o have_v profess_o write_v of_o the_o casuistical_a part_n thereof_o and_o particular_o with_o relation_n to_o those_o oath_n and_o because_o i_o have_v hear_v that_o in_o some_o discourse_n about_o the_o same_o in_o some_o good_a company_n where_o the_o obligation_n by_o those_o oath_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n in_o point_n of_o conscience_n have_v be_v assert_v some_o good_a man_n have_v be_v blunder_v but_o of_o their_o apprehend_v the_o same_o by_o mistake_v the_o say_n in_o the_o civil-law_n that_o nemo_fw-la est_fw-la haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la and_o likewise_o some_o thing_n obvious_a in_o the_o common-law_n and_o i_o do_v fear_v that_o it_o may_v thence_o grow_v a_o common_a and_o vulgar_a error_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o obligation_n result_v from_o those_o oath_n and_o that_o as_o a_o supine_n neglect_v of_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n to_o find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o same_o will_v be_v very_o culpable_a so_o that_o a_o serious_a and_o dispassionate_a represent_v the_o same_o will_v to_o all_o man_n that_o regard_v the_o weight_n of_o a_o oath_n be_v very_o acceptable_a i_o have_v with_o as_o much_o recollection_n of_o th●ught_n as_o i_o can_v fai●ly_o and_o impartial_o write_v my_o opinion_n thereof_o casuistical_o and_o shall_v very_o short_o send_v it_o your_o lordship_n for_o your_o perusal_n and_o indeed_o as_o i_o shall_v not_o think_v i_o deal_v candid_o with_o any_o person_n of_o the_o popish_a persuasion_n if_o i_o shall_v be_v severe_a to_o he_o before_o i_o have_v a_o moral_a certainty_n of_o his_o have_v imbibe_v any_o of_o the_o principle_n imputable_a to_o popery_n that_o may_v be_v call_v unmoral_a or_o inhuman_a so_o it_o will_v especial_o seem_v to_o i_o somewhat_o like_o the_o draw_n on_o a_o naked_a man_n for_o a_o protestant_n at_o this_o time_n to_o write_v for_o the_o divest_v any_o popish_a prince_n of_o his_o legal_a property_n when_o few_o or_o no_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n either_o do_v or_o dare_v for_o fear_v of_o offend_v the_o pope_n draw_v their_o pen_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o such_o his_o property_n without_o respect_n to_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n he_o may_v hold_v what_o the_o pope_n do_v to_o obstruct_v king_n james_n succession_n i_o have_v mention_v and_o what_o favour_n any_o protestant_a prince_n can_v hope_v for_o from_o the_o holy_a see_v may_v appear_v out_o of_o de_fw-fr ossat_n letter_n to_o villeroy_n in_o the_o year_n 1598._o book_n four_o where_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o artifices_fw-la use_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o make_v he_o believe_v that_o if_o harry_n the_o four_o recover_v the_o marquisate_n of_o salusium_n it_o will_v be_v command_v by_o hugonot_n he_o thereupon_o advise_v the_o king_n to_o declare_v the_o contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o add_v i_o will_v not_o interpose_v to_o write_v this_o to_o you_o if_o i_o do_v not_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o this_o court_n hold_v that_o to_o maintain_v the_o catholic_a religion_n in_o a_o country_n and_o to_o preserve_v it_o from_o heresy_n his_o holiness_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o deprive_v the_o true_a lord_n and_o possessor_n of_o it_o and_o give_v it_o away_o to_o any_o other_o who_o have_v no_o property_n therein_o and_o who_o shall_v be_v more_o able_a and_o willing_a there_o to_o preserve_v the_o catholic_a faith._n i_o meet_v with_o some_o passage_n late_o in_o a_o pamphlet_n that_o concern_v the_o succession_n where_o the_o author_n have_v liberal_o descant_v on_o the_o word_n heir_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n say_v as_o i_o will_v not_o take_v up_o arm_n without_o the_o king_n commission_n nor_o enter_v into_o any_o association_n to_o commence_v in_o his_o life_n time_n against_o his_o consent_n etc._n etc._n so_o any_o one_o by_o who_o or_o for_o who_o any_o resignation_n of_o his_o majesty_n power_n shall_v be_v extort_a shall_v not_o reign_v over_o i_o and_o there_o be_v another_o very_a course_n expression_n there_o apply_v to_o a_o very_a fine_a person_n and_o one_o so_o every_o way_n true_o great_a that_o every_o age_n do_v not_o produce_v viz._n that_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o con_v little_a thanks_o to_o george_n earl_n of_o hallifax_n etc._n etc._n but_o according_a to_o the_o licence_n of_o speech_n use_v by_o that_o author_n i_o shall_v venture_v to_o declare_v that_o where_o ever_o i_o have_v a_o suffrage_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o a_o parliament-man_n if_o any_o candidate_n shall_v tell_v i_o that_o he_o serve_v in_o the_o place_n before_o and_o be_v for_o a_o exclusion_n bill_n rather_o than_o the_o king_n offer_v and_o without_o advise_v with_o his_o country_n will_v have_v any_o one_o of_o the_o royal_a line_n seclude_v from_o his_o title_n to_o the_o throne_n on_o the_o account_n of_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n for_o our_o english_a antiquity_n afford_v footstep_n of_o parliament-man_n on_o some_o weighty_a matter_n consult_v their_o town_n or_o county_n that_o choose_v they_o such_o a_o one_o if_o i_o can_v help_v it_o shall_v never_o represent_v i_o and_o moreover_o he_o who_o do_v not_o with_o acknowledgement_n of_o honour_n and_o gratitude_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o hallifax_n mention_v that_o bill_n that_o he_o bring_v into_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n in_o order_n to_o the_o extermination_n of_o popery_n that_o i_o speak_v of_o before_o and_o with_o it_o lodge_v in_o our_o statute_n book_n that_o man_n if_o i_o can_v help_v it_o shall_v never_o represent_v i_o i_o be_o not_o so_o rash_a in_o my_o effort_n against_o future_a time_n as_o perhaps_o that_o author_n be_v and_o can_v cite_v a_o great_a name_n for_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o representative_n advise_v with_o those_o they_o represent_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n to_o the_o state_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o lord_n viscount_n fal●land_n secretary_n of_o state_n in_o a_o print_a draught_n of_o a_o speech_n concern_v episcopacy_n etc._n etc._n say_v p._n 4._o mr._n speaker_n though_o we_o be_v trust_v by_o those_o that_o send_v we_o in_o case_n wherein_o their_o opinion_n be_v unknown_a yet_o true_o if_o i_o know_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o my_o town_n i_o doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o those_o that_o trust_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v follow_v my_o own_o opinion_n against_o they_o and_o thereupon_o his_o lordship_n advise_v the_o house_n of_o commons_o not_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o episcopacy_n and_o at_o least_o to_o stay_v till_o the_o next_o session_n and_o consult_v more_o particular_o with_o their_o elector_n about_o it_o and_o if_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o that_o great_a man_n any_o of_o our_o contender_n against_o popery_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o consult_v with_o those_o they_o represent_v about_o the_o meeting_n those_o royal_a and_o frank_n offer_v with_o hearty_a embrace_n they_o will_v perhaps_o have_v find_v the_o generality_n of_o those_o they_o represent_v zealous_a for_o their_o so_o do_v and_o if_o they_o that_o perhaps_o with_o a_o well_o intend_a gallantry_n of_o courage_n and_o scorn_n of_o popery_n throw_v out_o the_o bill_n that_o come_v from_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o year_n 1677_o shall_v ask_v those_o they_o represent_v if_o they_o do_v not_o now_o wish_v those_o bill_n have_v then_o pass_v into_o law_n i_o believe_v they_o will_v say_v they_o do_v and_o if_o they_o be_v ask_v whether_o that_o bill_n i_o mention_v before_o that_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o earl_n of_o hallifax_n have_v not_o likewise_o pass_v into_o a_o law_n i_o believe_v they_o will_v wish_v it_o have_v i_o presume_v not_o to_o inveigh_v against_o any_o of_o our_o late_a loyal_a parliament_n whatever_o slip_v in_o politics_n be_v by_o any_o there_o make_v or_o arbitrary_a vote_n there_o pass_v against_o particular_a person_n and_o be_o as_o impatient_v when_o i_o hear_v any_o inveigh_v against_o our_o representative_n who_o in_o the_o contention_n of_o popery_n exert_v all_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o faculty_n of_o their_o mind_n what_o
here_o and_o of_o their_o strenuous_a endeavour_n to_o free_v the_o kingdom_n from_o it_o have_v nothing_o in_o their_o famous_a 19_o proposition_n to_o bar_v the_o right_n of_o any_o heir_n to_o the_o crown_n for_o the_o be_v a_o papist_n the_o exact_a collection_n afford_v many_o instance_n of_o their_o declare_v that_o they_o will_v provide_v for_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o royal_a posterity_n in_o future_a time_n and_o in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o proviso_n respect_v any_o religionary_a tenet_n they_o shall_v profess_v it_o appear_v in_o mr._n pryn_n memorable_a speech_n in_o that_o house_n of_o commons_o on_o monday_n the_o four_o of_o december_n 1648._o touch_v the_o king_n answer_n to_o the_o proposition_n of_o both_o house_n whether_o they_o be_v satisfactory_a or_o not_o in_o the_o isle_n of_o wight_n treaty_n that_o that_o parliament_n that_o be_v concern_v for_o the_o save_n of_o their_o own_o credit_n as_o well_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o people_n to_o make_v that_o treaty_n to_o end_n with_o the_o extermination_n of_o popery_n from_o england_n do_v not_o in_o the_o application_n of_o the_o most_o proper_a mean_n for_o that_o purpose_n judge_v the_o debar_v any_o popish_a prince_n here_o from_o his_o inheritance_n of_o the_o crown_n any_o proper_a or_o necessary_a one_o for_o in_o p._n 58._o of_o that_o speech_n speech_n it_o be_v say_v as_o to_o any_o danger_n to_o our_o church_n from_o religion_n there_o be_v as_o good_a security_n and_o provision_n grant_v we_o by_o the_o king_n as_o we_o do_v or_o can_v desire_v even_o in_o our_o own_o term_n first_o he_o have_v full_o consent_v to_o pass_v a_o act_n for_o the_o more_o effectual_a disable_n of_o jesuit_n papist_n and_o popish_a recusant_n from_o disturb_v the_o state_n and_o delude_v the_o law_n and_o for_o the_o prescribe_v of_o a_o new_a oath_n for_o the_o more_o speedy_a discovery_n and_o conviction_n of_o recusant_n second_o to_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n for_o the_o education_n of_o the_o child_n of_o papist_n by_o protestant_n in_o the_o protestant_a religion_n three_o to_o a_o act_n for_o the_o due_a levy_v the_o penalty_n against_o recusant_n and_o dispose_v of_o they_o as_o both_o house_n shall_v appoint_v four_o to_o a_o act_n whereby_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o papist_n against_o the_o state_n may_v be_v prevent_v the_o law_n against_o they_o due_o execute_v and_o a_o strict_a course_n take_v to_o prevent_v the_o say_n or_o hear_v of_o mass_n in_o the_o court_n or_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n whereby_o it_o be_v make_v treason_n for_o any_o priest_n to_o say_v mass_n in_o the_o court_n or_o queen_n own_o chapel_n five_o to_o a_o act_n for_o abolish_n all_o innovation_n popish_a superstition_n ceremony_n altar_n rail_n crucifix_n image_n picture_n cope_n cross_n surplice_n vestment_n bowing_n at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n or_o towards_o the_o altar_n etc._n etc._n by_o all_o which_o act_v add_v to_o our_o former_a law_n against_o recusant_n i_o dare_v affirm_v we_o have_v far_o better_a provision_n and_o security_n against_o papist_n jesuit_n popish_a recusant_n &c_n &c_n for_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n safety_n and_o state_n too_o than_o any_o protestant_a church_n state_n and_o kingdom_n whatsoever_o so_o as_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v any_o future_a danger_n from_o papist_n or_o popery_n if_o we_o be_v careful_a to_o see_v those_o concession_n due_o put_v in_o execution_n when_o turn_v into_o act_n and_o our_o former_a law_n and_o afterward_o in_o that_o speech_n p._n 110._o he_o show_v how_o dear_a the_o king_n consent_v to_o pass_v five_o such_o act_n cost_v he_o for_o say_v he_o the_o jesuit_n understanding_n that_o the_o king_n beyond_o and_o contrary_a to_o their_o expectation_n have_v grant_v all_o or_o most_o of_o our_o proposition_n in_o the_o isle_n of_o wight_n and_o full_o condescend_v to_o five_o new_a bill_n for_o the_o extirpation_n of_o mass_n popery_n and_o popish_a innovation_n ●ut_v of_o his_o dominion_n and_o put_v all_o law_n in_o execution_n against_o they_o and_o for_o a_o speedy_a discovery_n and_o conviction_n of_o they_o then_o former_o &c_n &c_n be_v so_o enrage_v with_o the_o king_n and_o so_o inexorable_o incense_v against_o he_o as_o i_o be_o credible_o inform_v that_o now_o they_o be_v mad_a against_o he_o and_o thirst_n for_o nothing_o but_o his_o blood._n mr._n pryn_n have_v mention_v in_o that_o speech_n before_o that_o some_o jesuit_n and_o jesuited_a agitator_n have_v engage_v the_o army_n to_o dissolve_v that_o treaty_n with_o the_o king_n and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o that_o pry_a order_n who_o know_v the_o king_n aversion_n to_o popery_n as_o well_o as_o the_o most_o stupid_a of_o his_o enemy_n do_v when_o they_o see_v he_o consent_v to_o pass_v five_o such_o bill_n be_v the_o more_o brisk_a in_o execute_v its_o design_n against_o he_o and_o that_o as_o mr._n pryn_n say_v in_o his_o perfect_a narrative_n a_o priest_n present_a at_o the_o king_n death_n flourish_v his_o sword_n with_o a_o exclamation_n that_o now_o the_o great_a enemy_n we_o have_v in_o the_o world_n be_v go_v but_o this_o by_o the_o way_n i_o have_v not_o mention_v how_o dear_a the_o consent_n to_o those_o bill_n that_o will_v have_v be_v so_o fatal_a to_o popery_n and_o have_v prevent_v the_o phrase_n of_o its_o growth_n from_o be_v use_v at_o this_o time_n of_o day_n but_o that_o some_o person_n not_o verse_v in_o the_o passage_n of_o those_o evil_a day_n seem_v to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o religion_n to_o support_v that_o king_n title_n to_o martyrdom_n but_o what_o concern_v his_o adhesion_n to_o episcopacy_n and_o its_o revenue_n in_o the_o very_a solemn_a league_n and_o covenant_n its_o taker_n declare_v they_o have_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o honour_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o king_n majesty_n and_o his_o posterity_n and_o i_o have_v see_v a_o print_a paper_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a divine_n of_o one_o of_o the_o association_n in_o the_o late_a time_n wherein_o they_o do_v express_o affirm_v and_o argue_v it_o that_o any_o of_o the_o royal_a posterity_n here_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v debar_v from_o their_o hereditary_a right_n to_o the_o crown_n by_o be_v either_o papist_n or_o idolater_n if_o we_o look_v so_o far_o back_o as_o the_o great_a conjuncture_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n james_n james_n s_o reign_n namely_o in_o the_o year_n 1605._o we_o shall_v find_v that_o there_o be_v then_o a_o paper_n before_o mention_v publish_v in_o print_n call_v a_o protestation_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n make_v by_o the_o nonconform_a minister_n which_o be_v suspend_v or_o deprive_v that_o year_n and_o that_o the_o first_o paragraph_n or_o tenet_n in_o that_o protestation_n be_v this_o we_o hold_v and_o maintain_v the_o same_o authority_n and_o supremacy_n in_o all_o cause_n and_o over_o all_o person_n civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a grant_v by_o statute_n to_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o express_v and_o declare_v in_o the_o book_n of_o advertisement_n and_o injunction_n and_o in_o master_n bilson_n against_o the_o jesuit_n to_o be_v due_a in_o full_a and_o ample_a manner_n without_o any_o limitation_n or_o qualification_n to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n for_o ever_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o 4_o the_o paragraph_n in_o that_o protestation_n part_n whereof_o i_o have_v before_o recite_v be_v viz._n we_o hold_v that_o though_o the_o king_n of_o this_o realm_n be_v no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o very_a infidel_n yea_o and_o persecutor_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o yet_o those_o church_n that_o shall_v be_v gather_v together_o within_o these_o dominion_n aught_o to_o acknowledge_v and_o yield_v the_o same_o supremacy_n to_o they_o and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o their_o faith_n and_o christianity_n but_o to_o their_o very_a crown_n from_o which_o no_o subject_a or_o subject_n have_v power_n to_o separate_v or_o disjoin_v it_o and_o in_o the_o 18_o the_o paragraph_n they_o say_v that_o if_o the_o king_n subject_v himself_o to_o spiritual_a guide_n and_o governor_n shall_v afterward_o refuse_v to_o be_v govern_v and_o guide_v by_o they_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o live_v in_o notorious_a sin_n without_o repentance_n shall_v wilful_o contemn_v and_o despise_v all_o their_o holy_a and_o religious_a censure_n that_o then_o these_o governor_n be_v to_o refuse_v to_o administer_v the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n to_o he_o and_o to_o leave_v he_o to_o himself_o and_o to_o the_o secret_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o whole_o to_o resign_v and_o give_v over_o that_o spiritual_a charge_n and_o tuition_n over_o he_o which_o by_o call_v from_o god_n and_o the_o king_n they_o do_v undertake_v and_o more_o than_o this_o they_o may_v not_o do_v and_o after_o all_o this_o we_o
mind_n be_v there_o in_o the_o divine_n that_o govern_v our_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o late_a usurpation_n when_o those_o trier_n of_o minister_n will_v allow_v none_o to_o have_v a_o live_n or_o cure_n of_o soul_n that_o assert_v the_o tenet_n of_o arminius_n in_o religion_n which_o yet_o carry_v a_o face_n of_o so_o much_o probability_n to_o be_v maintain_v that_o a_o man_n who_o have_v use_v his_o utmost_a care_n in_o the_o investigation_n of_o truth_n therein_o assert_v they_o may_v claim_v it_o as_o his_o due_n by_o the_o purchase_n of_o christ_n blood_n that_o when_o he_o be_v require_v to_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n about_o the_o same_o his_o assert_v it_o that_o way_n shall_v not_o expose_v he_o to_o punishment_n and_o there_o be_v no_o controvert_v religionary_a speculative_a point_n of_o that_o nature_n wherein_o there_o be_v among_o learned_a man_n probabilis_fw-la causa_fw-la litigandi_fw-la and_o in_o some_o case_n too_o where_o it_o may_v touch_v too_o close_o upon_o our_o article_n and_o homily_n in_o which_o liberty_n of_o differ_v in_o judgement_n be_v here_o either_o prejudicial_a to_o their_o interest_n or_o common_a esteem_n thus_o though_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n make_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o particular_o our_o church_n of_o england_n in_o its_o homily_n have_v do_v so_o our_o famous_a dr._n hammond_n adventure_v as_o he_o think_v himself_o oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o publish_v it_o that_o simon_n magus_n be_v the_o man._n the_o most_o judicious_a comparer_n of_o time_n be_v sensible_a that_o there_o be_v now_o a_o more_o valuable_a libera_fw-la theologia_fw-la in_o england_n then_o be_v during_o the_o usurpation_n how_o glad_a will_v many_o of_o the_o independent_a and_o presbyterian_a divine_n than_o have_v be_v of_o the_o liberty_n to_o have_v teach_v their_o flock_n the_o notion_n they_o then_o think_v of_o importance_n as_o to_o the_o divine_a decree_n though_o they_o have_v be_v allow_v to_o have_v so_o do_v only_o in_o surplice_n or_o in_o vest_n of_o indian_a feather_n or_o any_o habit_n imaginable_a the_o old_a way_n of_o argue_v about_o speculative_a point_n in_o religion_n with_o passion_n and_o loudness_n and_o be_v tedious_a therein_o be_v grow_v out_o of_o use_n and_o a_o gentlemanly_a candour_n in_o discourse_n of_o the_o same_o with_o that_o moderate_a temper_n that_o man_n use_v in_o debate_v natural_a experiment_n have_v succeed_v in_o its_o room_n and_o it_o be_v account_v pedantry_n for_o any_o one_o in_o good_a company_n to_o pass_v for_o a_o victor_n in_o notion_n by_o have_v the_o last_o word_n and_o seem_v a_o baffler_n in_o dispute_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v our_o divine_n and_o the_o lay_v literati_fw-la have_v since_o the_o king_n restoration_n be_v more_o addict_v to_o the_o study_n of_o real_a learning_n then_o former_o which_o require_v quiet_a of_o thought_n in_o its_o pursuit_n have_v bring_v noise_n out_o of_o request_n i_o need_v not_o again_o mention_v the_o obligation_n our_o land_n have_v receive_v from_o the_o royal_a society_n in_o make_v so_o great_a a_o plantation_n of_o real_a knowledge_n in_o it_o it_o be_v high_a time_n at_o last_o when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v settle_v on_o its_o proper_a basis_n to_o improve_v it_o with_o such_o strong_a and_o nervous_a knowledge_n that_o will_v be_v like_o the_o strong_a man_n keep_v possession_n in_o man_n understanding_n during_o which_o either_o popery_n or_o presbytery_n kingdom_n of_o darkness_n can_v overthrow_v our_o quiet_n there_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1599_o reckon_v in_o christendom_n 2,25044_o monastery_n and_o from_o whence_o all_o the_o great_a revenue_n there_o bestow_v on_o man_n to_o think_v send_v not_o perhaps_o one_o notion_n of_o real_a learning_n into_o the_o world._n but_o their_o profess_a business_n be_v to_o extinguish_v the_o light_n of_o knowledge_n and_o not_o to_o increase_v it_o and_o that_o which_o they_o make_v their_o real_a study_n be_v to_o find_v out_o artifices_fw-la to_o make_v mankind_n fit_a still_o and_o quiet_a in_o the_o dark_a and_o to_o invent_v torment_n and_o punishment_n for_o those_o that_o will_v not_o do_v so_o and_o to_o ridicule_n those_o who_o pry_v into_o nature_n and_o but_o look_v towards_o arithmetic_n and_o geometry_n by_o the_o name_n of_o student_n of_o the_o black_a art_n and_o conjurer_n a_o humour_n that_o be_v not_o quite_o exterminate_v hence_o from_o the_o time_n of_o friar_n bacon_n to_o my_o lord_n bacon_n for_o our_o pious_a martyrologer_n mention_v occasionaly_a dr._n d_o you_o the_o mathematician_n call_v he_o dr._n dee_n the_o conjurer_n thus_o almighty_a god_n though_o the_o first_o thing_n he_o make_v for_o the_o world_n in_o general_n be_v external_a light_n yet_o one_o of_o the_o last_o thing_n he_o have_v make_v or_o so_o much_o bless_v the_o world_n with_o be_v real_a learning_n intellectual_a light_n and_o even_o that_o whereby_o we_o so_o know_o converse_v with_o his_o work_n of_o nature_n and_o so_o careless_a be_v mankind_n in_o consider_v the_o frame_n of_o their_o own_o body_n that_o dr._n henshaw_n a_o late_a ornament_n of_o the_o royal_a society_n have_v true_o observe_v it_o in_o his_o book_n of_o fermentation_n that_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o this_o last_o century_n the_o knowledge_n of_o anatomy_n have_v be_v enrich_v by_o a_o full_a three_o part_n at_o least_o mankind_n be_v so_o busy_a in_o murder_a one_o another_o body_n of_o old_a under_o the_o notion_n of_o christian_n and_o afterward_o as_o heretic_n that_o it_o have_v no_o leisure_n to_o dissect_v they_o and_o be_v whole_o take_v up_o by_o study_v experiment_n of_o cruelty_n equal_a to_o the_o make_n of_o live_a anatomy_n of_o each_o other_o and_o though_o the_o holy_a jesus_n come_v into_o the_o world_n not_o to_o destroy_v man_n life_n but_o to_o save_v they_o and_o for_o that_o purpose_n though_o the_o divine_a philanthropy_n choose_v that_o time_n for_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n when_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v arrive_v at_o a_o great_a height_n than_o ever_o before_o yet_o by_o the_o deprave_a nature_n of_o man_n pervert_v and_o corrupt_v the_o use_n of_o religion_n the_o fantastic_a vile_a sacrifice_v of_o man_n have_v since_o increase_v in_o the_o infanticidium_fw-la of_o herod_n that_o be_v present_o after_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o holy_a child_n jesus_n samuel_n siderocrates_n say_v that_o there_o be_v slay_v of_o infant_n of_o 2_o year_n old_a and_o under_o that_o age_n 444000_o and_o paulus_n volzius_fw-la make_v they_o to_o be_v a_o million_o and_o 44_o thousand_o and_o afterward_o among_o the_o heathen_n he_o be_v account_v the_o magnus_n apollo_n not_o who_o can_v find_v way_n of_o save_v but_o destroy_v christian_a man_n no_o few_o than_o seven_o book_n be_v write_v by_o ulpian_n to_o show_v the_o several_a punishment_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v inflict_v on_o christian_n and_o though_o livy_n say_v of_o the_o roman_n in_o hoc_fw-la gloriari_fw-la licet_fw-la nulli_fw-la gentium_fw-la mitiores_fw-la placuisse_fw-la paenas_fw-la yet_o tacitus_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o 15_o book_n of_o his_o annal_n primo_fw-la correpti_fw-la qui_fw-la fatebantur_fw-la deinde_fw-la indicio_fw-la eorum_fw-la multitudo_fw-la ingens_fw-la haud_fw-la perinde_v in_fw-la crimine_fw-la incendii_fw-la quam_fw-la odio_fw-la humani_fw-la generis_fw-la convicti_fw-la sunt_fw-la ea_fw-la pereuntibus_fw-la addita_fw-la ludibria_fw-la aut_fw-la ferarum_fw-la tergis_fw-la contecti_fw-la laniatu_fw-la canum_fw-la interirent_fw-la aut_fw-la crucibus_fw-la affixi_fw-la aut_fw-la flammandi_fw-la aut_fw-la ubi_fw-la defecisset_fw-la dies_fw-la in_o usum_fw-la nocturni_fw-la luminis_fw-la urerentur_fw-la several_a author_n relate_v it_o as_o a_o decree_n of_o nero_n nero_n s_z quisquis_fw-la christianum_fw-la se_fw-la esse_fw-la confitetur_fw-la be_v tanquam_fw-la generis_fw-la humani_fw-la convictus_fw-la hostess_fw-la sine_fw-la ulteriori_fw-la svi_fw-la defension_n capite_fw-la plectitor_n enough_o have_v be_v already_o say_v to_o parallel_v the_o cruelty_n of_o new_a rome_n with_o that_o of_o old_a towards_o the_o heterodox_n and_o how_o ingenious_a the_o virtuoso_n of_o the_o inquisition_n have_v be_v in_o find_v out_o such_o torment_n for_o heretic_n as_o can_v multiply_v one_o death_n into_o a_o thousand_o i_o with_o horror_n think_v of_o how_o profound_a a_o submission_n and_o deference_n to_o the_o unaccountable_a will_n of_o heaven_n do_v this_o consideration_n require_v namely_o that_o christ_n little_a flock_n even_o in_o the_o ark_n of_o his_o church_n be_v not_o only_o endanger_v by_o a_o deluge_n from_o without_o but_o by_o one_o within_o and_o that_o of_o its_o own_o blood_n and_o that_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n appear_v to_o a_o common_a eye_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v make_v on_o purpose_n to_o feed_v the_o grievous_a wolf_n that_o be_v enter_v in_o among_o they_o and_o as_o it_o may_v be_v suppose_v that_o thousand_o of_o harmless_a sheep_n be_v in_o the_o ark_n of_o noah_n
his_o oration_n that_o est_fw-la aliquid_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la oporteat_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la licet_fw-la and_o when_o he_o in_o his_o office_n render_v it_o to_o be_v inhonestum_fw-la injuriam_fw-la alteri_fw-la non_fw-la propulsare_fw-la and_o when_o the_o rule_n of_o law_n can_v tell_v we_o that_o non_fw-la omne_fw-la quod_fw-la licet_fw-la honestum_fw-la est_fw-la and_o when_o seneca_n can_v contemn_v the_o innocence_n as_o poor_a that_o be_v not_o more_o than_o the_o law_n require_v and_o thereupon_o say_v qua●to_fw-la latiùs_fw-la officiorum_fw-la patet_fw-la quam_fw-la juris_fw-la regula_n multa_fw-la pietas_fw-la humanitas_fw-la liberalitas_fw-la justitia_fw-la fides_n exigunt_fw-la quae_fw-la omne_fw-la extra_fw-la publicas_fw-la tabulas_fw-la sunt_fw-la and_o when_o that_o st._n paul_n have_v ennoble_v the_o moral_a office_n of_o christian_n by_o enjoin_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n the_o practice_n of_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v true_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v honest_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v just_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v pure_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v lovely_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v of_o good_a report_n etc._n etc._n it_o may_v well_o be_v expect_v that_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o a_o christian_a shall_v prevail_v on_o christian_n not_o to_o attempt_v the_o compass_v of_o any_o thing_n by_o a_o new_a law_n contrary_a to_o what_o they_o have_v by_o their_o oath_n promise_v to_o defend_v and_o contrary_a to_o the_o old_a fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o have_v thus_o far_o proceed_v my_o 8_o conclusion_n shall_v be_v that_o our_o obligation_n thus_o relate_v both_o to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n do_v clear_o arise_v from_o those_o oath_n without_o any_o condition_n on_o he_o or_o their_o part_n to_o be_v perform_v and_o particular_o without_o any_o respect_n have_v to_o what_o religion_n they_o shall_v profess_v we_o know_v that_o juramentum_fw-la limitatè_fw-la praestitum_fw-la limitatum_fw-la producit_fw-la consensum_fw-la &_o effectum_fw-la but_o it_o be_v likewise_o as_o notorious_a that_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o limitation_n no_o if_n or_o and_o be_v in_o these_o oath_n and_o therefore_o that_o know_a rule_n of_o non_fw-la est_fw-la distinguendum_fw-la ubi_fw-la lex_fw-la non_fw-la distinguit_fw-la must_v here_o take_v place_n in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n sanderson_n in_o his_o four_o lecture_n say_v if_o two_o oblige_v themselves_o mutual_o in_o promise_n of_o different_a kind_n or_o not_o at_o the_o same_o time_n or_o otherwise_o without_o mutual_a respect_n faith_n violate_v by_o the_o one_o absolve_v not_o the_o other_o obligation_n but_o each_o be_v bind_v to_o stand_v to_o his_o oath_n though_o the_o other_o have_v not_o perform_v his_o part_n for_o example_n a_o king_n simple_o and_o without_o respect_n to_o the_o allegiance_n of_o his_o subject_n swear_v to_o administer_v his_o government_n righteous_o and_o according_a to_o law._n the_o subject_n at_o another_o time_n simple_o and_o without_o respect_n to_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o prince_n swear_v allegiance_n and_o due_a obedience_n to_o he_o they_o be_v both_o bind_v faithful_o to_o perform_v their_o several_a duty_n nor_o will_v the_o king_n be_v absolve_v from_o his_o oath_n if_o subject_n shall_v not_o perform_v their_o due_a obedience_n nor_o subject_n from_o they_o though_o the_o king_n shall_v turn_v from_o the_o path_n of_o justice._n mr._n nigh_o do_v therefore_o in_o a_o print_a treatise_n of_o his_o very_a well_o for_o this_o purpose_n cite_v bishop_n bilson_n and_o say_v that_o bishop_n bilson_n a_o great_a searcher_n into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o king_n give_v this_o as_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o oath_n viz._n the_o oath_n as_o say_v the_o bishop_n express_v not_o king_n duty_n to_o god_n but_o we_o to_o they_o as_o they_o must_v be_v obey_v when_o they_o join_v with_o truth_n so_o must_v they_o be_v endure_v when_o they_o fall_v into_o error_n which_o side_n soever_o they_o take_v either_o obedience_n to_o their_o will_n or_o submission_n to_o their_o sword_n be_v their_o due_n by_o god_n law._n and_o though_o some_o ill_a anti-papists_a have_v ridicule_v passive_a obedience_n after_o they_o have_v give_v the_o cautio_fw-la juratoria_fw-la against_o their_o own_v the_o doctrine_n of_o resistance_n mr._n nigh_o do_v very_o particular_o in_o p._n 138_o of_o that_o book_n inveigh_v against_o that_o doctrine_n and_o say_v nor_o if_o they_o be_v able_a i._n e._n to_o resist_v be_v it_o lawful_a for_o a_o church_n to_o compel_v by_o the_o sword_n more_o than_o the_o magistrate_n may_v by_o the_o key_n or_o what_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o sacred_a function_n uzza_fw-mi err_v in_o the_o latter_a and_o peter_n in_o the_o former_a the_o primitive_a rule_n and_o practice_n be_v this_o be_v persecute_v in_o one_o city_n to_o fly_v into_o another_o and_o pray_v that_o their_o flight_n may_v not_o be_v in_o the_o winter_n i_o have_v read_v a_o manuscript_n book_n of_o mr._n nigh_o call_v a_o discourse_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o supremacy_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n in_o dispense_n with_o the_o penalty_n thereof_o where_o he_o assert_n throughout_o the_o legality_n of_o his_o majesty_n be_v declaration_n of_o indulgence_n and_o the_o book_n be_v write_v profess_o for_o that_o purpose_n and_o he_o there_o do_v very_o rational_o inculcate_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o exclusion_n as_o in_o his_o other_o book_n he_o do_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o resistance_n and_o say_v that_o civil_a right_n and_o claim_n and_o temporal_a thing_n be_v the_o immediate_a and_o intrinsic_n concern_v and_o interest_n of_o all_o state_n dominium_fw-la non_fw-la fundatur_fw-la in_o gratiâ_fw-la the_o just_a claim_n of_o a_o prince_n may_v not_o be_v interrupt_v upon_o account_n he_o be_v of_o this_o or_o that_o religion_n or_o persuasion_n nor_o may_v a_o subject_n be_v just_o banish_v imprison_a confiscate_v or_o ruin_v on_o the_o mere_a account_n of_o religion_n or_o because_o his_o conscience_n be_v not_o cast_v into_o the_o same_o mould_n with_o the_o prince_n or_o present_a establishment_n it_o be_v popery_n to_o deny_v allegiance_n to_o a_o prince_n or_o protection_n to_o a_o subject_a upon_o the_o account_n of_o any_o such_o difference_n it_o be_v therefore_o no_o wonder_n that_o our_o ancestor_n frame_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n will_v have_v no_o principle_n of_o popery_n therein_o favour_v by_o a_o side_n wind_n which_o according_a to_o mr._n ny_n sense_n must_v have_v happen_v have_v there_o be_v any_o distinguish_n reserve_v or_o limitation_n or_o restriction_n in_o the_o oath_n respect_v the_o religion_n of_o our_o prince_n and_o because_o many_o man_n have_v be_v in_o this_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n tempt_v to_o strain_v their_o oath_n and_o their_o conscience_n by_o excessive_a fear_n and_o jealousy_n relate_v to_o religion_n and_o as_o if_o god_n can_v not_o govern_v the_o world_n but_o by_o prince_n and_o their_o subject_n be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o because_o mr._n ny_n judgement_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n among_o many_o of_o our_o religionary_a dissenter_n i_o shall_v here_o insert_v somewhat_o more_o out_o of_o that_o manuscript_n of_o he_o that_o fall_v under_o this_o consideration_n and_o which_o be_v indeed_o write_v with_o great_a weight_n and_o authority_n of_o reason_n and_o worthy_a the_o writer_n great_a ability_n he_o have_v there_o put_v a_o question_n relate_v to_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v the_o great_a concern_v of_o a_o nation_n and_o to_o the_o trust_n of_o dispense_n with_o the_o penalty_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n say_v in_o answer_n to_o it_o i_o endeavour_v to_o unfold_v 1._o in_o what_o sense_n religion_n be_v the_o concern_v of_o the_o state._n 2._o the_o nature_n of_o this_o trust_n and_o as_o to_o the_o first_o he_o say_v the_o moment_n and_o weight_n of_o a_o matter_n in_o our_o deliberation_n have_v its_o proportion_n as_o either_o under_o a_o absolute_a or_o respective_a consideration_n wisdom_n be_v better_a than_o riches_n in_o itself_o absolute_o but_o not_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o support_n of_o this_o present_a life_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o divine_a thing_n be_v better_a than_o to_o know_v the_o virtue_n of_o drug_n and_o plant_n but_o not_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o study_n of_o physic_n so_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o better_a part_n in_o itself_o consider_v but_o in_o its_o respective_a consideration_n as_o to_o the_o family_n of_o a_o particular_a person_n or_o community_n of_o man_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o civil_a affair_n there_o be_v other_z qualification_n and_o inducement_n of_o great_a consequence_n and_o more_o direct_o and_o immediate_o tend_v to_o the_o be_v or_o well-being_n thereof_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mistake_n in_o this_o great_a concernment_n i_o further_o distinguish_v there_o come_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o religion_n the_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n that_o be_v
word_n in_o the_o oath_n although_o it_o be_v a_o common_a sure_a rule_n that_o verba_fw-la ubi_fw-la sunt_fw-la expressa_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la supervacanea_fw-la est_fw-la quaestio_fw-la yet_o i_o shall_v ex_fw-la superabundanti_fw-la choose_v to_o corroborate_v such_o my_o assertion_n by_o lay_v down_o this_o as_o my_o 9th_o and_o last_o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v the_o lawgiver_n intention_n to_o bind_v the_o taker_n of_o these_o oath_n not_o only_o to_o bear_v true_a faith_n and_o allegiance_n to_o his_o majesty_n but_o to_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o due_a and_o legal_a course_n of_o descent_n as_o i_o have_v before_o express_v it_o need_v not_o be_v much_o dilate_v on_o that_o relation_n be_v minimae_fw-la entitatis_fw-la but_o maximae_fw-la efficaciae_fw-la and_o that_o liberi_fw-la sunt_fw-la quasi_fw-la part_n &_o appendix_n parentum_fw-la not_o only_a fictione_n juris_fw-la but_o naturâ_fw-la &_o ●ei_fw-la veritate_fw-la and_o that_o in_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o the_o design_v the_o obligation_n to_o arise_v thence_o the_o king_n have_v a_o necessary_a regard_n to_o natural_a affection_n and_o to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n in_o the_o line_n of_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n and_o suitable_o to_o what_o be_v express_v in_o the_o preamble_n of_o the_o statute_n of_o 25_o h._n 8._o c._n 22._o viz._n that_o since_o it_o be_v the_o natural_a inclination_n of_o every_o man_n glad_o and_o willing_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o surety_n of_o both_o his_o title_n and_o succession_n although_o it_o touch_v his_o only_a private_a cause_n we_o therefore_o reckon_v ourselves_o much_o more_o bind_v to_o beseech_v and_o instant_n your_o highness_n to_o foresee_v and_o provide_v for_o the_o present_a surety_n of_o both_o you_o and_o of_o your_o most_o lawful_a succession_n and_o heir_n nor_o need_v it_o be_v much_o insist_v on_o that_o it_o be_v natural_a for_o every_o government_n to_o defend_v and_o preserve_v itself_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o author_n of_o the_o exercitation_n cite_v alsted_n a_o lutheran_n divine_a and_o likewise_o grotius_n and_o dudley_n fenner_n for_o maintain_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o what_o the_o old_a athenian_a famous_a oath_n enjoin_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o its_o polity_n namely_o of_o any_o private_a person_n kill_v any_o usurper_n or_o one_o who_o without_o a_o lawful_a title_n forcible_o invade_v the_o government_n the_o athenian_n have_v several_a oath_n of_o a_o high_a nature_n by_o the_o religion_n of_o which_o they_o tie_v themselves_o to_o defend_v their_o government_n and_o one_o be_v the_o jusjurandum_fw-la epheborum_fw-la which_o they_o take_v when_o 20_o year_n old_a and_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o petitus_fw-la his_o noble_a commentary_n on_o the_o athenian_a law_n and_o part_n of_o which_o as_o render_v by_o he_o into_o latin_a be_v patriam_fw-la liberis_fw-la non_fw-la relinquam_fw-la in_o deteriore_fw-la sed_fw-la potius_fw-la in_o meliore_fw-la statu_fw-la navigabo_fw-la ad_fw-la terram_fw-la eamque_fw-la colam_fw-la quantulacunque_fw-la illa_fw-la sit_fw-la quae_fw-la habenda_fw-la mihi_fw-la tradetur_fw-la parebo_fw-la legibus_fw-la quae_fw-la obtinent_fw-la etc._n etc._n quod_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la leges_fw-la abrogare_fw-la velit_fw-la populo_fw-la non_fw-la sciscente_fw-la minime_fw-la feram_fw-la vindicabo_fw-la autem_fw-la sive_fw-la solus_fw-la sive_fw-la cum_fw-la aliis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la patria_fw-la sacra_fw-la colam_fw-la etc._n etc._n ad_fw-la mortem_fw-la usque_fw-la pro_fw-la nutriciâ_fw-la terrâ_fw-la dimicabo_fw-la but_o this_o oath_n though_o famous_a enough_o be_v not_o the_o famous_a one_o i_o refer_v to_o but_o it_o be_v the_o other_o of_o which_o the_o formula_fw-la be_v set_v down_o in_o petitus_fw-la there_o p._n 232_o 233._o and_o which_o begin_v with_o occidam_fw-la meâ_fw-la ipsius_fw-la manu_fw-la si_fw-la possim_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la everterit_fw-la rempublicam_fw-la atheniensium_fw-la aut_fw-la e●_n eversâ_fw-la magistratum_fw-la gesserit_fw-la in_o posterum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o oath_n of_o so_o high_a and_o strange_a a_o nature_n be_v make_v short_o after_o the_o drive_v out_o the_o thirty_o tyrant_n and_o the_o law_n make_v that_o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la atheniensium_fw-la rempublicam_fw-la evertat_fw-la aut_fw-la eâ_fw-la eversê_fw-la magistratum_fw-la gerat_fw-la atheniensium_fw-la hostess_fw-la esto_fw-la impunèque_fw-la occiditor_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o secure_v their_o government_n forever_o from_o future_a usurpation_n be_v the_o intent_n of_o that_o terrible_a oath_n and_o to_o secure_v the_o government_n of_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n here_o be_v the_o intent_n of_o our_o gentle_a one_o and_o sufficient_o favour_v of_o the_o mansuetudo_fw-la evangelii_n and_o which_o oath_n however_o bind_v the_o loyal_a to_o defend_v the_o government_n with_o their_o life_n do_v yet_o strict_o bind_v to_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o crown_n one_o of_o which_o be_v both_o by_o the_o 13_o of_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o lex_fw-la terrae_fw-la to_o be_v a_o terror_n to_o the_o evil_a and_o to_o bear_v the_o sword._n but_o sir_n e._n coke_n have_v tell_v we_o in_o his_o commentary_n that_o the_o true_a scope_n and_o design_n of_o our_o statute_n law_n be_v oftentimes_o not_o to_o be_v understand_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o age_n when_o the_o particular_a statute_n be_v make_v i_o shall_v look_v back_o on_o the_o conjuncture_n when_o the_o act_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v make_v take_v notice_n that_o by_o many_o particular_a matter_n then_o obvious_a to_o all_o man_n thought_n it_o appear_v worthy_a of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o government_n then_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o security_n both_o of_o his_o majesty_n and_o of_o the_o succession_n any_o who_o shall_v read_v de_fw-fr ossat_n letter_n will_v find_v the_o various_a deep_a design_n there_o open_v that_o relate_v to_o several_a foreign_a prince_n and_o potentate_n jealousy_n of_o the_o power_n that_o england_n will_v have_v in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o unite_n of_o the_o strength_n of_o scotland_n to_o it_o upon_o the_o rightful_a succession_n of_o king_n james_n to_o the_o monarchy_n and_o perhaps_o rather_o out_o of_o a_o design_n to_o amuse_v they_o than_o out_o of_o a_o humour_n to_o put_v by_o the_o thought_n of_o mortality_n queen_n elizabeth_n do_v show_v so_o much_o unwillingness_n sometime_o to_o hear_v and_o speak_v of_o her_o successor_n and_o during_o the_o constrain_a altum_fw-la silentium_fw-la of_o the_o succession_n then_o here_o a_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n be_v write_v by_o father_n parson_n and_o which_o make_v noise_n enough_o in_o the_o world_n as_o those_o letter_n mention_v and_o by_o which_o book_n the_o author_n intend_v that_o our_o hereditary_a monarchy_n shall_v be_v thunder_n strike_v especial_o with_o the_o help_n of_o the_o papal_a breves_fw-la that_o come_v here_o to_o obstruct_v the_o succession_n king_n james_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a monarch_n print_v a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o lie_v of_o tortus_fw-la i._n e._n bellarmin_n with_o a_o brief_a confutation_n of_o they_o refer_v to_o one_o lie_v of_o tortus_fw-la p._n 47_o viz._n in_o which_o word_n of_o the_o breves_fw-la of_o clement_n the_o 8_o not_o only_a king_n james_n of_o scotland_n be_v not_o exclude_v but_o include_v rather_o and_o the_o confutation_n be_v thus_o viz._n if_o the_o breves_fw-la of_o clement_n do_v not_o exclude_v i_o from_o the_o kingdom_n but_o rather_o do_v include_v i_o why_o do_v garnet_n burn_v they_o why_o will_v he_o not_o reserve_v they_o that_o i_o may_v have_v see_v they_o that_o so_o he_o may_v have_v obtain_v more_o favour_n at_o my_o hand_n for_o he_o and_o his_o catholic_n and_o that_o king_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n p._n 29._o refer_v to_o the_o two_o breves_fw-la which_o clemens_n octavus_n send_v to_o england_n immediate_o before_o queen_n elizabeth_n death_n debar_v he_o from_o the_o crown_n or_o any_o other_o that_o either_o will_v profess_v or_o any_o way_n tolerate_v the_o professor_n of_o his_o religion_n contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n manifold_a vow_n and_o protestation_n simul_n &_o eodem_fw-la tempore_fw-la and_o as_o it_o be_v deliver_v uno_fw-la &_o eodem_fw-la spiritu_fw-la to_o divers_a of_o his_o majesty_n minister_n abroad_o profess_v such_o kindness_n and_o show_v such_o forwardness_n to_o advance_v his_o majesty_n to_o the_o english_a crown_n any_o one_o who_o read_v in_o de_fw-fr ossat_n the_o inclination_n of_o that_o pope_n to_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o this_o kind_n will_v not_o wonder_v at_o his_o majesty_n be_v thus_o expose_v his_o vn-holyness_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o breves_fw-la be_v sufficient_o there_o explain_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v according_a to_o his_o majesty_n measure_n publish_v of_o they_o that_o great_a king_n be_v sufficient_o acquaint_v with_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o papacy_n that_o have_v be_v so_o injurious_a to_o
overthrow_v and_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o book_n be_v to_o plant_v loyalty_n throughout_o the_o kingdom_n and_o to_o make_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v re_fw-mi u●râ_fw-la a_o premuniment_n in_o all_o man_n conscience_n against_o faction_n and_o rebellion_n the_o sect_n of_o king_n james_n old_a enemy_n in_o scotland_n the_o puritan_n and_o who_o he_o say_v he_o find_v there_o more_o dishonest_a than_o the_o highlander_n and_o border_n thief_n be_v not_o name_v in_o that_o book_n and_o he_o have_v clear_v they_o from_o be_v participant_n in_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n do_v with_o justice_n as_o well_o as_o perhaps_o with_o hope_n of_o their_o emendation_n after_o the_o tenet_n of_o loyalty_n that_o have_v be_v then_o late_o publish_v by_o the_o english_a nonconformist_n order_n that_o sect_n not_o to_o be_v in_o that_o book_n mark_v nigro_n carbone_fw-la but_o he_o can_v not_o but_o know_v their_o former_a principle_n as_o well_o as_o practice_n here_o as_o exact_o as_o any_o one_o and_o in_o his_o canon_n here_o publish_v a_o year_n before_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n the_o impugner_n of_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v various_o censure_v the_o author_n of_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v censure_v by_o the_o 9th_o canon_n and_o the_o maintainer_n of_o schismatic_n by_o the_o 10_o and_o by_o the_o 27_o schismatic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o communion_n the_o maintainer_n of_o conventicle_n be_v censure_v by_o the_o 11_o and_o the_o maintainer_n of_o constitution_n make_v in_o conventicle_n censure_v by_o the_o 12_o and_o it_o refer_v to_o the_o wicked_a and_o anabaptistical_n error_n of_o some_o who_o outrage_v the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o regal_a right_n and_o who_o do_v meet_v and_o make_v rule_n and_o order_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a without_o the_o king_n authority_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o king_n know_v that_o such_o person_n who_o have_v make_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n have_v thereby_o make_v faction_n in_o the_o state_n and_o will_v make_v more_o the_o church_n be_v necessary_o include_v in_o the_o state_n and_o will_v be_v as_o dry_a ti●der_n ready_a to_o take_v the_o fire_n of_o rebellion_n from_o such_o republican_n tenet_n as_o be_v in_o parson_n book_n of_o the_o succession_n and_o the_o write_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o romanist_n and_o be_v just_o apprehensive_a that_o such_o antimonarchical_a principle_n as_o have_v infect_v the_o scotch_a puritan_n may_v in_o time_n infect_v the_o english_a one_o as_o well_o as_o that_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o powder-traitor_n may_v infect_v other_o loyal_a papist_n he_o apply_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n as_o a_o general_a necessary_a antidote_n to_o the_o conscience_n of_o his_o subject_n to_o prevent_v such_o infection_n in_o p._n 109._o of_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n he_o cite_v bellarmine_n for_o the_o tenet_n that_o king_n have_v not_o their_o authority_n nor_o office_n immediate_o from_o god_n and_o that_o king_n may_v be_v depose_v by_o their_o people_n for_o divers_a respect_n and_o when_o such_o writer_n do_v so_o spiteful_o with_o the_o papal_a power_n endeavour_v likewise_o to_o bring_v in_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o people_n to_o overwhelm_v king_n it_o be_v time_n to_o raise_v the_o bank_n of_o that_o oath_n the_o high_a against_o the_o same_o and_o for_o the_o taker_n of_o that_o oath_n to_o be_v oblige_v to_o bear_v faith_n and_o true_a allegiance_n to_o his_o majesty_n his_o heir_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o and_o they_o to_o defend_v etc._n etc._n against_o all_o conspiracy_n etc._n etc._n which_o shall_v be_v make_v against_o his_o or_o their_o person_n their_o crown_n and_o dignity_n by_o reason_n or_o colour_n of_o any_o such_o sentence_n or_o declaration_n or_o otherwise_o and_o to_o declare_v that_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o have_v power_n to_o absolve_v they_o of_o this_o oath_n when_o therefore_o i_o see_v any_o serious_a man_n disloyal_a who_o have_v take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o who_o necessity_n as_o we_o say_v do_v not_o draw_v to_o turpitude_n i_o still_o attribute_n much_o of_o his_o disloyalty_n to_o his_o not_o with_o intense_a and_o recollect_v think_v dwell_v on_o the_o view_n of_o his_o moral_a obligation_n in_o the_o clear_a mirror_n of_o that_o oath_n but_o to_o his_o cursory_n view_v they_o and_o as_o st._n james_n word_n be_v like_o a_o man_n behold_v his_o natural_a face_n in_o a_o glass_n but_o behold_v himself_o and_o go_v his_o way_n and_o straightway_o forget_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n he_o be_v how_o many_o outrageous_a act_n of_o disloyalty_n after_o 41_o have_v be_v avoid_v if_o the_o law_n of_o the_o oath_n have_v be_v write_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o taker_n of_o it_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v as_o for_o example_n since_o to_o prorogue_v or_o dissolve_v parliament_n be_v ever_o a_o know_v right_o and_o privilege_n belong_v to_o the_o crown_n can_v any_o person_n who_o have_v swear_v to_o defend_v its_o right_n and_o privilege_n endeavour_v to_o retrench_v that_o particular_a one_o by_o the_o act_n for_o the_o perpetuate_a the_o parliament_n of_o 40_o how_o easy_a will_v prince_n find_v their_o reign_n and_o subject_n their_o conscience_n if_o these_o will_v think_v of_o all_o the_o royal_a right_n they_o have_v swear_v to_o defend_v and_o how_o they_o be_v to_o defend_v they_o i_o have_v mention_v the_o great_a law_n of_o athens_n against_o any_o one_o bear_v office_n under_o a_o usurp_v power_n and_o the_o terrible_a oath_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o that_o law_n and_o i_o have_v likewise_o mention_v the_o author_n of_o the_o exercitation_n and_o mr._n prynn_n as_o assert_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o bear_v office_n under_o our_o late_a usurp_a power_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n have_v before_o oblige_v they_o to_o the_o king_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n the_o author_n of_o the_o exercitation_n do_v very_o apposite_o to_o strengthen_v that_o his_o loyal_a assertion_n cite_v a_o excellent_a passage_n out_o of_o tully_n epistle_n add_v atticum_n viz._n of_o his_o doubt_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o his_o bear_v the_o office_n of_o a_o councillor_n of_o state_n in_o such_o a_o case_n aec_fw-la magnum_fw-la sit_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d veniendumne_n sit_v in_o consilium_fw-la tyranni_fw-la si_fw-la be_v aliqu●_n de_fw-fr re_fw-mi bonâ_fw-la deliberaturus_fw-la sit_fw-la quare_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la ejusmodi_fw-la evenerit_fw-la ut_fw-la accersamur_fw-la quid_fw-la censeas_fw-la mihi_fw-la faciendum_fw-la utique_fw-la scribito_fw-la nihil_fw-la enim_fw-la mihi_fw-la adhuc_fw-la accidit_fw-la quod_fw-la majoris_fw-la consilii_fw-la est_fw-la and_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o great_a thing_n that_o incline_v so_o many_o to_o desire_v change_n in_o government_n be_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o acquest_n of_o office_n it_o be_v but_o natural_a for_o the_o athenian_a wisdom_n to_o fence_v with_o sharp_a precaution_n against_o the_o lusciousness_n of_o authority_n under_o a_o usurper_n and_o to_o let_v every_o man_n know_v as_o i_o may_v say_v in_o terrorem_fw-la that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o eat_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n he_o will_v die_v the_o death_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o every_o man_n and_o for_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o government_n in_o king_n james_n time_n by_o the_o effect_n and_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o the_o clause_n in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o tie_v man_n conscience_n from_o support_v any_o usurpation_n by_o bear_v office_n under_o it_o that_o law_n and_o oath_n of_o athens_n be_v no_o doubt_n as_o almost_o all_o other_o matter_n of_o learn_v know_v to_o king_n james_n and_o can_v he_o have_v foresee_v how_o the_o guest_n after_o office_n occasion_v the_o demagogue_n to_o promote_v the_o rebellion_n of_o 41_o for_o it_o be_v know_v they_o be_v then_o mighty_a nimrods_n after_o mighty_a office_n in_o the_o state_n and_o after_o what_o particular_a one_o and_o how_o the_o several_a usurpation_n support_v themselves_o here_o afterward_o through_o man_n support_v themselves_o by_o office_n under_o they_o and_o how_o in_o this_o present_a fermentation_n man_n have_v be_v tempt_v to_o faction_n by_o hope_n of_o office_n and_o in_o pursuit_n of_o which_o man_n be_v never_o general_o so_o wary_a as_o i●_n this_o conjuncture_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v that_o in_o uber●orem_fw-la cautelam_fw-la for_o loyalty_n and_o the_o make_v man_n appear_v perjure_v even_o to_o all_o of_o the_o gross_a understanding_n who_o shall_v bear_v office_n under_o any_o usurper_n and_o consequent_o deter_v they_o from_o project_v to_o alt●r_v the_o hereditary_a government_n he_o will_v have_v insert_v into_o the_o oath_n a_o particular_a express_a clause_n of_o not_o bear_v office_n here_o under_o any_o other_o but_o further_o to_o illustrate_v the_o intent_n of_o the_o government_n
mind_n in_o a_o house_n will_v bless_v he_o with_o these_o effect_n and_o make_v he_o grow_v in_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o man._n my_o lord_n i_o shall_v in_o the_o next_o place_n take_v occasion_n to_o acquaint_v your_o lordship_n that_o in_o the_o preface_n and_o which_o every_o candid_a reader_n of_o any_o book_n will_v peruse_v before_o his_o read_n of_o the_o book_n i_o do_v explain_v myself_o more_o clear_o about_o some_o thing_n and_o word_n write_v in_o the_o turbid_v time_n and_o which_o as_o one_o say_v well_o be_v the_o worst_a time_n to_o write_v in_o though_o the_o best_a to_o write_v of_o and_o i_o do_v not_o fear_v the_o want_v any_o man_n pardon_n who_o shall_v read_v over_o the_o whole_a and_o which_o may_v well_o be_v expect_v before_o the_o allowance_n of_o his_o exception_n though_o it_o may_v seem_v as_o copious_a as_o one_o of_o the_o banker_n bill_n in_o chancery_n but_o because_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o discourse_n necessary_o require_v those_o courser_n colour_n relate_v to_o popery_n to_o be_v first_o lay_v on_o before_o the_o fine_a one_o and_o the_o gild_n on_o the_o happy_a future_a state_n of_o our_o country_n and_o for_o that_o to_o trouble_v any_o ingenious_a man_n now_o with_o notion_n of_o popery_n be_v to_o hinder_v their_o repose_n in_o the_o state_n i_o foretell_v i_o have_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n of_o make_v a_o large_a index_n and_o where_o i_o have_v direct_v the_o reader_n how_o and_o where_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o new_a earth_n of_o his_o country_n without_o pass_v through_o the_o purgatory_n of_o any_o expression_n about_o popery_n or_o the_o plot_n and_o perhaps_o the_o more_o loyal_a and_o ingenious_a recusant_n whether_o roman-catholick_n or_o protestant_n there_o take_a notice_n of_o some_o grateful_a passage_n relate_v to_o some_o who_o be_v former_o of_o their_o persuasion_n be_v place_v near_o other_o that_o be_v less_o so_o may_v be_v the_o more_o please_v therewith_o according_o as_o my_o lord_n bacon_n observe_v that_o a_o rose_n set_v by_o garlick_n be_v the_o sweet_a heaven_n have_v furnish_v your_o lordship_n mind_n with_o so_o many_o excellency_n that_o be_v extraordinary_a i_o can_v wish_v that_o it_o have_v be_v my_o ability_n or_o fortune_n to_o have_v here_o provide_v for_o your_o entertainment_n somewhat_o of_o value_n that_o be_v not_o vulgar_a but_o my_o essay_v or_o offer_v here_o and_o there_o at_o some_o matter_n of_o thought_n which_o by_o receive_v its_o form_n from_o your_o lordship_n great_a reason_n and_o particular_o in_o p._n 158._o and_o the_o follow_v one_o in_o my_o make_n it_o a_o fundamental_a principle_n for_o the_o quiet_a of_o the_o world_n that_o man_n be_v neither_o to_o get_v nor_o lose_v by_o religion_n and_o my_o distinguish_n in_o man_n hypothesis_n between_o their_o principle_n denominable_a as_o religionary_a and_o such_o complicate_v therewith_o that_o be_v not_o so_o and_o my_o have_v judge_v that_o none_o ought_v to_o be_v severe_a to_o any_o recusant_n before_o he_o have_v a_o moral_a certainty_n of_o such_o person_n have_v imbibe_v any_o of_o the_o principle_n imputable_a to_o recusancy_n that_o be_v irreligionary_a and_o unnatural_a and_o my_o defiance_n of_o the_o petulance_n of_o the_o faction_n by_o my_o place_v laurel_n on_o those_o head_n at_o which_o it_o be_v throw_v dirt_n and_o my_o show_v how_o not_o only_a christian_n of_o the_o roman-catholick_n church_n in_o its_o great_a spread_a latitude_n but_o even_o those_o of_o the_o more_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o reverer_n of_o the_o diocese_n or_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v under_o no_o obligation_n by_o the_o lateran_n council_n to_o be_v either_o persecutor_n or_o disloyal_a may_v show_v somewhat_o of_o my_o honest_a well_o wish_n in_o this_o kind_n i_o be_o not_o so_o va●n_a as_o to_o think_v that_o any_o thing_n relate_v to_o number_n or_o political_a calculation_n in_o the_o discourse_n can_v appear_v new_a to_o your_o lordship_n who_o be_v so_o great_a a_o master_n in_o that_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n that_o the_o most_o curious_a of_o the_o age_n may_v therein_o beg_v instruction_n from_o you_o but_o i_o shall_v here_o presume_v to_o acquaint_v your_o lordship_n that_o i_o observe_v that_o many_o in_o the_o late_a conjuncture_n who_o i_o look_v on_o as_o honest_a loyal_a and_o learned_a and_o ingenious_a man_n and_o some_o who_o have_v former_o a_o gusto_n for_o the_o real_a learning_n that_o refer_v to_o number_n weight_n and_o measure_n do_v render_v their_o conversation_n so_o uneasy_a by_o talk_v of_o nothing_o but_o popery_n popery_n and_o which_o i_o look_v on_o as_o unentertain_v and_o nauseous_a as_o the_o pork_n pork_n &_o pork_n i_o think_v it_o may_v be_v public_o useful_a to_o lay_v open_a a_o new_a scene_n of_o thought_n before_o such_o person_n by_o show_v they_o some_o calculation_n relate_v to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n found_v on_o somewhat_o like_a record_n and_o some_o to_o its_o gradual_a increase_n in_o trade_n as_o well_o as_o populousness_n and_o other_o relate_v to_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n whereby_o their_o soul_n have_v somewhat_o like_o a_o new_a intellectual_a world_n before_o they_o to_o expatiate_v in_o may_v no_o long_o be_v confine_v to_o a_o perplex_a word_n yet_o moreover_o consider_v how_o late_o it_o be_v that_o they_o come_v out_o of_o that_o conjuncture_n of_o panic_n fear_n when_o so_o many_o who_o go_v to_o bed_n without_o their_o brain_n be_v afraid_a of_o rise_v without_o their_o head_n and_o that_o as_o our_o english_a world_n be_v emerge_v out_o of_o the_o late_a general_a deluge_n of_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n where_o omne_fw-la pontus_fw-la erant_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o curious_a behold_v the_o several_a birth_n of_o man_n reason_n attend_v with_o imperfection_n like_o those_o of_o the_o animal_n refer_v to_o &_o in_o his_o quaedam_fw-la modo_fw-la caepta_fw-la per_fw-la ipsum_fw-la nascendi_fw-la spatium_fw-la quaedam_fw-la imperfecta_fw-la suisque_fw-la trunca_fw-la vident_fw-la humeris_fw-la &_o eodem_fw-la corpore_fw-la saepe_fw-la altera_fw-la pars_fw-la vivit_fw-la rudis_fw-la est_fw-la pars_fw-la altera_fw-la tellus_fw-la and_o thus_o see_v the_o spectacle_n of_o man_n various_a understand_n gradual_o creep_v into_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o not_o sudden_o likely_a to_o be_v perfect_v i_o show_v so_o much_o complaisance_n to_o they_o as_o in_o stead_n of_o hasty_o remove_v their_o thought_n from_o the_o course_n soil_n of_o popery_n or_o the_o old_a papal_a usurpation_n to_o build_v my_o fabric_n of_o number_n and_o calculation_n upon_o it_o and_o i_o may_v say_v that_o find_v their_o vitiate_a fancy_n rellish_v nothing_o at_o that_o time_n grateful_a but_o the_o thought_n about_o popery_n i_o then_o choose_v to_o make_v that_o the_o vehicle_n of_o the_o notion_n i_o mean_v as_o physic_n for_o their_o cure._n according_a to_o the_o way_n of_o judge_v of_o the_o draught_n and_o proportion_n in_o perspective_n paint_v by_o their_o respect_n to_o the_o eye_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o centre_n therein_o any_o ordinary_a reader_n be_v judgement_n will_v be_v carry_v by_o the_o index_n to_o find_v what_o be_v principal_o aim_v at_o in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n namely_o to_o incline_v he_o to_o preserve_v the_o haereditary_a monarchy_n and_o he_o will_v there_o find_v that_o my_o next_o aim_n to_o that_o be_v in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o work_n to_o dispose_v those_o who_o former_o have_v be_v diffident_a of_o their_o prince_n to_o promote_v the_o public_a supply_n for_o the_o necessary_a support_n of_o the_o government_n and_o my_o judge_n that_o our_o most_o eminent_a patriot_n will_v be_v incline_v to_o value_v themselves_o as_o such_o on_o the_o promote_a the_o same_o may_v to_o some_o appear_v as_o the_o most_o sanguine_a part_n of_o my_o prediction_n but_o as_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o any_o indifferent_a man_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o ground_n of_o nature_n i_o go_v on_o in_o so_o do_v so_o i_o may_v some_o way_n support_v the_o credit_n of_o my_o measure_n of_o futurity_n in_o that_o affair_n by_o the_o past_a event_n of_o the_o loyal_a confidence_n in_o his_o majesty_n show_v by_o his_o late_a parliament_n in_o their_o proceed_n so_o far_o as_o they_o do_v in_o support_v the_o government_n and_o may_v add_v that_o his_o majesty_n vast_a expense_n that_o have_v be_v since_o so_o conspicuous_a to_o the_o world_n in_o his_o naval_a preparation_n and_o otherwise_o in_o the_o provide_v for_o the_o security_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o nation_n may_v well_o incline_v any_o one_o else_o to_o judge_v well_o of_o such_o patriot_o temper_n of_o any_o future_a parliament_n and_o to_o allow_v of_o the_o reason_n by_o i_o urge_v as_o more_o cogent_n for_o the_o present_a reign_n then_o the_o former_a consider_v the_o preparation_n of_o our_o neighbour_n
and_o principle_n religionary_a and_o indeed_o to_o speak_v more_o proper_o of_o that_o part_n of_o man_n principle_n only_o that_o be_v irreligionary_a and_o against_o nature_n the_o word_n of_o exterminate_v and_o recall_v be_v often_o use_v by_o cicero_n as_o signify_v the_o contrary_a and_o when_o mr._n coleman_n letter_n show_v such_o a_o imperious_a design_n in_o he_o for_o the_o revocation_n of_o popery_n that_o have_v be_v drive_v away_o and_o banish_v or_o exterminate_v hence_o by_o so_o many_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o even_o for_o the_o extermination_n of_o heresy_n out_o of_o the_o north_n as_o occasion_v such_o apprehension_n in_o the_o government_n of_o what_o be_v intend_v by_o other_o innocent_a and_o modest_a papist_n that_o make_v the_o gentle_a of_o prince_n in_o a_o speech_n in_o the_o oxford_n parliament_n say_v and_o if_o it_o be_v practicable_a the_o rid_v ourselves_o quite_o of_o all_o of_o that_o party_n that_o have_v any_o considerable_a authority_n etc._n etc._n none_o need_v wonder_n at_o the_o past_a warmth_n of_o subject_n express_v against_o the_o recalling_a of_o the_o exterminate_v papal_a power_n nor_o yet_o at_o the_o warmth_n of_o their_o zeal_n against_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n propagate_a a_o internal_a power_n here_o when_o they_o have_v be_v exterminate_v from_o rome_n itself_o and_o when_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n speech_n to_o both_o house_n have_v mention_v the_o proceed_n against_o protestant_n in_o foreign_a part_n to_o look_v as_o if_o they_o be_v intend_v to_o make_v way_n for_o a_o general_a extirpation_n they_o be_v poor_a judge_n of_o thing_n who_o think_v that_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v exterminate_v out_o of_o kingdom_n and_o their_o law_n without_o the_o banishment_n of_o the_o person_n profess_v they_o who_o account_v not_o protestancy_n sufficient_o exterminate_v from_o be_v the_o state-religion_n in_o italy_n and_o yet_o sandy_v his_o europae_n speculum_fw-la tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v 40000_o profess_v protestant_n there_o be_v not_o judaism_n sufficient_o exterminate_v from_o be_v the_o religion_n at_o rome_n though_o thousand_o of_o profess_a jew_n be_v there_o tolerate_v it_o be_v the_o public_a approbation_n of_o tenet_n or_o doctrine_n and_o not_o any_o forbearance_n or_o indulgence_n to_o person_n who_o prosess_v they_o that_o give_v doctrine_n a_o place_n within_o the_o religion_n of_o a_o state_n for_o to_o make_v any_o state_n approve_v of_o a_o doctrine_n contrary_n to_o what_o it_o have_v establish_v be_v a_o contradiction_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o famous_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n former_o heaven_n peculiar_a people_n on_o earth_n have_v not_o be_v more_o general_o guilty_a of_o idolatry_n during_o their_o prosperity_n than_o of_o superstition_n during_o their_o captivity_n and_o oppression_n and_o extermination_n from_o their_o country_n have_v teach_v the_o world_n this_o great_a truth_n that_o the_o ready_a way_n to_o propagate_v superstition_n and_o error_n be_v by_o the_o exterminium_fw-la and_o banishment_n of_o person_n whatever_o church_n any_o man_n call_v their_o mother_n if_o the_o magistrate_n find_v they_o to_o own_o the_o interest_n of_o their_o country_n as_o their_o mother_n and_o to_o honour_v their_o true_a political_a father_n they_o can_v wish_v their_o day_n more_o long_o in_o the_o land_n than_o i_o shall_v do_v i_o remember_v under_o the_o usurpation_n there_o pass_v a_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o it_o be_v call_v for_o the_o banishment_n of_o that_o famous_a boute-feu_a john_n lilburn_n and_o under_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o ultimum_fw-la supplicium_fw-la and_o he_o short_o after_o return_v to_o england_n and_o be_v try_v in_o london_n where_o he_o be_v universal_o know_v and_o the_o only_a thing_n issuable_a before_o the_o juror_n be_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o same_o john_n lilburn_n those_o good_a man_n and_o true_a thought_n he_o so_o much_o transubstantiate_v as_o to_o bring_v he_o in_o not_o guilty_a and_o when_o ever_o i_o find_v any_o papist_n not_o only_o willing_a to_o change_v the_o name_n papist_n for_o catholic_n but_o the_o thing_n papistry_n for_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n under_o its_o first_o good_a bishop_n and_o before_o pope_n beyond_o a_o patriarchal_a power_n aspire_v to_o be_v universal_a bishop_n and_o universal_a king_n and_o that_o even_o a_o jesuite_n instead_o of_o the_o rule_n of_o jesuita_fw-la est_fw-la omnis_fw-la homo_fw-la have_v alter_v his_o moral_n and_o principle_n pursuant_n to_o the_o pope_n say_a decree_n so_o far_o as_o true_o to_o say_v ego_fw-la non_fw-la sum_fw-la ego_fw-la i_o shall_v not_o intermeddle_v in_o awaken_n penal_a law_n to_o touch_v either_o his_o life_n or_o liberty_n nor_o can_v any_o presbyterian_o with_o justice_n reflect_v on_o the_o zeal_n of_o any_o for_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o extermination_n of_o presbytery_n when_o they_o shall_v reflect_v on_o the_o royal_a family_n have_v be_v by_o their_o mean_n as_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o this_o discourse_n exterminate_v out_o of_o the_o realm_n into_o foreign_a popish_a country_n and_o of_o which_o they_o may_v easy_o have_v see_v the_o ill_a effect_n if_o their_o understanding_n have_v not_o be_v very_o scandalous_o dull_a but_o there_o be_v another_o happy_a extermination_n that_o i_o have_v in_o this_o discourse_n from_o natural_a cause_n predict_v to_o my_o country_n and_o that_o be_v of_o the_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n that_o have_v be_v so_o prevalent_a during_o our_o late_a fermentation_n concern_v which_o the_o reader_n will_v short_o find_v himself_o refer_v to_o in_o many_o page_n in_o this_o discourse_n and_o to_o have_v direct_v he_o to_o all_o of_o that_o nature_n will_v have_v make_v the_o index_n a_o book_n i_o have_v in_o this_o discourse_n design_v to_o eradicate_v the_o fear_n of_o popery_n out_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o timid_a protestant_n by_o the_o most_o rational_a persuasion_n i_o can_v show_v somewhat_o of_o complaisance_n in_o sometime_o humour_v their_o supposition_n of_o thing_n never_o likely_a to_o come_v to_o pass_v i_o have_v accord_v with_o they_o in_o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o event_n of_o archbishop_n vsher_n famous_a prophecy_n though_o i_o account_v the_o same_o as_o remote_a from_o likelihood_n as_o any_o one_o can_v with_o it_o and_o do_v believe_v that_o if_o that_o great_a and_o learned_a man_n can_v have_v foresee_v the_o mischief_n that_o prophecy_n have_v occasion_v by_o make_v so_o many_o of_o the_o king_n good_a subject_n disquiet_v thereby_o and_o which_o by_o at_o once_o chill_a their_o heart_n and_o heat_n their_o head_n have_v render_v they_o less_o qualify_v for_o a_o cheerful_a and_o steady_a discharge_n of_o their_o respective_a duty_n he_o will_v have_v consult_v private_o with_o many_o other_o learned_a and_o pious_a divine_n about_o the_o intrinsic_a weight_n of_o the_o matter_n reveal_v to_o he_o before_o he_o have_v expose_v it_o to_o the_o world_n for_o that_o in_o the_o day_n when_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n yet_o even_o then_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v always_o subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n and_o there_o be_v no_o fire_n in_o the_o world_n so_o bad_a a_o master_n as_o the_o fire_n of_o prophecy_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o there_o have_v scarce_o since_o this_o prophecy_n be_v a_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n wherein_o man_n uneasy_a to_o themselves_o will_v make_v the_o government_n so_o but_o this_o prophecy_n have_v be_v reprint_v in_o it_o and_o cry_v about_o and_o few_o enthusia_v but_o be_v as_o perfect_v in_o it_o as_o a_o seaman_n in_o his_o compass_n the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v to_o foretell_v persecution_n that_o shall_v happen_v in_o england_n from_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o sudden_a massacre_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v the_o contriver_n of_o it_o and_o that_o if_o the_o king_n be_v restore_v it_o may_v be_v a_o little_a long_o defer_v a_o person_n less_o learned_a than_o that_o great_a prelate_n can_v easy_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o past_a outrages_a of_o massacre_n that_o have_v be_v perpetrate_v by_o papist_n and_o of_o the_o tendency_n of_o the_o jesuit_n principle_n to_o the_o very_o legitimate_v of_o future_a one_o but_o the_o most_o pious_a and_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o world_n ought_v with_o the_o great_a caution_n imaginable_a to_o pretend_v to_o divine_a revelation_n of_o future_a contingency_n in_o a_o matter_n both_o so_o unlikely_a and_o so_o odious_a as_o this_o and_o which_o may_v probable_o occasion_v so_o much_o odium_n to_o so_o many_o innocent_a papist_n and_o so_o much_o needless_a trouble_n to_o so_o many_o timid_a protestant_n that_o pious_a and_o great_a prelate_n do_v not_o i_o believe_v foresee_v that_o at_o the_o time_n when_o his_o prophecy_n shall_v dart_v its_o most_o fearful_a influence_n st._n peter_n chair_n will_v be_v fill_v
with_o a_o person_n of_o so_o great_a morality_n and_o virtue_n as_o the_o present_a pope_n be_v and_o a_o pope_n that_o will_v brand_v the_o sicarious_a principle_n of_o those_o janissary_n of_o former_a pope_n the_o jesuit_n and_o that_o he_o will_v be_v by_o so_o many_o roman_a catholic_n call_v the_o lutheran_n pope_n and_o that_o the_o papist_n number_n will_v be_v here_o so_o comparative_o small_a long_o before_o this_o time_n as_o to_o render_v it_o absurd_a to_o think_v that_o without_o the_o execution_n of_o heaven_n peanal_a law_n of_o a_o infatuation_n upon_o they_o they_o will_v ever_o attempt_v any_o such_o desperate_a design_n against_o such_o vast_a number_n protect_v by_o the_o best_a of_o prince_n under_o the_o best_a of_o government_n whatever_o principle_n of_o irreligion_n any_o particular_a dissolute_a papist_n might_n by_o any_o be_v suppose_v to_o retain_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v but_o that_o they_o who_o show_v respect_n enough_o to_o number_n and_o their_o weight_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o divine_a concourse_n with_o the_o majority_n of_o number_n in_o the_o election_n of_o the_o head_n of_o their_o church_n and_o in_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o in_o their_o valuation_n of_o their_o church_n by_o its_o universality_n will_v not_o contemn_v the_o power_n of_o number_n in_o matter_n political_a and_o i_o believe_v it_o will_v never_o among_o their_o innumerable_a miracle_n and_o revelation_n be_v reveal_v to_o they_o that_o number_n be_v by_o they_o in_o thing_n political_a to_o be_v disregard_v but_o as_o i_o observe_v of_o mr._n hooker_n prophecy_n in_o this_o discourse_n viz._n that_o he_o guess_v shrewd_o so_o one_o thing_n have_v happen_v that_o may_v partly_o salve_v the_o credit_n of_o this_o prelate_n conjecture_n and_o that_o be_v that_o some_o nominal_a protestant_n but_o too_o just_o to_o be_v think_v popish_o affect_v have_v rob_v the_o jesuit_n of_o their_o doctrine_n of_o resistance_n and_o of_o their_o principle_n of_o dominion_n be_v found_v in_o grace_n endeavour_v to_o rob_v they_o of_o their_o massacre_n and_o as_o his_o majesty_n declaration_n of_o july_n the_o 28_o 1683_o mention_v do_v plot_v a_o execrable_a outrage_n of_o that_o kind_n and_o some_o of_o the_o dissenter_n that_o appear_v to_o i_o for_o sometime_o after_o i_o begin_v this_o discourse_n only_o as_o sheep_n stray_v from_o the_o flock_n as_o they_o do_v to_o that_o great_a minister_n of_o the_o state_n who_o bestow_v on_o they_o that_o expression_n be_v afterward_o turn_v ravenous_a animal_n and_o as_o the_o effect_n of_o nycippus_n sheep_n according_a to_o aelian_a bring_v forth_o a_o lion_n in_o one_o of_o the_o greek_a state_n be_v resent_v as_o portend_v a_o change_n of_o the_o government_n these_o man_n produce_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n be_v to_o be_v much_o more_o regard_v as_o a_o omen_n of_o our_o future_a mischief_n than_o what_o any_o former_a prediction_n can_v import_v and_o it_o be_v short_o accompany_v with_o a_o real_a design_n to_o have_v effect_v it_o and_o as_o i_o hope_v it_o will_v be_v with_o such_o a_o sense_n of_o shame_n in_o other_o of_o they_o when_o they_o shall_v survey_v the_o circumstance_n of_o that_o bloody_a design_n notify_v in_o the_o king_n declaration_n as_o mr._n john_n geree_n a_o eminent_a and_o learned_a presbyterian_a minister_n of_o s._n faith_n in_o london_n do_v express_v in_o a_o dedicatory_a epistle_n before_o a_o book_n of_o his_o call_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d publish_v some_o week_n before_o the_o fate_n of_o the_o royal_a martyr_n and_o in_o which_o epistle_n he_o importune_v the_o lady_n fairfax_n to_o show_v the_o book_n to_o her_o husband_n then_o lord_n general_n to_o prevent_v his_o participate_v in_o the_o guilt_n of_o the_o regicide_n then_o fear_v and_o say_v o_o madam_n let_v we_o fit_v down_o and_o weep_v over_o our_o religion_n and_o we_o whither_o shall_v we_o cause_v her_o shame_n to_o go_v how_o shall_v we_o now_o look_v papist_n in_o the_o face_n who_o we_o have_v so_o revile_v and_o abhor_v for_o their_o derogatory_n doctrine_n and_o damnable_a practice_n against_o king_n or_o any_o in_o supreme_a authority_n o_o study_n that_o it_o may_v never_o be_v say_v that_o any_o person_n of_o honour_n and_o of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v any_o hand_n in_o so_o unworthy_a worthy_a a_o action_n as_o the_o depose_n and_o destroy_v of_o a_o king_n who_o preservation_n they_o stand_v bind_v to_o endeavour_v by_o so_o many_o sacred_a bond_n i_o have_v accord_v with_o our_o timid_a protestant_n that_o popery_n may_v gain_v ground_n perhaps_o in_o some_o turbid_v interval_n and_o how_o by_o the_o divine_a omnipotence_n and_o justice_n the_o course_n of_o nature_n in_o its_o continue_v the_o protestant_a religion_n may_v be_v overrule_v and_o that_o on_o the_o account_n of_o our_o have_v just_o deserve_v the_o visitation_n of_o popery_n we_o may_v reasonable_o apprehend_v the_o danger_n of_o it_o p._n 140._o but_o have_v never_o recur_v from_o show_v they_o the_o future_a prosperous_a estate_n of_o protestant_n and_o protestancy_n in_o england_n but_o to_o advance_v the_o more_o forward_o into_o the_o follow_a representation_n thereof_o but_o have_v thus_o with_o compassion_n to_o the_o timid_n endeavour_v to_o discharge_v my_o duty_n as_o to_o the_o moral_a obligation_n of_o complaisance_n a_o obligation_n that_o mr._n hobbs_n have_v so_o well_o show_v to_o be_v most_o clear_o rise_v from_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o which_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n so_o strong_o inculcate_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o which_o we_o be_v to_o bear_v one_o another_o burden_n and_o sometime_o to_o the_o weak_a to_o become_v as_o weak_a i_o think_v it_o afterward_o proper_a by_o the_o strength_n of_o argument_n desume_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n to_o fortify_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o loyal_a against_o un-christian_a and_o unman_o fear_n but_o as_o to_o the_o dis-loyal_a and_o factious_a let_v they_o by_o my_o consent_n fear_v on_o i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v myself_o to_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o they_o who_o resolve_v to_o be_v burden_n to_o the_o government_n and_o who_o will_v if_o they_o can_v load_v it_o with_o presbytery_n dead-weight_n while_o they_o give_v that_o term_n to_o our_o bishop_n let_v those_o who_o will_v have_v both_o protestant_a prince_n and_o their_o other_o subject_n fear_v they_o be_v laugh_v at_o for_o fear_v of_o papist_n and_o for_o not_o have_v a_o better_a understanding_n with_o the_o person_n of_o papist_n when_o there_o be_v so_o good_a a_o understanding_n and_o coincidence_n between_o the_o principle_n of_o such_o nominal_a protestant_n and_o that_o very_a part_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o some_o papist_n that_o be_v irreligionary_a and_o subversive_a of_o the_o right_n of_o prince_n and_o their_o government_n and_o when_o yet_o they_o seem_v not_o to_o understand_v that_o and_o let_v papist_n by_o my_o consent_n afford_v themselves_o recreative_a smile_n if_o ever_o in_o any_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n that_o may_v come_v they_o shall_v behold_v the_o factious_a reviler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o come_v under_o its_o wing_n for_o shelter_v after_o their_o so_o long_o endeavour_v to_o deplume_v it_o but_o because_o i_o have_v observe_v some_o well_o meaning_n and_o loyal_a dissenter_n fright_v both_o by_o choleric_a and_o melancholy_a exposition_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n a_o good_a book_n in_o which_o some_o ill_a man_n have_v find_v the_o obscure_a passage_n to_o be_v the_o clear_a for_o their_o ill_a purpose_n and_o in_o the_o dark_a place_n of_o which_o book_n many_o have_v long_o lie_v in_o ambush_n have_v thence_o sally_v out_o to_o cut_v throat_n and_o subvert_v government_n i_o have_v here_o rear_v up_o a_o bulwark_n of_o nature_n that_o may_v secure_v they_o from_o the_o imaginary_a danger_n of_o castle_n in_o the_o air_n or_o visionary_a army_n in_o the_o cloud_n of_o any_o man_n fancy_n and_o in_o compassion_n to_o the_o loyal_a protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o melancholy_a supposition_n i_o have_v a_o while_n close_v with_o both_o as_o a_o friend_n and_o wrestler_n that_o i_o may_v give_v they_o a_o fair_a and_o soft_a fall_n i_o think_v it_o then_o proper_a to_o warn_v they_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o extravagant_a supposition_n and_o acquaint_v they_o that_o most_o bedlam_n be_v found_v on_o supposition_n and_o the_o thought_n of_o quid_fw-la si_fw-la caelum_fw-la ruat_fw-la and_o of_o people_n imagine_v earthquake_n to_o happen_v in_o the_o state_n from_o fall_a sky_n and_o have_v show_v they_o how_o irrational_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o suppose_v that_o a_o lawful_a prince_n how_o unlawful_a or_o heterodox_n any_o of_o his_o tenet_n in_o religion_n may_v be_v will_v injure_v his_o law_n and_o the_o religion_n by_o
use_v not_o unfit_a otherwise_o this_o form_n thereof_o allowable_a and_o let_v a_o man_n demand_v of_o one_o of_o they_o when_o he_o pray_v what_o warrant_v he_o have_v to_o use_v that_o form_n that_o he_o than_o use_v he_o can_v answer_v no_o otherwise_o so_o for_o a_o book_n the_o mean_n of_o help_n be_v not_o determine_v and_o this_o one_o among_o other_o this_o therefore_o not_o unwarrantable_a and_o if_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v ask_v how_o he_o prove_v it_o warrantable_a to_o use_v a_o print_a book_n to_o read_v on_o at_o church_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o make_v other_o answer_n than_o as_o before_o and_o further_o hereupon_o the_o resolve_v of_o another_o question_n viz._n whether_o one_o man_n eminent_a for_o piety_n and_o learning_n or_o perhaps_o eminent_a for_o neither_o be_v able_a without_o premeditation_n to_o make_v as_o fit_v a_o prayer_n for_o the_o people_n to_o say_v amen_o to_o as_o a_o hundred_o person_n eminent_a for_o both_o be_v able_a to_o frame_v with_o l●ng_a study_n i_o say_v to_o make_v a_o elias_n and_o much_o more_o the_o holy_a jesus_n to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o solve_v such_o doubt_n as_o these_o be_v a_o extravagance_n parallel_n with_o the_o error_n of_o those_o old_a poet_n who_o will_v on_o all_o occasion_n introduce_v god_n to_o end_v doubt_n that_o be_v never_o fit_a to_o be_v begin_v by_o man_n and_o wherein_o there_o be_v not_o dignus_fw-la vindice_fw-la nodus_fw-la and_o against_o which_o the_o judicious_a poet_n give_v the_o know_a caution_n of_o nec_fw-la deus_fw-la interfit_v etc._n etc._n the_o holy_a jesus_n by_o his_o tacit_fw-la rejection_n of_o question_n as_o impertiment_n that_o the_o world_n think_v of_o more_o moment_n than_o some_o such_o as_o be_v above_o name_v when_o he_o forbear_v to_o give_v his_o thought_n of_o pythagoras_n his_o pre-existence_n of_o soul_n upon_o the_o question_n put_v to_o he_o viz._n who_o do_v sin_v this_o man_n or_o his_o parent_n that_o he_o be_v bear_v blind_a show_v he_o think_v it_o not_o for_o his_o honour_n to_o have_v it_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v part_n of_o his_o errand_n from_o heaven_n to_o set_v the_o world_n rightin_fw-fr speculation_n of_o philosophy_n and_o so_o he_o throw_v that_o famous_a notion_n off_o as_o a_o titivilitium_fw-la chemnitius_n in_o his_o harmony_n take_v notice_n of_o our_o saviour_n reprehend_v in_o the_o pharisee_n their_o use_n of_o oath_n and_o thereby_o invocate_a god_n as_o a_o witness_n in_o the_o occurrence_n of_o their_o common_a talk_n and_o conversation_n say_v in_o re_fw-la levi_fw-la ne_fw-la magnum_fw-la quidem_fw-la virum_fw-la in_o testem_fw-la vocare_fw-la auderemus_fw-la as_o i_o find_v he_o cite_v by_o mr._n gataker_n in_o his_o book_n of_o lot_n and_o wherein_o he_o do_v so_o learned_o confute_v the_o superstitious_a conceit_n in_o some_o of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o the_o use_n of_o card_n and_o dice_n in_o recreation_n as_o likewise_o the_o other_o of_o man_n be_v oblige_v to_o count_v every_o thing_n unlawful_a that_o they_o have_v not_o a_o scriptural_a warrant_n for_o yet_o since_o his_o writing_n of_o those_o book_n of_o lot_n thousand_o of_o such_o our_o superstitious_a protestant_n have_v not_o scruple_v to_o throw_v the_o dye_n of_o war_n and_o to_o appeal_v to_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n by_o the_o decision_n of_o battle_n to_o signalise_v the_o truth_n in_o some_o of_o those_o nugatory_n and_o other_o of_o those_o plain_a point_n beforementioned_a and_o our_o land_n groan_v under_o the_o guilt_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o hundred_o of_o thousand_o of_o subject_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o royal_a blood_n by_o question_n on_o which_o a_o ingenious_a man_n will_v scarce_o think_v a_o drop_n of_o ink_n necessary_a to_o be_v spend_v but_o i_o have_v in_o this_o discourse_n express_v my_o belief_n that_o the_o fierceness_n of_o our_o dissenter_n humour_n of_o quarrel_v about_o such_o little_a ceremonial_a matter_n will_v be_v natural_o reclaim_v by_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o civility_n appear_v in_o the_o many_o french_a protestant_n here_o into_o a_o complaisance_n with_o our_o king_n and_o church_n enjoin_v ceremony_n that_o all_o the_o learned_a book_n of_o our_o divine_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o work_v in_o they_o the_o civility_n of_o the_o french_a humour_n make_v it_o natural_a to_o those_o protestant_n as_o i_o ●ave_n remark_v not_o only_o to_o comply_v with_o prince_n but_o even_o their_o fellow_n subject_n in_o the_o use_n of_o all_o ceremony_n they_o expect_v and_o as_o i_o have_v in_o many_o place_n of_o this_o discourse_n and_o particular_o in_o p._n 239_o express_v my_o thought_n that_o the_o sicarious_a principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n will_v natural_o evaporate_v by_o fear_n and_o shame_n so_o i_o have_v in_o the_o follow_a page_n that_o all_o rebellious_a principle_n of_o any_o nominal_a protestant_n will_v by_o fear_n and_o shame_n in_o our_o populous_a english_a world_n be_v abandon_v and_o do_v think_v that_o to_o the_o shame_n of_o quarrel_v about_o little_a matter_n the_o shame_n of_o do_v it_o before_o stranger_n be_v superadd_v will_v prevent_v our_o future_a disquiet_n thereby_o let_v they_o ask_v those_o protestant_n who_o be_v flee_v hither_o from_o persecution_n the_o circumstance_n of_o which_o be_v with_o great_a judgement_n state_v by_o dr._n hicks_n in_o his_o excellent_a print_a sermon_n on_o that_o subject_a if_o in_o case_n their_o great_a monarch_n have_v excuse_v they_o from_o conformity_n to_o the_o gallican_n church_n in_o the_o point_n of_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o the_o worship_v the_o host_n and_o the_o forbid_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o laity_n and_o the_o other_o momentous_a religionary_a point_n controvert_v between_o papist_n and_o protestant_n and_o have_v enjoin_v they_o only_o such_o thing_n as_o our_o religion_n by_o law_n establish_v do_v whether_o they_o will_v have_v with_o the_o hazard_n of_o their_o life_n make_v a_o migration_n hither_o from_o the_o best_a country_n in_o the_o world_n their_o native_a soil_n or_o have_v make_v their_o monarch_n and_o his_o minister_n at_o home_n uneasy_a by_o complaint_n of_o persecution_n and_o by_o raise_v of_o any_o dust_n about_o unnecessary_a question_n as_o aforesaid_a leo_n after_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o mountain_n magnan_n on_o the_o frontier_n of_o fez_n have_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o any_o settle_a judicature_n or_o parade_n of_o the_o law_n to_o support_v their_o polity_n but_o to_o the_o end_n their_o controversy_n emerge_v may_v be_v decide_v and_o that_o impartial_o they_o stop_v some_o traveller_n pass_v that_o way_n to_o give_v judgement_n in_o the_o same_o and_o that_o himself_o in_o his_o passage_n there_o be_v detain_v many_o day_n to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n and_o that_o his_o performance_n of_o the_o same_o be_v reward_v by_o the_o inhabitant_n defray_v the_o charge_n of_o his_o stay_n and_o some_o of_o those_o people_n be_v ashamed_a perhaps_o to_o trouble_v he_o a_o stranger_n with_o vilitigation_n or_o querelle_n do_v alleman_n and_o thus_o perhaps_o may_v those_o protestant_a stranger_n that_o providence_n have_v send_v hither_o prove_v to_o our_o religionary_a brangler_n useful_a itinerant_a judge_n and_o their_o patience_n in_o their_o judicature_n will_v in_o my_o opinion_n deserve_v to_o be_v well_o reward_v and_o for_o the_o greatness_n of_o its_o burden_n from_o the_o minuteness_n of_o its_o controvert_v cause_n and_o whereby_o stranger_n be_v impose_v on_o by_o as_o needless_a trouble_n as_o traveller_n will_v be_v if_o in_o the_o several_a territory_n they_o pass_v through_o the_o inhabitant_n shall_v desire_v they_o to_o weigh_v their_o air._n but_o i_o hope_v the_o nonconformist_n to_o the_o gallican_n church_n will_v find_v those_o to_o we_o ashame_v to_o entertain_v they_o here_o with_o the_o crambe_z of_o old_a controversy_n of_o ceremony_n and_o thing_n indifferent_a and_o that_o those_o stranger_n will_v not_o find_v themselves_o invite_v hither_o by_o nature_n as_o to_o a_o theatre_n where_o they_o shall_v only_o see_v our_o digladiation_n with_o air_n or_o beat_v of_o the_o air_n as_o the_o scripture_n expression_n be_v and_o much_o less_o where_o they_o shall_v see_v any_o dissenter_n implicit_o swallow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o resistance_n and_o weigh_v nothing_o but_o air._n it_o be_v i_o think_v a_o little_a before_o the_o migration_n of_o so_o many_o french_a protestant_n here_o that_o some_o of_o the_o faex_fw-la of_o our_o dissenter_n be_v so_o shameful_a as_o to_o nickname_n our_o clergy_n but_o i_o do_v account_n that_o the_o inquisitive_a and_o philosophical_a temper_n of_o the_o age_n shine_v with_o so_o much_o lustre_n in_o our_o english_a clergy_n and_o which_o temper_n be_v as_o natural_o accompany_v with_o the_o gentle_a warmth_n of_o charity_n for_o the_o person_n of_o different_a
but_o if_o this_o question_n of_o toleration_n have_v not_o here_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o its_o race_n and_o if_o no_o such_o thing_n have_v happen_v as_o the_o declaration_n of_o indulgence_n and_o dissenter_n thereby_o manumit_v from_o penal_a law_n say_v soul_n take_v thy_o ease_n and_o present_o act_v the_o part_n of_o felo_fw-la de_fw-la se_fw-la by_o effect_v the_o cancel_v of_o that_o declaration_n and_o if_o the_o controversy_n be_v now_o to_o begin_v to_o start_v forward_o i_o account_v it_o will_v cause_v but_o a_o very_a short_a fermentation_n among_o we_o for_o no_o book_n need_v be_v write_v to_o prove_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o what_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n have_v permit_v to_o every_o private_a family_n and_o to_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o other_o person_n to_o participate_v therein_o with_o they_o and_o if_o dissentership_n will_v now_o call_v for_o more_o toleration_n it_o be_v very_o be_v call_v on_o to_o name_v its_o tenet_n in_o order_n ●o_o the_o security_n of_o the_o government_n in_o grant_v it_o to_o more_o person_n to_o assemble_v together_o in_o enjoy_v it_o it_o be_v very_o name_v they_o will_v i_o believe_v soon_o perimere_fw-la litem_fw-la in_o the_o case_n and_o some_o of_o its_o tenet_n will_v perhaps_o appear_v too_o little_a and_o other_o too_o great_a to_o require_v the_o formality_n of_o debate_n it_o be_v even_o ridiculous_a to_o suppose_v that_o any_o jesuit_n and_o dissenter_n will_v now_o dare_v to_o demand_v toleration_n for_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o crown-divinity_n of_o each_o mention_v in_o the_o oxford_n censure_n none_o of_o they_o will_v now_o dare_v to_o be_v confessor_n of_o religionary_a principle_n that_o will_v make_v king_n martyr_n and_o as_o i_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n need_v not_o crave_v aid_n from_o his_o vatican_n nor_o the_o oxford-convocation_n from_o their_o bodleian_n library_n to_o confute_v monstrous_a tenet_n condemn_v by_o either_o for_o in_o this_o case_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o tertullian_n advers._fw-la valent._n demonstrare_fw-la solummodo_fw-la destruere_fw-la est_fw-la so_o i_o likewise_o think_v that_o both_o popish_a and_o protestant_n recusant_n will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o crave_v aid_n of_o toleration_n from_o the_o magistracy_n for_o principle_n they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o own_o or_o indeed_o for_o any_o but_o what_o they_o shall_v first_o own_v and_o the_o rather_o when_o our_o protestant_n shall_v recollect_v with_o what_o vigorous_a expedition_n the_o great_a owner_n of_o that_o name_n in_o germany_n publish_v their_o religionary_a confession_n as_o alsted_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o chron●logia_fw-la testium_fw-la veritatis_fw-la where_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n tender_v to_o charles_n the_o 5_o and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o the_o year_n 1530_o and_o of_o the_o confessio_fw-la suevica_n in_o the_o same_o year_n and_o of_o the_o confessio_fw-la basileensis_fw-la in_o the_o next_o year_n and_o of_o the_o confessio_fw-la helvetica_fw-la in_o the_o year_n 1556_o and_o of_o all_o the_o other_o great_a protestant_a confession_n exhibit_v several_o to_o the_o world_n before_o the_o year_n 1573._o such_o of_o our_o dissenter_n therefore_o who_o have_v to_o this_o year_n 1684_o make_v it_o their_o business_n to_o be_v anti-confessor_n by_o hide_v many_o of_o the_o particularity_n of_o their_o principle_n and_o give_v the_o world_n cause_n perhaps_o to_o say_v difficilius_fw-la est_fw-la inven●re_fw-la quam_fw-la vincere_fw-la and_o who_o yet_o assume_v the_o name_n of_o protestancy_n will_v perhaps_o hardly_o think_v it_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o gain_v toleration_n for_o their_o further_a be_v call_v by_o that_o name_n without_o show_v the_o title_n of_o their_o principle_n to_o it_o as_o on_o the_o account_n of_o what_o i_o have_v say_v it_o will_v be_v a_o persecution_n to_o the_o world_n for_o the_o most_o ingenious_a man_n to_o trouble_v it_o with_o discourse_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o toleration_n so_o it_o will_v too_o be_v to_o trouble_v it_o with_o discourse_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o deny_v toleration_n to_o man_n who_o either_o deny_v their_o principle_n or_o deny_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o they_o a_o duty_n that_o can_v plead_v as_o clear_v a_o jus_o divinum_fw-la for_o itself_o as_o any_o form_n of_o church_n government_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o which_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v ready_a always_o to_o give_v a_o answer_n to_o every_o man_n that_o ask_v they_o a_o reason_n of_o the_o hope_n that_o be_v in_o they_o with_o meekness_n and_o reverence_n there_o be_v some_o principle_n to_o which_o it_o be_v by_o all_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o give_v toleration_n namely_o to_o those_o that_o disturb_v civil_a society_n nor_o will_v it_o appear_v otherwise_o than_o ridiculous_a to_o the_o hoodwinked_a sober_a party_n of_o any_o sect_n that_o when_o the_o magistrate_n reprove_v they_o in_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n you_o worship_v you_o know_v not_o what_o the_o magistrate_n by_o tolerate_v they_o at_o that_o time_n shall_v give_v cause_n to_o other_o to_o tell_v they_o you_o tolerate_v you_o know_v not_o what_o i_o have_v observe_v it_o in_o the_o course_n of_o my_o read_n that_o there_o be_v one_o great_a point_n of_o religion_n on_o which_o the_o hinge_n of_o loyalty_n do_v very_o much_o turn_v that_o several_a eminent_a papist_n and_o nonconformist_n have_v not_o dare_v to_o speak_v their_o plain_n agree_v sense_n of_o and_o as_o to_o which_o it_o may_v therefore_o seem_v very_o rational_a that_o they_o shall_v and_o that_o be_v how_o far_o the_o civil_a law_n of_o prince_n or_o the_o municipal_a law_n do_v bind_v the_o conscience_n a_o point_n that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n can_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o define_v and_o herein_o it_o be_v obvious_a to_o consider_v that_o tho_o it_o be_v on_o all_o hand_n grant_v that_o in_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o divine_a law_n natural_a and_o positive_a those_o law_n do_v not_o bind_v the_o conscience_n and_o that_o the_o jus_o divinum_fw-la of_o the_o papacy_n presbytery_n or_o independency_n will_v not_o be_v catch_v with_o a_o why_o not_o on_o the_o hold_v the_o question_n in_o the_o affirmative_a that_o humane_a law_n do_v bind_v the_o conscience_n in_o thing_n not_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n divine_a yet_o be_v the_o adherent_n to_o those_o religionary_a model_n conscious_a to_o themselves_o that_o in_o many_o particular_n necessary_a to_o bring_v they_o into_o practice_n there_o must_v be_v a_o sanction_n of_o th●m_n by_o penal_a municipal_a law_n and_o they_o hope_v to_o have_v the_o magistracy_n and_o its_o power_n on_o their_o side_n and_o to_o act_n in_o concert_n with_o they_o according_a to_o that_o say_v of_o the_o emperor_n to_o his_o bishop_n jungamus_fw-la gladios_fw-la and_o know_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n to_o support_v both_o religion_n and_o loyalty_n and_o for_o the_o custody_n of_o 〈◊〉_d table_n have_v as_o clear_v a_o jus_o divinum_fw-la as_o their_o plat-form_n can_v have_v and_o that_o therefore_o the_o civil_a power_n 〈◊〉_d not_o let_v its_o jure-divinity_n be_v take_v too_o by_o any_o with_o a_o why_o not_o as_o it_o will_v be_v if_o the_o question_n be_v hold_v whole_o in_o the_o negative_a they_o have_v in_o their_o write_n be_v genera_o obscure_a and_o short_a in_o that_o point_n and_o have_v hope_v by_o their_o power_n and_o interest_n to_o keep_v the_o world_n from_o call_v on_o they_o to_o explain_v but_o i_o have_v in_o my_o occasional_a converse_n with_o some_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o nonconforming_a clergy_n observe_v they_o in_o discourse_n to_o speak_v out_o their_o mind_n plain_o and_o categorical_o enough_o that_o humane_a law_n do_v not_o bind_v the_o conscience_n and_o to_o account_v it_o a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o make_v any_o penal_a law_n bind_v the_o conscience_n even_o in_o matter_n pure_o civil_a and_o wherein_o there_o be_v no_o pretence_n of_o any_o thing_n enjoin_v concern_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o where_o the_o thing_n under_o penalty_n enjoin_v be_v of_o great_a importance_n to_o the_o state._n the_o man_n of_o somewhat_o hot_a rather_o then_o distinguish_v head_n though_o they_o know_v that_o humane_a law_n be_v necessary_o penal_a and_o though_o they_o believe_v that_o oeconomic_n do_v best_o subsist_v by_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o servant_n be_v bind_v to_o observe_v those_o their_o lawful_a command_n by_o the_o tie_n of_o religion_n that_o they_o intend_v shall_v be_v effectual_o obey_v have_v not_o consider_v that_o politic_n will_v likewise_o thereby_o be_v best_a preserve_v nor_o learned_a to_o distinguish_v the_o penal_a law_n where_o the_o magistrate_n intend_v to_o oblige_v the_o subject_a in_o point_n of_o fault_n and_o where_o only_o in_o point_n of_o the_o penalty_n but_o our_o clear-headed_n and_o loyal_a heart_a sanderson_n who_o may_v
well_o come_v under_o the_o account_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o to_o those_o opiner_n have_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n principle_n in_o his_o 8_o lecture_n and_o there_o de_fw-fr lege_fw-la paenali_fw-la well_o teach_v we_o in_o what_o case_n penal_a law_n oblige_v in_o conscience_n and_o show_v that_o they_o may_v so_o bind_v where_o the_o legislator_n do_v intend_v to_o oblige_v the_o subject_n ad_fw-la culpam_fw-la etiam_fw-la &_o non_fw-la solum_fw-la ad_fw-la paenam_fw-la and_o in_o that_o case_n say_v he_o certum_fw-la est_fw-la eos_fw-la teneri_fw-la ad_fw-la observandum_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la lege_fw-la praecipitur_fw-la nec_fw-la satisfacere_fw-la officio_fw-la si_fw-la parati_fw-la sint_fw-la poenam_fw-la lege_fw-la constitutam_fw-la subire_fw-la and_o where_o he_o further_o say_v that_o the_o mind_n and_o intention_n of_o the_o legislator_n be_v chief_o see_v in_o the_o proem_n of_o his_o law_n in_o quo_fw-la say_v he_o there_o ut_fw-la acceptior_fw-la sit_fw-la populo_fw-la lex_fw-la solet_fw-la legislator_n consilii_fw-la svi_fw-la de_fw-la eà_fw-la lege_fw-la ferendâ_fw-la causas_fw-la &_o rationes_fw-la expo●e●e_fw-la quam_fw-la sit_fw-la lex_fw-la iusta_fw-la quam_fw-la fuerit_fw-la tollendis_fw-la incommodis_fw-la &_o abusibus_fw-la necessaria_fw-la quam_fw-la futura_fw-la sit_fw-la reip._n utilis_fw-la there_o be_v a_o particular_a principle_n of_o moment_n worthy_a of_o the_o magistrate_n survey_v that_o relate_v to_o the_o gather_v church_n and_o that_o be_v a_o principle_n make_v a_o necessary_a ingredient_n in_o the_o constitution_n of_o of_o those_o church_n by_o a_o divine_a of_o the_o same_o authority_n among_o they_o as_o bishop_n sa●●erson_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o who_o i_o occasional_o beforementioned_a and_o that_o be_v mr._n john_n cotton_n b._n d._n who_o in_o a_o pamphlet_n of_o his_o print_a at_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1642_o entitle_v the_o true_a constitution_n of_o a_o particular_a visible_a church_n prove_v by_o scripture_n wherein_o be_v brief_o demonstrate_v by_o question_n and_o answer_n what_o officer_n worship_n and_o government_n christ_n have_v ordain_v in_o his_o church_n and_o in_o the_o title-page_n whereof_o be_v this_o place_n of_o scripture_n viz._n jer._n 50._o 5._o they_o shall_v ask_v the_o way_n to_o zion_n with_o their_o face_n thitherward_o say_v come_v let_v we_o join_v ourselves_o to_o the_o lord_n in_o a_o perpetual_a covenant_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v forget_v in_o p._n one_a make_v his_o first_o question_n what_o be_v a_o church_n and_o the_o answer_n be_v the_o church_n be_v a_o mystical_a body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n the_o member_n and_o saint_n call_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o unite_a together_o in_o one_o congregation_n by_o a_o holy_a covenant_n to_o worship_n the_o lord_n and_o to_o edify_v one_o another_o in_o all_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n and_o in_o another_o book_n of_o his_o print_a at_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1645_o call_v the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o new_a england_n his_o three_o proposition_n be_v this_o viz._n for_o the_o join_n of_o faithful_a christian_n into_o the_o fellowship_n and_o estate_n of_o a_o church_n we_o find_v not_o in_o scripture_n that_o god_n have_v do_v it_o any_o other_o way_n than_o by_o enter_v of_o they_o all_o together_o as_o one_o man_n into_o a_o holy_a covenant_n with_o himself_o to_o take_v the_o lord_n as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o their_o god_n and_o to_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o he_o to_o be_v his_o church_n and_o people_n which_o imply_v their_o submit_v of_o themselves_o to_o he_o and_o one_o to_o another_o in_o his_o fear_n and_o their_o walk_n in_o profess_a subjection_n to_o all_o his_o ordinance_n their_o cleave_v one_o to_o another_o as_o fellow_n member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n in_o brotherly_a love_n and_o holy_a watchfulness_n unto_o mutual_a edification_n he_o there_o partly_o prop_n up_o the_o obligation_n of_o this_o church_n covenant_n on_o the_o jewish_a oeconomy_n mention_v in_o the_o book_n of_o deuteronomy_n and_o other_o place_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o reasonableness_n of_o subject_n not_o enter_v into_o religionary_a covenant_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pater_fw-la patriae_fw-la may_v be_v infer_v from_o the_o old_a testament_n where_o in_o number_n c._n 30_o the_o parent_n have_v a_o power_n give_v for_o the_o control_a of_o the_o child_n vow_n not_o enter_v into_o by_o his_o consent_n but_o since_o these_o principle_n of_o a_o new_a church_n covenant_n may_v seem_v to_o introduce_v a_o new_a ecclesiastical_a law_n without_o the_o king_n privity_n and_o consent_n a_o thing_n that_o if_o our_o very_a convocation_n shall_v presume_v to_o do_v will_v bring_v they_o within_o a_o praemunire_n and_o since_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o reform_v and_o order_v of_o all_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a be_v by_o the_o law_n in_o express_a word_n annex_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o particular_o by_o the_o one_a of_o elizabeth_n and_o since_o that_o it_o have_v be_v say_v that_o even_o without_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n a_o new_a oath_n or_o covenant_n can_v be_v introduce_v among_o the_o king_n subject_n and_o moreover_o since_o all_o the_o famous_a religionary_a confession_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n abroad_o assert_v nothing_o of_o any_o such_o church_n covenant_n and_o since_o covenant_n and_o association_n have_v late_o hear_v so_o ill_o in_o the_o kingdom_n i_o think_v the_o nature_n and_o term_n of_o this_o independent_a covenant_n ought_v to_o be_v lay_v as_o plain_a before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o government_n as_o be_v the_o scotch_a presbyterian_a one_o those_o word_n of_o mr._n cotton_n of_o the_o enter_v they_o all_o together_o as_o one_o man_n into_o a_o holy_a covenant_n carry_v some_o thing_n like_o the_o same_o sound_n of_o one_o and_o all_o and_o though_o their_o thus_o enter_v into_o it_o to_o take_v the_o lord_n as_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n for_o their_o god_n and_o to_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o he_o to_o be_v his_o church_n and_o people_n may_v be_v a_o plausible_a beginning_n of_o this_o new_a church_n covenant_n in_o nomine_fw-la domini_fw-la yet_o the_o follow_a word_n of_o submit_v themselves_o to_o he_o and_o to_o one_o another_o in_o his_o fear_n and_o their_o cleave_v one_o to_o another_o as_o fellow_n member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n in_o brotherly_a love_n and_o holy_a watchfulness_n be_v word_n that_o i_o think_v the_o magistracy_n ought_v to_o watch_v and_o to_o see_v that_o dissenter_n have_v a_o very_a sound_a form_n of_o word_n prescribe_v to_o they_o in_o this_o case_n if_o it_o shall_v think_v fit_a to_o have_v the_o same_o continue_a i_o have_v find_v the_o assertion_n of_o a_o church_n covenant_n as_o essential_a to_o the_o form_n of_o a_o true_a independent_a church_n in_o many_o other_o of_o their_o book_n and_o do_v suppose_v that_o this_o covenant_n be_v lay_v as_o cornerstone_n in_o the_o build_n of_o their_o church_n by_o divine_a right_n it_o must_v last_v as_o long_o as_o independency_n itself_o and_o of_o its_o last_v still_o i_o meet_v with_o a_o indication_n from_o a_o loyal_a and_o learned_a official_a of_o the_o court-christian_a who_o tell_v i_o that_o though_o several_a of_o the_o dissenter_n call_v presbyterian_o have_v be_v easy_o persuade_v to_o repair_v to_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o they_o be_v admonish_v to_o confer_v with_o and_o have_v upon_o conference_n with_o they_o come_v to_o church_n and_o take_v the_o sacrament_n yet_o he_o think_v that_o some_o of_o another_o class_n of_o dissenter_n be_v possess_v with_o a_o spirit_n of_o incurable_a contumacy_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o principle_n have_v tie_v they_o together_o to_o one_o another_o by_o a_o covenant_n and_o if_o it_o shall_v therefore_o appear_v to_o the_o magistrate_n that_o they_o be_v thus_o conference-proof_n and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v reason-proof_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o covenant_n it_o will_v then_o be_v find_v that_o no_o one_o member_n of_o a_o gather_a church_n can_v turn_v to_o we_o without_o the_o whole_a hyena-like_a turn_n and_o perhaps_o some_o of_o the_o lord_n the_o bishop_n may_v think_v it_o hereupon_o proper_a humble_o to_o advise_v his_o majesty_n to_o null_n by_o a_o declaration_n the_o obligation_n of_o this_o covenant_n as_o his_o royal_a father_n do_v that_o of_o the_o presbyterian_a covenant_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o consideration_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o independecy_n thus_o seem_v to_o have_v cramp_v the_o conscience_n of_o its_o follower_n with_o a_o covenant_n that_o be_v at_o least_o unnecessary_a and_o must_v natural_o be_v a_o troublesome_a imposition_n to_o man_n of_o thought_n and_o generous_a education_n who_o love_n to_o perform_v moral_a office_n without_o enter_v into_o covenant_n or_o give_v bond_n so_o to_o do_v may_v serve_v to_o
the_o exhalation_n of_o which_o may_v cast_v such_o mist_n before_o man_n understanding_n faculty_n as_o to_o hinder_v they_o from_o see_v their_o way_n in_o the_o observance_n of_o the_o oath_n they_o take_v and_o therefore_o as_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o premuniment_n as_o i_o call_v it_o against_o our_o be_v future_a enemy_n to_o ourselves_o and_o against_o poor_a little_a mortal_n as_o it_o be_v stand_v for_o the_o office_n of_o conservator_n of_o god_n glory_n while_o they_o be_v lose_v their_o own_o soul_n by_o perjury_n and_o against_o some_o loyal_a timid_a people_n trouble_v themselves_o with_o fall_v sky_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n not_o uphold_v his_o church_n just_a as_o galen_n tell_v we_o of_o a_o melancholy_a man_n who_o by_o often_o read_v it_o in_o the_o poet_n how_o atlas_n support_v heaven_n with_o his_o shoulder_n be_v often_o in_o a_o panic_n fear_v lest_o atlas_n shall_v faint_v and_o let_v heaven_n fall_v on_o man_n head_n instead_o of_o take_v pain_n to_o uphold_v and_o maintain_v their_o oath_n which_o they_o swear_v to_o god_n in_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v always_o of_o importance_n to_o our_o english_a world_n to_o have_v right_a notion_n of_o the_o obligation_n of_o those_o oath_n leave_v behind_o in_o it_o when_o i_o have_v read_v many_o of_o the_o late_a pamphlet_n against_o the_o succession_n the_o venom_n of_o which_o be_v steal_v out_o of_o doleman_n alias_z parson_n book_n and_o have_v often_o consider_v that_o the_o government_n in_o king_n james_n time_n might_n we_o will_v be_v apprehensive_a of_o the_o mischief_n that_o book_n may_v do_v with_o its_o poison_n and_o perhaps_o with_o its_o sting_n in_o follow_v age_n i_o have_v then_o wonder_v why_o none_o be_v employ_v to_o answer_v it_o thorough_o a_o thing_n that_o i_o do_v not_o find_v be_v ever_o do_v unless_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o one_a part_n of_o it_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1603_o publish_v by_o sir_n john_n haward_n and_o that_o its_o second_o part_n have_v be_v confute_v by_o some_o loyal_a and_o learned_a person_n since_o the_o late_a conjuncture_n of_o our_o fermentation_n and_o in_o which_o time_n that_o book_n of_o parson_n be_v reprint_v i_o be_o sorry_a that_o that_o book_n and_o some_o other_o of_o father_n parson_n be_v in_o some_o part_n of_o king_n james_n time_n answer_v as_o they_o be_v by_o the_o real_a character_n of_o severity_n that_o then_o fall_v on_o some_o innocent_a papist_n and_o who_o i_o believe_v be_v abhorrer_n of_o the_o sedition_n his_o book_n contain_v and_o on_o who_o dr._n donne_n pseudomartyr_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1610_o reflect_v in_o the_o advertisement_n to_o the_o reader_n say_v that_o his_o continual_a libel_n and_o incitatory_n book_n have_v occasion_v more_o affliction_n and_o draw_v more_o of_o that_o blood_n which_o they_o call_v catholic_n than_o all_o our_o act_n of_o parliament_n have_v do_v and_o with_o a_o just_a respect_n to_o the_o learning_n in_o sir_n john_n haward_n answer_n to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o that_o book_n and_o by_o he_o dedicate_v to_o king_n james_n it_o may_v yet_o be_v wish_v that_o with_o less_o pomp_n of_o word_n and_o great_a closeness_n of_o argument_n refer_v to_o the_o principle_n of_o internal_a justice_n and_o natural_a allegiance_n and_o the_o lex_fw-la terrae_fw-la he_o have_v show_v the_o perfect_a unlawfulness_n of_o defeat_v the_o title_n of_o proximity_n of_o blood_n in_o the_o case_n and_o instead_o of_o so_o much_o impugn_v the_o book_n by_o reference_n to_o the_o civil_a law_n and_o old_a greek_a and_o latin_a author_n make_v for_o monarchy_n in_o general_n or_o even_o by_o the_o place_n cite_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n favour_v primogeniture_n and_o indeed_o i_o do_v not_o find_v among_o all_o our_o late_a writer_n for_o the_o succession_n that_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o they_o by_o so_o much_o as_o once_o quote_v this_o book_n of_o sir_n john_n haward_n though_o so_o common_a have_v thence_o bring_v any_o aid_n to_o their_o noble_a cause_n but_o however_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n have_v be_v enjoin_v since_o the_o write_n of_o sir_n john_n haward_n book_n have_v give_v a_o ordinary_a writer_n the_o advantage_n of_o bring_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o disturb_v the_o course_n of_o succession_n to_o a_o quick_a hear_n and_o speedy_a issue_n in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n which_o be_v the_o point_n i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o carry_v after_o the_o end_n of_o this_o discourse_n leave_v it_o to_o candid_a man_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o my_o performance_n therein_o and_o of_o my_o fair_a state_v of_o the_o question_n and_o the_o deduce_a genuine_a proposition_n from_o it_o so_o state_v and_o which_o shall_v yet_o be_v review_v by_o i_o when_o i_o come_v to_o review_n this_o discourse_n the_o truth_n be_v when_o i_o begin_v it_o i_o observe_v the_o generality_n of_o man_n who_o write_v against_o the_o exclusion-bill_n with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o good_a law_n history_n and_o state-policy_n do_v show_v both_o their_o learning_n and_o their_o loyalty_n and_o do_v very_o useful_o set_v forth_o the_o dreadful_a confusion_n it_o will_v introduce_v and_o perpetuate_v in_o the_o state_n and_o the_o illegality_n and_o indeed_o nullity_n of_o any_o exclusion_n though_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v by_o they_o likewise_o useful_o show_v but_o yet_o i_o think_v it_o will_v have_v be_v some_o scandal_n to_o the_o present_a age_n if_o it_o have_v pass_v away_o without_o transmit_v to_o the_o next_o some_o instance_n of_o protestant_n who_o have_v leisure_n to_o write_v write_v of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o such_o a_o bill_n with_o relation_n to_o our_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o i_o be_v sorry_a to_o find_v that_o when_o the_o late_a loyal_a and_o learned_a bishop_n of_o winchester_n have_v afterward_o appear_v as_o the_o first_o d●vine_a who_o in_o print_n assert_v that_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o right_a heir_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n both_o natural_a and_o positive_a and_o that_o such_o exclusion_n be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n also_o his_o judgement_n in_o his_o book_n call_v the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n winchester_n s_o vindication_n give_v so_o learned_o in_o the_o point_n seem_v to_o so_o many_o of_o our_o new_a pretender_n to_o loyalty_n and_o to_o conformity_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o a_o novelty_n but_o yet_o i_o observe_v that_o that_o learned_a prelate_n think_v not_o fit_a there_o to_o strengthen_v his_o assertion_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o such_o exclusion_n by_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n nor_o do_v i_o observe_v that_o among_o all_o the_o loyal_a writer_n for_o the_o succession_n i_o have_v meet_v with_o from_o first_o to_o last_o any_o one_o have_v survey_v the_o question_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o the_o exclusion_n result_v from_o our_o obligation_n by_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n though_o yet_o some_o few_o of_o they_o hint_v the_o thing_n in_o general_a and_o be_v still_o answer_v with_o the_o haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la till_o at_o last_o another_o divine_a namely_o dr._n hicks_n vicar_n of_o all_o hallow_v bark_v and_o dean_n of_o worcester_n honour_v both_o himself_o and_o the_o question_n by_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o in_o his_o jovian_a and_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o a_o sermon_n of_o his_o print_a in_o the_o year_n 1684_o and_o entitle_v the_o harmony_n of_o divinity_n and_o law_n in_o a_o discourse_n about_o not_o resist_v sovereign_a prince_n and_o he_o in_o the_o 3d_o p._n of_o that_o preface_n observe_v that_o some_o man_n do_v pervert_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n heir_n in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n from_o its_o common_a and_o usual_a acceptation_n to_o another_o more_o special_a on_o purpose_n to_o elude_v the_o force_n and_o obligation_n of_o they_o which_o otherwise_o they_o must_v have_v have_v upon_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o excluder_n themselves_o the_o doctor_n have_v make_v himself_o master_n of_o law_n enough_o to_o master_n the_o true_a notion_n of_o the_o point_n and_o do_v in_o his_o preface_n exorcise_v the_o fantom_n of_o haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la a_o noonday_n spirit_n raise_v by_o one_o who_o be_v think_v a_o great_a conjurer_n and_o which_o have_v before_o haunt_v the_o question_n and_o have_v affright_v so_o many_o from_o lodging_n their_o thought_n in_o it_o and_o though_o no_o other_o of_o our_o divine_n that_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o write_v of_o the_o same_o nor_o any_o of_o the_o laity_n otherwise_o than_o start_v the_o notion_n of_o it_o in_o print_n yet_o consider_v the_o great_a weight_n of_o his_o learning_n and_o reason_n with_o which_o in_o
make_v a_o ruffian_n of_o the_o pope_n himself_o but_o indeed_o long_o before_o the_o edition_n of_o that_o trifle_a book_n many_o thing_n have_v occur_v so_o far_o to_o shake_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o witness_n as_o that_o it_o grow_v general_o the_o concordant_a voice_n of_o the_o populace_n that_o on_o a_o supposal_n of_o several_a of_o the_o same_o person_n be_v again_o alive_a to_o be_v try_v on_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o same_o witness_n before_o the_o same_o judge_n it_o will_v not_o have_v prejudice_v a_o hair_n of_o the_o head_n that_o be_v destroy_v by_o it_o and_o particular_o in_o the_o unfortunate_a lord_n stafford_n case_n i_o have_v in_o two_o or_o three_o place_n of_o this_o discourse_n speak_v of_o the_o papal_a hierarchy_n call_v it_o holy_a church_n its_o old_a know_a term_n and_o by_o which_o i_o mean_v no_o reflection_n of_o scorn_n nor_o will_v i_o laugh_v at_o any_o principle_n of_o religion_n find_v among_o any_o heterodox_n religionary_n that_o the_o die_a groan_n of_o the_o holy_a jesus_n purchase_v they_o a_o liberty_n to_o profess_v but_o it_o be_v no_o raillery_n to_o say_v that_o the_o artifices_fw-la of_o any_o dis-loyal_a popish_a and_o protestant_n recusant_n that_o have_v so_o long_o make_v templum_fw-la domini_fw-la usurp_v on_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o his_o vice_n gerent_n that_o be_v king_n and_o prince_n will_v support_v no_o church_n and_o that_o as_o it_o have_v be_v observe_v of_o some_o free_a stone_n that_o when_o they_o be_v lay_v in_o a_o building_n in_o that_o proper_a posture_n which_o they_o have_v natural_o in_o their_o quarry_n they_o grow_v very_o hard_a and_o durable_a and_o if_o that_o be_v change_v they_o moulder_v away_o in_o a_o short_a time_n a_o long_a duration_n may_v likewise_o be_v predict_v to_o the_o art_n and_o principle_n of_o reason_n apply_v to_o support_v a_o church_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o quarry_n of_o nature_n and_o where_o the_o god_n of_o nature_n lay_v they_o for_o the_o support_n of_o prince_n and_o their_o people_n and_o è_fw-la contrà_fw-la in_o fine_a therefore_o since_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v thus_o lay_v in_o it_o as_o they_o be_v in_o that_o quarry_n none_o need_v fear_v that_o they_o will_v be_v deface_v by_o time_n or_o that_o a_o lawful_a prince_n of_o any_o religion_n here_o will_v accost_v it_o otherwise_o than_o with_o those_o word_n of_o the_o royal_a psalmist_n viz._n peace_n be_v within_o thy_o wall_n and_o prosperity_n within_o thy_o palace_n a_o index_n of_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a matter_n contain_v in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n in_o aletter_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o anglesy_n his_o lordship_n be_v vindicate_v from_o misreport_n of_o be_v a_o papist_n and_o a_o account_n give_v of_o his_o birth_n and_o education_n and_o time_n spend_v in_o the_o university_n and_o inn_n of_o court_n and_o afterward_o in_o his_o travel_n abroad_o page_z 1_o 2_o 3._o a_o account_n of_o his_o first_o eminent_a public_a employment_n as_o governor_n of_o ulster_n by_o authority_n under_o the_o great_a seal_n of_o england_n p._n 4._o a_o account_n of_o his_o successful_a negotiation_n with_o the_o then_o marquis_n of_o ormond_n lord_n lieutenant_n of_o ireland_n for_o the_o surrender_n of_o dublin_n and_o all_o other_o garrison_n under_o his_o command_n into_o the_o parliament_n hand_n p._n 5._o a_o account_n of_o his_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o in_o england_n and_o of_o the_o great_a figure_n he_o afterward_o make_v in_o the_o king_n restoration_n ib._n reflection_n on_o the_o popular_a envy_n against_o the_o power_n of_o a_o premier_n minister_fw-fr ib._n and_o p._n 6_o 7_o 8._o remark_n on_o the_o say_v apply_v in_o a_o speech_n of_o one_o of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o against_o the_o earl_n of_o strafford_n viz._n that_o beast_n of_o prey_n be_v to_o have_v no_o law_n ib._n reflection_n on_o the_o rigour_n and_o injustice_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o in_o their_o proceed_n against_o the_o earl_n of_o strafford_n p_o 9_o the_o usurper_n declare_v that_o though_o they_o judge_v the_o rebellion_n in_o ireland_n almost_o national_a that_o it_o be_v not_o their_o intention_n to_o extirpate_v the_o whole_a irish_a nation_n p._n 10._o the_o author_n ow_v his_o have_v observe_v the_o piety_n and_o charity_n of_o several_a papist_n p._n 11._o the_o author_n suppose_v that_o since_o all_o religion_n have_v a_o priesthood_n that_o some_o priest_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o usurper_n to_o the_o transplant_v irish_a p._n 13._o a_o account_n of_o the_o privilege_n the_o papist_n enjoy_v in_o ireland_n before_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o rebellion_n there_o and_o of_o the_o favour_n they_o enjoy_v in_o england_n before_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n p._n 14._o observation_n on_o the_o pope_n decree_n march_v the_o second_o 1679._o condemn_v some_o opinion_n of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o other_o casuist_n in_o page_n 15_o 41_o 50_o 51_o 52_o 53_o 201._o the_o great_a goodness_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o anglesy_n nature_n observe_v and_o particular_o he_o often_o run_v hazard_n to_o save_v those_o who_o be_v sink_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o court_n p._n 16._o the_o author_n observation_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o hot_a statute_n against_o popery_n and_o papist_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v and_o king_n james_n his_o time_n short_o cease_v ib._n the_o author_n judgement_n that_o a_o perfect_a hatred_n to_o popery_n may_v consist_v with_o a_o perfect_a love_n to_o papist_n p._n 19_o he_o express_v his_o have_a no_o regret_n against_o any_o due_a relaxation_n of_o any_o penal_a law_n against_o popish_a recusant_n p._n 20._o a_o account_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o anglesy_n and_o other_o of_o the_o long_a parliament_n crush_a the_o jure-divinity_n of_o presbytery_n in_o the_o egg_n p._n 29_o 30._o the_o outrage_n of_o the_o scot_n presbyterian_a government_n observe_v p._n 29_o the_o people_n of_o england_n do_v hate_n and_o scorn_v its_o yoke_n in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o late_a civil_a war_n ib._n remarks_n concern_v infamous_a witness_n and_o their_o credibility_n after_o pardon_n of_o perjury_n or_o after_o crime_n and_o infamy_n incur_v p._n 33_o 34_o 35._o at_o large_a and_o p._n 204_o 205._o the_o incredibility_n of_o the_o thing_n swear_v in_o a_o affidavit_fw-la by_o such_o a_o witness_n against_o his_o lordship_n p._n 35_o 36._o the_o principle_n in_o guymenius_n p._n 190._o exit_fw-la tractatu_fw-la de_fw-la justitiâ_fw-la &_o jure_fw-la censure_v viz._n licitum_fw-la est_fw-la clerico_n vel_fw-la religioso_fw-la calumniatorem_fw-la gravia_fw-la crimina_fw-la de_fw-la se_fw-la vel_fw-la de_fw-fr suâ_fw-la religione_fw-la spargere_fw-la minantem_fw-la occidere_fw-la etc._n etc._n p._n 37._o cardinal_z de_fw-fr ossat_n letter_n very_o false_o and_o ridiculous_o cite_v by_o a_o english_a priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o relate_v that_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n plot_n be_v a_o shame_n of_o cecil_n contrivance_n p_o 38._o father_n parson_n one_o of_o the_o great_a man_n the_o jesuit_n order_n have_v produce_v p._n 40._o de_fw-fr ossat_n in_o his_o letter_n observe_v to_o have_v give_v a_o more_o perfect_a scheme_n of_o the_o whole_a design_n to_o hinder_v king_n james_n his_o succession_n than_o all_o other_o writer_n have_v do_v ib._n observation_n on_o the_o author_n of_o the_o catholic_n apology_n with_o a_o reply_n &c_n &c_n speak_v of_o his_o not_o believe_v that_o doleman_n book_n of_o the_o succession_n be_v write_v by_o father_n parson_n and_o that_o parson_n at_o his_o death_n deny_v that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o and_o on_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr ossat_n in_o his_o letter_n aver_v that_o parson_n be_v reverâ_fw-la the_o author_n of_o it_o and_o that_o parson_n make_v application_n to_o he_o in_o order_n to_o the_o defeat_a king_n james_n his_o succession_n unless_o he_o will_v turn_v catholic_n p._n 41._o de_fw-fr ossat's_n observing_z that_o parson_n in_o that_o book_n do_v often_o and_o gross_o contradict_v himself_o ib._n de_fw-fr ossat_n commend_v our_o english_a understanding_n for_o so_o soon_o receive_v king_n james_n and_o so_o peaceable_o after_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n ib._n the_o author_n grant_v that_o papist_n may_v be_v sound_a part_n of_o the_o state_n here_o as_o they_o be_v by_o sir_n william_n temple_n in_o his_o book_n observe_v to_o be_v in_o holland_n p._n 44._o the_o vanity_n of_o some_o papist_n design_v to_o raise_v their_o interest_n by_o calumny_n and_o shame_n ib._n the_o pope_n say_a decree_n of_o the_o 2d_o of_o march_n accuse_v the_o jesuit_n and_o other_o casuist_n of_o make_v calumny_n a_o venial_a sin_n p._n 45._o the_o nature_n of_o a_o venial_a sin_n explain_v ib._n the_o jesuit_n moral_a divinity_n patronise_a calumny_n be_v likely_a to_o be_v fatal_a to_o their_o order_n p._n 47._o 49._o the_o
author_n opinion_n that_o they_o can_v never_o recover_v the_o wound_n give_v they_o by_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o les_fw-fr provinciales_fw-la etc._n etc._n ib._n and_o that_o much_o less_o those_o give_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n say_a decree_n p._n 50_o 51._o observation_n on_o that_o notion_n of_o moasieur_n descartes_n and_o mr._n hobbs_n that_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v equal_o dispense_v and_o on_o the_o natural_a effect_n of_o that_o notion_n p._n 58._o the_o author_n remark_n some_o shamm_n and_o calumny_n use_v by_o some_o protestant_n and_o their_o contend_v with_o papist_n therein_o p._n 59_o a_o antidote_n mention_v for_o papist_n and_o protestant_n to_o carry_v about_o with_o they_o in_o this_o pestilential_a time_n of_o shamm_n ib._n a_o vile_a shame_n or_o calumny_n use_v against_o papist_n as_o if_o they_o intend_v to_o burn_v the_o town_n of_o stafford_n and_o other_o great_a town_n be_v refer_v to_o in_o one_o of_o janeway_n print_a intelligence_n p._n 60._o animadversion_n on_o parson_n his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n p._n 60_o 61._o it_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n observe_v that_o harry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n after_o he_o turn_v papist_n continue_v kind_a and_o just_a to_o his_o protestant_a subject_n notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n endeavour_n to_o the_o contrary_a p._n 62._o the_o author_n grand_a assertion_n viz._n that_o whatever_o alteration_n time_n can_v cause_v yet_o human_o speak_v while_o the_o english_a nation_n remain_v entire_a and_o defend_v from_o foreign_a conquest_n the_o protestant_a religion_n can_v never_o be_v exterminate_v out_o of_o this_o kingdom_n p._n 64._o mr._n hooker_n propliecy_n of_o the_o hazard_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o england_n be_v a_o ill_a state_n after_o the_o year_n 1677_o p._n 65._o the_o defection_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n from_o the_o time_n of_o david_n punish_v by_o a_o succession_n of_o 10_o ill_a king_n p._n 66._o the_o word_n in_o hosea_n i_o give_v thou_o a_o king_n in_o my_o anger_n false_o make_v by_o antimonarchical_a scribbler_n to_o refer_v to_o saul_n ib._n dr._n stillingfleet_n sermon_n cite_v about_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o what_o the_o fermentation_n among_o we_o may_v end_v in_o ib._n dr._n sprat_n opinion_n cite_v that_o whatever_o vicissitude_n shall_v happen_v about_o religion_n in_o our_o time_n will_v neither_o be_v to_o the_o advantage_n of_o implicit_a faith_n or_o enthusiasm_n p._n 67._o historical_a observation_n relate_v to_o the_o papacy_n from_o p._n 67_o to_o p._n 77._o the_o papal_a power_n former_o pernicious_a to_o the_o external_a polity_n and_o grandeur_n of_o england_n p._n 77_o 78._o queen_n elizabeth_z say_v by_o townsend_n to_o have_v spend_v a_o million_o of_o money_n in_o her_o war_n with_o spain_n and_o lay_v out_o 100000_o l._n to_o support_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o 150000_o l._n in_o defence_n of_o the_o low_a country_n and_o to_o have_v discharge_v a_o debt_n of_o 4_o million_o she_o find_v the_o crown_n indebt_v in_o ib._n how_o by_o her_o alliance_n she_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o vast_a ensue_a trade_n of_o england_n who_o overbalance_n bring_v in_o afterward_o so_o much_o silver_n to_o be_v coin_v in_o the_o tower_n of_o london_n p._n 78._o the_o sum_v coin_v there_o from_o the_o 41_o sy_n year_n of_o her_o reign_n to_o may_v 1657_o ib._n england_n alone_o till_o the_o peace_n of_o munster_n in_o the_o year_n 1648_o enjoy_v almost_o the_o whole_a manufacture_n and_o best_a part_n of_o the_o trade_n of_o europe_n by_o virtue_n of_o her_o alliance_n ib._n the_o same_o month_n of_o january_n in_o the_o year_n 48_o produce_v the_o sign_v of_o that_o peace_n and_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o the_o best_a of_o king_n and_o the_o fatal_a diminution_n of_o our_o trade_n ib._n queen_n elizabeth_n have_v what_o praemium_fw-la of_o tax_n from_o parliament_n she_o please_v ib._n king_n james_n tell_v the_o parliament_n anno_fw-la 1620_o that_o she_o have_v one_o year_n with_o another_o 100,000_o l._n in_o subsidy_n and_o that_o he_o have_v in_o all_o his_o time_n but_o 4_o subsidy_n and_o 6_o fifteenth_n and_o that_o his_o parliament_n have_v not_o give_v he_o any_o thing_n for_o 8_o or_o 9_o year_n ib._n in_o harry_n the_o 3_o d_n time_n the_o pope_n revenue_n in_o england_n be_v great_a than_o the_o king_n and_o in_o 3_o year_n time_n the_o pope_n extort_a more_o money_n from_o england_n than_o be_v leave_v remain_v in_o it_o ib._n in_o edward_n the_o 3_o d_n time_n the_o tax_n pa●d_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n amount_v to_o five_o time_n as_o much_o as_o the_o people_n pay_v to_o the_o king_n p._n 79._o by_o a_o balance_n of_o trade_n then_o in_o the_o exchequer_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o overplus_n of_o the_o export_n above_o the_o import_v amount_v to_o 255214_o l._n 13_o s._n 8d_n ib._n wolsey_n revenue_n general_o hold_v equal_a to_o harry_v the_o 8_o th_n ib._n why_o the_o pope_n never_o send_v emissary_n to_o denmark_n and_o sweden_n and_o some_o other_o northern_a country_n for_o money_n and_o why_o probable_o in_o no_o course_n of_o time_n that_o can_v happen_v he_o will_v send_v any_o to_o england_n on_o that_o errand_n ib._n and_o p._n 80._o in_o the_o 4_o the_o year_n of_o richard_n the_o 2_o d_o the_o clergy_n confess_v they_o have_v a_o 3_o d_o part_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o then_o consent_v to_o pay_v a_o 3_o d_o of_o the_o tax_n ib._n bishop_n sanderson_n mention_n the_o monastic_a revenue_n to_o be_v half_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o kingdom_n ib._n the_o not_o provide_v for_o the_o augmentation_n of_o the_o poor_a living_n in_o england_n observe_v to_o be_v a_o scandal_n to_o the_o reformation_n p._n 81._o of_o 8000_o and_o odd_a parish_n church_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n but_o 600_o be_v observe_v to_o afford_v a_o competent_a maintenance_n to_o a_o minister_n and_o four_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o live_n than_o not_o worth_a above_o 10_o l._n a_o year_n in_o the_o king_n book_n ib._n during_o the_o late_a usurpation_n the_o impropriate_a tithe_n save_v the_o other_o ib._n a_o million_o of_o pound_n sterling_n common_o observe_v to_o accrue_v to_o the_o pope_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la from_o indulgency_n p._n 87._o a_o account_n of_o the_o compact_a between_o some_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a presbyterian_a divine_n and_o the_o long_a parliament_n by_o which_o the_o parliament_n be_v oblige_v to_o settle_v on_o the_o ministry_n all_o the_o church_n land_n and_o those_o divine_n engage_v to_o promote_v the_o parliament_n cause_v and_o of_o the_o result_n thereof_o p._n 88_o observation_n on_o the_o calculation_n of_o the_o monastic_a revenue_n make_v in_o the_o year_n 1527_o by_o mr._n simon_n fish_n in_o his_o book_n call_v the_o supplication_n of_o beggar_n and_o which_o calculation_n be_v much_o value_v by_o harry_n the_o 8_o the_o p._n 90_o 91._o not_o only_o none_o of_o our_o monkish_a historian_n but_o even_o of_o our_o polish_a and_o ingenious_a one_o make_v any_o estimate_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o time_n they_o write_v of_o ib._n a_o calculation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o religious_a person_n or_o regulars_n in_o england_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o dissolution_n of_o monastery_n p._n 92._o a_o calculation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o secular_o as_o well_o as_o regulars_n that_o then_o live_v in_o celibacy_n ib._n the_o author_n calculation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o levite_n and_o of_o their_o quota_fw-la of_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o land_n p._n 93._o a_o calculation_n of_o the_o ebb_n of_o the_o coinage_n of_o england_n from_o may_n 1657_o to_o november_n 1675_o p._n 102._o a_o particular_a account_n of_o cromwell_n the_o usurper_n depress_v the_o trade_n of_o the_o european_a world_n p._n 103._o the_o king_n of_o spain_n impose_v pension_n on_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n to_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o value_n p._n 104._o the_o proportion_n of_o papist_n and_o non-papists_a by_o the_o bishop_n survey_v in_o the_o year_n 1676_o be_v 150_o non-papists_a for_o one_o papist_n ib._n the_o people_n in_o the_o province_n of_o holland_n reckon_v to_o be_v 2_o million_o 4_o hundred_o thousand_o ib._n the_o people_n in_o flanders_n in_o the_o year_n 1622_o reckon_v to_o be_v 700,000_o p._n 105._o amsterdam_n in_o the_o year_n 1650_o reckon_v to_o have_v in_o it_o 300000_o soul_n ib._n a_o account_n of_o what_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o holland_n in_o the_o year_n 1664_o do_v over_o and_o above_o the_o custom_n and_o other_o demesne_n of_o the_o earl_n and_o state_n of_o holland_n pay_v towards_o the_o public_a charge_n namely_o to_o the_o state_n of_o holland_n to_o the_o admiralty_n of_o the_o maze_n to_o the_o admiralty_n of_o
the_o anger_n of_o the_o people_n diffusive_a or_o representative_a be_v over_o but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a from_o it_o be_v not_o have_v appear_v violent_a and_o indeed_o as_o that_o heat_n of_o the_o body_n that_o be_v acquire_v not_o by_o a_o approach_n to_o a_o blaze_a fire_n but_o gradual_o by_o gentle_a exercise_n of_o the_o part_n be_v most_o last_a and_o most_o agreeable_a to_o its_o constitution_n so_o be_v it_o with_o that_o heat_n of_o popular_a anger_n that_o be_v the_o result_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o man_n mind_n and_o of_o several_a labour_v intense_a thought_n most_o durable_a and_o salutiferous_a to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o kingdom_n it_o have_v be_v observe_v by_o a_o man_n of_o no_o vulgar_a intellectual_a talent_n mr._n philip_n nye_n a_o man_n indeed_o of_o great_a sagacity_n in_o his_o generation_n as_o i_o find_v it_o in_o his_o book_n call_v beam_n of_o former_a light_n viz._n we_o know_v that_o in_o near_a a_o hundred_o year_n the_o reformation_n gain_v little_a upon_o popery_n and_o superstition_n more_o than_o be_v get_v by_o the_o first_o assault_n nay_o it_o decay_a and_o popery_n grow_v under_o it_o so_o fast_o as_o at_o last_o we_o be_v almost_o return_v into_o the_o same_o condition_n that_o we_o be_v reform_v from_o and_o this_o he_o say_v may_v be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o first_o reformation_n prosper_v no_o better_o there_o be_v the_o like_a severe_a imposition_n and_o law_n make_v upon_o occasion_n of_o difference_n among_o the_o protest_v ant_n and_o then_o advantage_n be_v take_v thereby_o and_o many_o put_v out_o of_o the_o master-role_n for_o nonconformity_n who_o be_v of_o great_a courage_n and_o most_o faithful_a resolution_n against_o popery_n and_o superstition_n the_o then_o common_a enemy_n the_o silen●cing_a and_o ejection_n of_o minister_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n day_n reformation_n be_v new_o begin_v and_o the_o enemy_n to_o it_o many_o the_o friend_n and_o those_o that_o faithful_o engage_v few_o be_v look_v on_o by_o the_o godly_a prudent_a of_o that_o age_n as_o very_o unseasonable_a yea_o the_o their_o crime_n have_v deserve_v it_o because_o of_o the_o searcity_n of_o preacher_n at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o frequent_a in_o our_o suffer_a brethren_n write_n that_o be_v then_o publish_v against_o the_o hierarchy_n than_o a_o bemoan_v the_o great_a loss_n to_o the_o cause_n and_o people_n of_o god_n thereby_o i_o will_v mention_v but_o one_o consider_v the_o season_n say_v mr._n parker_n though_o we_o be_v worthy_a yet_o shall_v we_o least_o be_v deprive_v now_o when_o popery_n rise_v like_o the_o swell_n of_o jordan_n yea_o make_v invasion_n like_o a_o arm_a man_n when_o there_o be_v want_v many_o on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o many_o parish_n to_o stand_v up_o in_o the_o gap_n against_o it_o do_v not_o the_o canon_n law_n itself_o spare_v deprive_v for_o great_a fault_n when_o there_o be_v penuria_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la &_o quando_fw-la utilitas_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la exigit_fw-la thus_o far_o mr._n nye_n who_o whether_o he_o have_v assign_v non_fw-la causam_fw-la pro_fw-la causâ_fw-la or_o no_o as_o to_o the_o vigorous_a increase_n of_o popery_n after_o the_o reformation_n i_o shall_v not_o say_v and_o shall_v forbear_v even_o with_o the_o tender_a and_o gentle_a hand_n to_o touch_v the_o sore_a place_n of_o the_o difference_n among_o protestant_n till_o we_o be_v secure_v against_o the_o rough_a hand_n of_o any_o esaw_n touch_v god_n anoint_v nor_o shall_v i_o now_o debate_v of_o which_o persuasion_n among_o protestant_n shall_v strike_v sail_n to_o the_o other_o till_o we_o have_v put_v off_o the_o fireship_n that_o have_v grapple_v we_o but_o shall_v here_o say_v that_o i_o think_v one_o cause_n why_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v not_o since_o its_o first_o assault_n against_o popery_n gain_v ground_n of_o it_o proportionable_o be_v what_o be_v necessary_o incident_a to_o humane_a nature_n and_o even_o in_o the_o most_o generous_a and_o particular_o english_a spirit_n after_o a_o great_a overflow_a of_o passion_n to_o find_v in_o themselves_o the_o low_a ebb_n to_o succeed_v the_o high_a tide_n and_o our_o boil_a blood_n to_o be_v the_o more_o dispirited_a afterward_o by_o reason_n of_o its_o former_a heat_n and_o for_o we_o instant_o to_o fall_v asleep_a when_o our_o spirit_n be_v take_v off_o from_o the_o wrack_n that_o passion_n extend_v they_o on_o and_o to_o try_v to_o recruit_v our_o spirit_n again_o by_o the_o passion_n of_o pity_n or_o shame_v which_o we_o have_v waste_v by_o that_o of_o anger_n like_o man_n that_o after_o one_o excess_n refresh_v themselves_o by_o another_o and_o as_o the_o great_a expense_n of_o war_n which_o be_v the_o passion_n of_o anger_n rage_v in_o the_o body_n of_o a_o whole_a nation_n necessary_o at_o last_o end_n in_o a_o peace_n that_o continue_v till_o man_n plenty_n blow_v they_o up_o into_o war_n again_o so_o do_v the_o spend_v and_o waste_v the_o treasure_n of_o our_o spirit_n by_o anger_n necessitate_v we_o into_o a_o quiet_a that_o last_v till_o be_v thereby_o recruit_v we_o be_v again_o capable_a to_o take_v fire_n from_o a_o fresh_a provocation_n and_o to_o trouble_v ourselves_o and_o other_o but_o as_o man_n grow_v old_a and_o wise_a they_o grow_v able_a to_o moderate_v their_o passion_n of_o anger_n and_o make_v it_o like_o fire_n not_o a_o bad_a master_n but_o good_a servant_n to_o themselves_o and_o the_o public_a not_o a_o fire_n that_o act_v as_o natural_a agent_n ad_fw-la extremum_fw-la virium_fw-la and_o so_o as_o anger_v act_n and_o rest_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o fool_n who_o be_v so_o far_o natural_a agent_n only_o as_o not_o guide_v by_o reason_n but_o as_o in_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o wise_a where_o reason_n rest_v and_o make_v all_o passion_n as_o its_o messenger_n and_o minister_n not_o unresemble_v what_o be_v say_v of_o the_o most_o high_a that_o he_o make_v his_o minister_n a_o flame_n of_o fire_n and_o so_o by_o godlike_a man_n who_o love_v other_o like_o themselves_o their_o passion_n of_o anger_n be_v make_v like_o a_o guardian_n angel_n to_o themselves_o and_o other_o and_o by_o thus_o according_a to_o that_o precept_n be_v angry_a and_o sin_v not_o the_o fire_n of_o anger_n in_o the_o protestant_n here_o against_o popery_n have_v long_o be_v light_n and_o restless_a be_v at_o last_o get_v to_o its_o proper_a element_n where_o it_o do_v not_o levitate_fw-la and_o where_o it_o have_v no_o burn_v but_o only_o a_o purify_n quality_n and_o thus_o the_o hatred_n of_o the_o english_a protestant_n against_o popery_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v as_o the_o scripture_n expression_n be_v a_o perfect_a hatred_n be_v now_o come_v to_o its_o height_n and_o proper_a element_n which_o perfect_a hatred_n to_o popery_n may_v always_o consist_v with_o a_o perfect_a love_n to_o papist_n and_o cinge_fw-la not_o a_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n more_o than_o a_o lambent_a fire_n my_o lord_n i_o account_v that_o we_o do_v but_o justice_n to_o the_o person_n of_o many_o of_o our_o roman-catholick_n acquaintance_n in_o pronounce_v of_o they_o that_o they_o have_v no_o plot_n but_o to_o get_v to_o heaven_n and_o to_o follow_v the_o last_o dictate_v of_o their_o practical_a understanding_n as_o to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n i_o shall_v tell_v your_o lordship_n that_o i_o entertain_v my_o thought_n sometime_o with_o the_o great_a pacificatory_a one_o of_o our_o divine_n have_v obseru●d_v thing_n there_o say_v with_o sharpness_n enough_o against_o the_o error_n of_o papist_n and_o yet_o with_o great_a sweetness_n as_o to_o the_o person_n err_v and_o not_o only_a exempt_n these_o from_o odium_fw-la in_o their_o hold_v problematick_a tenet_n contrary_a to_o we_o but_o assert_v their_o just_a liberty_n so_o to_o do_v and_o because_o one_o of_o our_o church_n of_o england-divines_a who_o have_v write_v at_o that_o rate_n have_v do_v it_o with_o a_o graceful_a mixture_n of_o wit_n and_o frankness_n i_o shall_v here_o entertain_v your_o lordship_n with_o some_o of_o his_o passage_n about_o it_o i_o intend_v here_o to_o refer_v you_o to_o a_o excellent_a sermon_n of_o dr._n ingelo_n preach_v at_o s._n paul_n and_o print_v a._n 1659._o and_o where_o in_o p._n 129._o he_o say_v i_o be_o afraid_a that_o christian_a religion_n will_v not_o recover_v for_o a_o good_a while_n that_o honour_n which_o be_v lose_v by_o the_o uncharitableness_n of_o the_o present_a age._n god_n grant_v that_o we_o may_v return_v speedy_o to_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o protestant_a principle_n we_o know_v not_o what_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o they_o we_o may_v know_v for_o there_o it_o be_v plain_o and_o full_o set_v down_o in_o thing_n doubtful_a if_o every_o christian_a may_v not_o interpret_v for_o himself_o how_o shall_v
innocency_n which_o yet_o perhaps_o may_v be_v necessary_a to_o be_v do_v for_o the_o use_n of_o those_o who_o know_v you_o not_o hereafter_o when_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o day_n and_o your_o service_n in_o this_o critical_a juncture_n shall_v be_v over_o and_o will_v now_o show_v as_o mean_o as_o if_o a_o general_n in_o the_o time_n of_o battle_n have_v some_o dirt_n or_o dust_n light_v on_o his_o face_n shall_v while_o he_o be_v among_o the_o bullet_n employ_v his_o barber_n washball_n to_o cleanse_v it_o and_o that_o too_o when_o the_o fate_n of_o the_o battle_n seem_v to_o totter_v and_o be_v near_a decision_n one_o way_n or_o other_o and_o while_o there_o be_v hardly_o room_n for_o the_o quid_fw-la agendum_fw-la to_o wedge_n itself_o in_o and_o he_o that_o say_v consider_v be_v almost_o a_o foe_n and_o therefore_o once_o when_o a_o great_a commander_n have_v no_o way_n to_o save_v himself_o and_o his_o army_n but_o by_o their_o swim_n with_o their_o horse_n through_o a_o river_n to_o attack_v their_o enemy_n he_o do_v only_o to_o that_o question_n of_o quid_fw-la agendum_fw-la put_v to_o he_o by_o his_o officer_n sudden_o echo_v back_o the_o reply_n of_o agendum_fw-la and_o with_o his_o horse_n take_v the_o river_n and_o while_o now_o it_o be_v with_o we_o as_o on_o board_n a_o ship_n in_o the_o time_n of_o fight_n or_o of_o a_o storm_n when_o they_o be_v fight_v with_o the_o element_n and_o the_o master_n or_o steersman_n order_n any_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v the_o case_n will_v bear_v no_o dilatory_a answer_n of_o word_n and_o the_o answer_n there_o be_v do_v it_o be_v i_o say_v after_o all_o this_o that_o there_o be_v a_o reason_n which_o in_o my_o opinion_n render_v any_o man_n writing_n unnecessary_a now_o either_o to_o the_o world_n or_o himself_o and_o that_o be_v this_o that_o word_n and_o language_n the_o which_o former_o have_v the_o stamp_n of_o common_a usage_n and_o of_o reason_n on_o they_o pass_v as_o currant_n coin_n for_o the_o signification_n of_o man_n mind_n and_o as_o a_o medium_n of_o commerce_n be_v in_o this_o juncture_n as_o useless_a that_o way_n and_o of_o as_o little_a value_n as_o leather_n coin_n call_v in_o and_o this_o age_n wherein_o both_o the_o word_n and_o thing_n call_v shame_n have_v be_v bring_v in_o use_n and_o shame_n call_v itself_o a_o answer_n to_o that_o great_a question_n what_o be_v wit_n though_o with_o as_o little_a reason_n as_o if_o a_o lie_n shall_v call_v itself_o a_o answer_n to_o that_o old_a great_a question_n what_o be_v truth_n have_v enforce_v those_o that_o do_v not_o love_v to_o be_v shammed_a upon_o not_o to_o measure_v man_n action_n by_o their_o word_n but_o their_o word_n by_o their_o action_n and_o though_o a_o man_n write_a book_n be_v call_v his_o work_n yet_o have_v i_o observe_v a_o occasion_n of_o sarcasme_n give_v thereby_o when_o one_o speak_v of_o a_o particular_a divine_n excellent_a write_n say_v he_o love_v his_o work_n but_o hate_v his_o action_n and_o write_v work_n be_v now_o indeed_o but_o act_n as_o when_o a_o man_n do_v agree_v gestum_fw-la in_o scaena_fw-la on_o the_o stage_n of_o the_o world_n and_o for_o they_o he_o find_v but_o only_o a_o theatrical_a applause_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o that_o when_o like_o the_o actor_n cry_v o_o heaven_n he_o look_v down_o on_o the_o earth_n as_o he_o be_v always_o account_v but_o a_o smatterer_n in_o knowledge_n who_o be_v a_o pedant_n or_o petty-chapman_n in_o word_n so_o he_o play_v but_o at_o small_a game_n in_o politic_n who_o be_v a_o pedant_n or_o trader_n in_o word_n or_o who_o indeed_o will_v give_v any_o thing_n for_o they_o he_o who_o do_v verba_fw-la dare_fw-mi have_v bad_a moral_n and_o who_o give_v any_o thing_n else_o for_o they_o have_v bad_a intellectual_n and_o according_a to_o that_o old_a monkish_a verse_n they_o say_v res_n dare_v pro_fw-la rebus_fw-la pro_fw-la verbis_fw-la verba_fw-la solemus_fw-la the_o only_a real_a security_n therefore_o that_o the_o world_n have_v for_o its_o quiet_a be_v man_n only_o give_v a_o seem_a belief_n to_o seem_a profession_n and_o protestation_n for_o as_o air_n out_o of_o its_o place_n make_v earthquake_n so_o if_o the_o articulate_a air_n of_o man_n word_n get_v beyond_o my_o hear_n into_o my_o belief_n it_o may_v there_o raise_v those_o commotion_n of_o passion_n that_o may_v make_v i_o trouble_v both_o myself_o and_o the_o world_n and_o particular_o by_o the_o passion_n of_o jealousy_n beforementioned_a on_o my_o desire_n where_o i_o have_v a_o kindness_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v mutual_a and_o when_o positive_a word_n bring_v i_o into_o the_o fool_n paradise_n of_o believe_v it_o possible_a a_o thing_n perhaps_o not_o possible_a in_o nature_n that_o two_o body_n and_o mind_n who_o faculty_n must_v needs_o be_v different_a shall_v have_v a_o equal_a intenseness_n of_o love_n for_o each_o other_o no_o precedent_n of_o friendship_n particular_o that_o of_o jonathan_n and_o david_n have_v show_v it_o and_o in_o the_o conjugal_a love_n the_o passion_n of_o the_o weak_a sex_n be_v observe_v to_o be_v the_o strong_a and_o that_o of_o jealousy_n as_o well_o as_o love_v jealousy_n particular_o be_v most_o potent_a in_o mind_n most_o impotent_a and_o in_o person_n most_o diffident_a of_o themselves_o and_o this_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n console_n your_o lordship_n after_o all_o your_o restless_a endeavour_n to_o merit_v the_o love_n of_o all_o your_o countryman_n if_o it_o be_v not_o exact_o mutual_a but_o this_o by_o the_o way_n the_o great_a name_n of_o protestant_n and_o religion_n begin_v to_o adorn_v each_o other_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1529_o when_o some_o of_o the_o elector_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n with_o a_o protestation_n oppose_v the_o decree_n relate_v to_o the_o mass_n and_o eucharist_n make_v at_o spiers_n and_o when_o some_o of_o the_o capital_a city_n of_o germany_n join_v with_o they_o to_o protest_v the_o same_o thing_n but_o every_o one_o know_v that_o a_o protestation_n be_v a_o revocable_a thing_n and_o that_o a_o protestation_n contrary_n to_o action_n revoke_v itself_o and_o that_o the_o word_n protestant_n have_v not_o be_v in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o poet_n term_n be_v of_o call_v grass_n green_a or_o the_o like_a otiosum_fw-la epitheton_n i_o believe_v the_o papist_n will_v grant_v and_o it_o be_v not_o one_o protestation_n make_v and_o not_o revoke_v either_o by_o word_n or_o action_n that_o can_v make_v that_o term_n consistent_a with_o our_o religion_n or_o render_v a_o man_n worthy_a to_o be_v call_v one_o it_o be_v not_o a_o good_a continual_a claim_n to_o our_o religion_n that_o yet_o be_v for_o land_n we_o be_v disseise_v of_o that_o be_v make_v only_o once_o a_o year_n whilst_o we_o live_v no_o the_o protestation_n that_o the_o protestant_a religion_n require_v be_v such_o a_o continual_a one_o as_o be_v reiterated_a upon_o every_o fresh_a act_n and_o attempt_v of_o the_o papal_a religion_n against_o we_o it_o be_v not_o a_o go_n to_o our_o cell_n and_o say_v lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o but_o it_o be_v our_o watch_n in_o our_o station_n and_o our_o show_a no_o mercy_n to_o the_o principle_n of_o popery_n that_o be_v always_o attacking_z the_o quiet_a of_o the_o world_n either_o by_o storm_n or_o siege_n or_o undermine_v it_o be_v like_o the_o protestation_n require_v when_o the_o defendant_n have_v decline_v a_o judge_n that_o must_v be_v make_v toties_fw-la quoties_fw-la as_o any_o new_a act_n be_v do_v by_o the_o judge_n without_o which_o the_o first_o protestation_n grow_v insignificant_a it_o be_v not_o one_o act_n of_o protest_v the_o pope_n bill_n of_o exchange_n for_o good_a money_n we_o pay_v he_o and_o his_o give_v we_o bank-ticket_n upon_o purgatory_n or_o give_v we_o some_o fantastic_a saint_n pretend_a hair_n or_o nail_n protest_v with_o so_o much_o scorn_n by_o our_o popish_a ancestor_n in_o henry_n the_o 8th_n time_n that_o a_o piece_n of_o st._n andrews_n finger_n cover_v with_o a_o ounce_n of_o silver_n pawn_v by_o a_o monastery_n for_o forty_o pound_n be_v leave_v unredeemed_a at_o the_o dissolution_n of_o it_o which_o show_v that_o that_o commodity_n will_v even_o then_o yield_v nothing_o and_o be_v a_o mere_a drug_n in_o scotland_n of_o which_o country_n he_o be_v call_v the_o saint_n protector_n but_o it_o be_v further_a like_o a_o protestation_n against_o the_o sea_n at_o the_o next_o port_n make_v toties_fw-la quoties_fw-la good_n in_o a_o ship_n be_v damnify_v by_o its_o rage_n which_o the_o law_n require_v the_o skipper_n to_o make_v or_o else_o leave_v answerable_a for_o the_o damage_n and_o if_o a_o poor_a tarpaul_n who_o must_v always_o plough_v the_o sea_n for_o his_o bread_n during_o life_n and_o there_o still_o contest_v with_o the_o angry_a element_n
government_n admit_v only_o to_o probation_n for_o three_o year_n and_o be_v no_o more_o hinder_v of_o the_o freedom_n of_o a_o gentleman_n conversation_n thereby_o then_o by_o the_o government_n of_o the_o forementioned_a presbyter_n john_n in_o the_o east_n and_o england_n be_v then_o not_o only_o free_a from_o the_o charge_n of_o peter-pence_n legatine_n levy_v oblation_n contribution_n for_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o both_o charge_n and_o trouble_v from_o all_o the_o papal_a court_n and_o mass_n anniverssary_n obit_n requiem_n dirge_n placebos_fw-mi trental_n lamp_n but_o from_o all_o contumacy_n fee_n in_o spiritual_a court_n and_o from_o those_o court_n themselves_o of_o which_o yet_o the_o yoke_n be_v very_o easy_a compare_v with_o either_o that_o of_o the_o papist_n or_o scotch_a presbyter_n and_o our_o condition_n as_o to_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n be_v like_o that_o time_n or_o conjuncture_n of_o liberty_n that_o father_n paul_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n refer_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n when_o a_o certain_a custom_n prevail_v say_v ill_a i_o come_v e_o un_fw-fr uso_fw-la molto_fw-mi proprio_fw-la diove_n si_fw-la governa_fw-la in_o liberta_fw-la quale_fw-la era_fw-la all_o hora_fw-la quando_fw-la il_fw-fr mondo_fw-la era_fw-la senza_fw-it papa_n that_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n very_o proper_a where_o they_o govern_v with_o liberry_n which_o be_v when_o the_o world_n be_v without_o a_o pope_n i_o never_o hear_v of_o any_o man_n that_o be_v gore_v with_o the_o horn_n of_o our_o presbyter_n excommunication_n nor_o of_o any_o dissenter_n from_o they_o that_o be_v tie_v up_o for_o they_o out_o of_o their_o horn_n of_o plenty_n of_o church_n power_n to_o force_v a_o drench_n of_o doctrine_n down_o his_o throat_n and_o much_o less_o of_o any_o deal_v with_o in_o that_o way_n mention_v by_o spotswood_n in_o his_o observation_n that_o the_o devil_n will_v not_o be_v fear_v but_o for_o his_o horn_n refer_v to_o the_o horn_n in_o scotland_n that_o be_v the_o seizure_n of_o all_o a_o man_n good_n when_o the_o horn_n blow_v after_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o presbytery_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o some_o of_o the_o divine_n of_o that_o persuasion_n be_v bribe_v to_o it_o by_o a_o expectation_n of_o power_n to_o oppress_v when_o that_o the_o great_a revenue_n of_o the_o church_n be_v deny_v they_o and_o thus_o the_o pope_n keep_v his_o guard_n in_o rome_n only_o with_o the_o pay_n of_o privilege_n but_o instead_o of_o their_o ride_v the_o people_n the_o parliament_n rid_v they_o and_o with_o that_o caution_n as_o they_o of_o old_a do_v who_o ride_v on_o elephant_n in_o battle_n which_o great_a animal_n be_v observe_v to_o be_v then_o unruely_a sometime_o and_o to_o endanger_v both_o the_o rider_n and_o their_o camp_n and_o it_o be_v know_v that_o their_o receive_v a_o con●usion_n in_o one_o part_n about_o their_o head_n will_v present_o dispatch_v they_o their_o rider_n have_v always_o a_o hammer_n with_o they_o ready_a for_o that_o use_n on_o occasion_n he_o therefore_o that_o say_v he_o love_v popery_n better_o than_o the_o government_n of_o presbytery_n as_o it_o be_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la settle_v or_o rather_o permit_v in_o england_n and_o when_o they_o that_o will_v have_v its_o maypole_n for_o they_o to_o dance_v about_o have_v it_o and_o those_o that_o will_v have_v none_o have_v none_o say_v that_o he_o love_v a_o fiery_a and_o torment_a furious_a church-government_n that_o will_v make_v mount_n zion_n to_o be_v still_o belch_a out_o fire_n like_o aetna_n better_a than_o none_o at_o all_o that_o he_o love_v a_o hirricane_a better_a then_o be_v a_o while_n becalm_v that_o he_o love_v the_o church_n government_n that_o be_v like_o coloquintida_n in_o the_o pot_n rather_o than_o that_o of_o the_o presbyter_n which_o be_v here_o but_o like_o herb_n john_n and_o that_o he_o fear_v a_o mastiff_n who_o be_v not_o only_o hamble_v and_o who_o jus_o divinum_fw-la be_v laud_v and_o who_o spleen_n be_v cut_v out_o by_o the_o state_n surgeon_n more_o than_o a_o incense_a hungry_a lion_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o like_v a_o government_n better_o that_o at_o best_o be_v like_o a_o peacock_n that_o be_v all_o gaudery_n and_o damn_a noise_n and_o nothing_o else_o except_o pede_fw-la latro_fw-la that_o be_v all_o ceremony_n and_o devour_v all_o with_o ceremony_n than_o a_o government_n that_o with_o its_o look_n can_v neither_o allure_v nor_o fright_v and_o which_o we_o can_v pinion_n as_o we_o please_v and_o play_v with_o till_o we_o can_v get_v a_o better_a in_o its_o room_n whether_o a_o papist_n be_v to_o be_v love_v better_a than_o a_o puritan_n be_v a_o vex_a question_n in_o the_o time_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o it_o be_v resolve_v then_o in_o the_o affirmative_a only_o by_o the_o pensioner_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o dependent_n the_o learned_a author_n of_o the_o book_n call_v certain_a consideration_n tend_v to_o promote_v peace_n and_o good_a will_n among_o protestant_n do_v in_o p._n 13._o quote_v our_o famous_a gataker_n for_o relate_v that_o dr._n elmor_n lord_n bishop_n of_o london_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n when_o one_o in_o a_o sermon_n at_o st._n paul_n cross_n inveigh_v against_o puritan_n render_v they_o worse_o than_o papist_n sharp_o contradict_v that_o censure_n say_v that_o the_o preacher_n say_v not_o right_o therein_o for_o that_o the_o puritan_n if_o they_o have_v i_o among_o they_o will_v only_o cut_v my_o rochet_n but_o the_o papist_n will_v cut_v my_o throat_n and_o that_o his_o successor_n dr._n vaughan_n lord_n bishop_n of_o london_n when_o another_o in_o the_o same_o pulpit_n too_o show_v the_o same_o eagerness_n in_o represent_v the_o puritan_n worse_a than_o papist_n express_v the_o same_o sense_n with_o his_o predecessor_n concern_v it_o and_o wish_v that_o he_o have_v have_v the_o preacher_n tongue_n that_o day_n in_o his_o pocket_n it_o be_v it_o seem_v than_o the_o good_a fortune_n of_o london_n to_o be_v blessed_v with_o bishop_n renown_v for_o their_o great_a zeal_n for_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o with_o such_o a_o one_o it_o be_v at_o this_o time_n enrich_v and_o dignify_v i_o will_v not_o say_v bishop_n of_o it_o only_o by_o divine_a permission_n but_o miseratione_n divinâ_fw-la the_o style_n i_o have_v see_v of_o bishop_n in_o some_o ancient_a instrument_n it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o divine_a compassion_n that_o such_o a_o eminent_a protestant_a city_n have_v such_o a_o prelate_n nor_o do_v i_o intend_v by_o the_o just_a praise_n pay_v to_o this_o great_a and_o good_a man_n to_o lessen_v the_o worth_n of_o other_o of_o the_o father_n of_o our_o church_n of_o which_o number_n i_o have_v the_o honour_n to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o other_o who_o endeavour_v the_o extermination_n of_o popery_n with_o as_o courageous_a a_o zeal_n as_o can_v be_v wish_v and_o no_o doubt_n but_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o title_n of_o my_o lord_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n book_n namely_o come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n lest_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o plague_n be_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o england_n look_v on_o as_o a_o seasonable_a alarm_n and_o no_o doubt_n many_o of_o this_o our_o church_n who_o have_v write_v with_o so_o much_o various_a learning_n and_o strong_a reason_n against_o popery_n know_v that_o if_o that_o ever_o be_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la and_o by_o law_n paramount_n the_o church_n of_o england_n will_v be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la crush_v thereby_o out_o of_o all_o its_o visibility_n the_o thought_n of_o this_o bring_v that_o scripture_n to_o my_o mind_n viz._n matthew_n 21_o v_o 44._o and_o who_o soever_o shall_v fall_v on_o this_o stone_n shall_v be_v break_v but_o on_o who_o soever_o it_o shall_v fall_v it_o will_v grind_v he_o to_o powder_n and_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o only_o fall_v super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la i_o mean_v heretofore_o by_o the_o empty_a project_n of_o some_o for_o the_o unite_n rome_n to_o we_o be_v break_v and_o disjoint_v therefore_o if_o ever_o it_o shall_v come_v under_o the_o stone_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n and_o it_o be_v thereby_o make_v possible_a for_o the_o stone_n to_o fall_v on_o it_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v then_o grind_v it_o to_o powder_n it_o be_v former_a fall_v on_o the_o rock_n can_v only_o break_v it_o into_o the_o piece_n of_o presbyterian_a and_o independent_a and_o other_o separate_a church_n but_o that_o rock_n fall_v on_o it_o will_v not_o break_v it_o into_o piece_n but_o grind_v it_o to_o powder_v as_o be_v say_v and_o perhaps_o papist_n then_o from_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n will_v form_v as_o good_a a_o title_n by_o divine_a right_n to_o crush_v our_o church_n as_o they_o do_v from_o the_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la in_o the_o 16_o the_o of_o
3._o dub_v 2._o for_o assert_v that_o per_fw-la modum_fw-la defensae_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la infringendam_fw-la contumeliosi_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la potest_fw-la secundum_fw-la quosdam_fw-la absque_fw-la lethali_fw-la crimen_fw-la falsum_fw-la illi_fw-la objici_fw-la and_o that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o venial_a sin_n to_o object_v a_o false_a crime_n to_o a_o unjust_a witness_n and_o twenty_o doctor_n be_v there_o mention_v for_o the_o make_v this_o a_o probable_a opinion_n and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o make_v shamm-accusation_n where_o he_o have_v only_o a_o private_a concern_v it_o be_v meritorious_a to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o case_n of_o holy_a church_n therefore_o he_o say_v very_o right_o according_a to_o the_o popish_a hypothesis_n gaudeo_fw-la s●ve_fw-la per_fw-la veritatem_fw-la sive_fw-la per_fw-la occasionem_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la dignitatem_fw-la extolli_fw-la joseph_n stephanus_n de_fw-fr osc._n pr._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la lect_n guymenius_n p._n 190._o extactatu_fw-la de_fw-la justitia_fw-la &_o jure_fw-la propositio_fw-la 1._o cites_n both_o father_n schoolman_n divine_v and_o casuist_n of_o several_a order_n and_o even_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o assert_v this_o proposition_n viz._n licitum_fw-la est_fw-la clerico_fw-la vel_fw-la religioso_fw-la calumniatorem_fw-la gravia_fw-la crimina_fw-la de_fw-la se_fw-la vel_fw-la de_fw-fr sua_fw-la religione_fw-la spargere_fw-la minantem_fw-la occidere_fw-la quando_fw-la alius_fw-la defendendi_fw-la modus_fw-la non_fw-la suppetit_fw-la a_o principle_n of_o religion_n calculate_v only_o for_o bally_n &_o hector_n &_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n that_o such_o be_v observe_v to_o flock_v from_o so_o many_o part_n of_o most_o country_n in_o england_n to_o london_n in_o and_o since_o the_o year_n 1678._o like_a raven_n in_o expectation_n of_o the_o carcase_n of_o protestant_n and_o such_o miscreant_n be_v to_o the_o jesuit_n their_o triarian_a band_n upon_o occasion_n and_o who_o in_o the_o out_o skirt_n of_o london_n be_v a_o noisome_a pestilence_n and_o not_o endure_v nor_o be_v endure_v to_o live_v in_o the_o country_n but_o from_o the_o say_v last_o cite_v proposition_n of_o guymenius_n the_o proposition_n that_o contain_v the_o enact_v law_n sir_n edmund_n godfrey_n fall_v by_o i_o infer_v that_o since_o there_o be_v a_o par_fw-fr or_o proportion_n between_o a_o good_a name_n and_o life_n that_o such_o who_o account_v it_o lawful_a for_o a_o particular_a clergyman_n to_o murder_n even_o a_o popish_a layman_n who_o shall_v but_o threaten_v to_o caluminate_v he_o will_v account_v it_o meritorious_a by_o shamme_n to_o murder_n the_o fame_n of_o those_o who_o shall_v threaten_v to_o accuse_v holy_a church_n and_o it_o seem_v as_o man_n try_v experiment_n on_o creature_n they_o account_v vile_a they_o experiment_v both_o these_o proposition_n on_o godfrey_n for_o after_o they_o have_v base_o kill_v he_o they_o will_v have_v shammed_a off_o his_o blood_n and_o the_o guilt_n of_o it_o upon_o himself_o when_o they_o pierce_v his_o dead_a body_n with_o his_o own_o sword_n a_o barbarous_a and_o infamous_a sort_n of_o cruelty_n and_o which_o bring_v to_o my_o mind_n what_o dr._n donne_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d refer_v to_o in_o the_o notae_fw-la mallon_n in_o paleot_n part._n 1._o cap._n 2._o viz._n that_o the_o church_n in_o her_o hymn_n and_o antiphones_n do_v often_o salute_v the_o nail_n and_o cross_n but_o the_o spear_n which_o pierce_v christ_n when_o he_o be_v dead_a it_o ever_o call_v dirum_fw-la mucronem_fw-la and_o here_o because_o some_o of_o they_o drive_v a_o eternal_a trade_n of_o butcher_v and_o sham_v and_o then_o in_o effect_n stab_v their_o own_o shamm_n of_o plot_n i_o shall_v entertain_v your_o lordship_n with_o one_o egregious_a instance_n of_o a_o priest_n of_o they_o be_v abandon_v to_o a_o reprobate_n or_o injudicious_a sense_n of_o sham_v in_o make_v by_o a_o ridiculous_a lie_v a_o famous_a cardinal_n and_o profound_a statesman_n perhaps_o as_o the_o world_n have_v breed_v and_o one_o of_o singular_a piety_n and_o great_a modesty_n to_o render_v the_o gun-powder-treason_n a_o shame_n plot_n and_o thereby_o wound_v the_o fame_n of_o both_o the_o understanding_n and_o moral_n of_o their_o great_a dead_a church_n hero_n as_o barbarous_o as_o they_o do_v the_o corpse_n of_o godfrey_n and_o this_o instance_n i_o refer_v to_o be_v in_o a_o book_n call_v the_o advocate_n of_o conscience_n liberty_n or_o a_o apology_n for_o toleration_n right_o state_v and_o write_v with_o learning_n and_o wit_n and_o artifice_n enough_o ad_fw-la faciendum_fw-la populum_fw-la by_o a_o priest_n of_o rome_n church_n a_o english_a man_n and_o print_v in_o the_o year_n 1673._o in_o pag._n 325._o he_o represent_v the_o gunpowder-treason_n to_o be_v a_o shame_n plot_v contrive_v by_o cecil_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o cites_n d'ossat_v letter_n book_n 2d_o letter_n 43._o and_o the_o date_n of_o that_o letter_n be_v from_o rome_n march_v the_o 29._o 1596._o and_o the_o date_n of_o the_o last_o letter_n there_o be_v from_o rome_n in_o december_n that_o year_n the_o gunpowder-treason_n plot_n be_v to_o have_v be_v on_o the_o 5_o the_o of_o november_n 1605._o and_o on_o d'ossats_n marble_n tomb_n in_o rome_n his_o epitaph_n mention_n that_o he_o die_v anno_fw-la 1604._o so_o then_o he_o be_v make_v by_o that_o author_n to_o have_v know_v that_o treason_n to_o have_v be_v a_o sham-plot_n eight_o year_n before_o it_o be_v to_o be_v execute_v and_o to_o have_v permit_v many_o papist_n for_o want_n of_o his_o send_v a_o line_n of_o news_n of_o the_o shame_n to_o be_v shammed_a out_o of_o their_o life_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v shammed_a and_o anniversaried_a out_o of_o its_o credit_n in_o england_n but_o if_o they_o reproach_v any_o as_o they_o do_v cecil_n on_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o persuade_v some_o of_o their_o wild_a principle_n into_o the_o decoy_n of_o a_o plot_n a_o thing_n i_o think_v detestable_a as_o what_o imply_v a_o tempt_a or_o invite_v of_o a_o man_n to_o degenerate_v from_o himself_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v angry_a with_o but_o only_o to_o pity_v man_n that_o receive_v infection_n from_o their_o principle_n and_o from_o this_o particular_a one_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o good_a end_n to_o ensnare_v man_n into_o act_n of_o sin._n many_o casuist_n and_o divine_n be_v bring_v by_o guymenius_n for_o this_o purpose_n p._n 184._o in_o the_o 9th_o proposition_n ex_fw-la tractatu_fw-la de_fw-la charitate_fw-la and_o under_o which_o proposition_n he_o quote_v sotus_n de_fw-fr sec._n memb_v 2._o quaest_n 2._o a_o little_a before_o the_o five_o conclusion_n where_o he_o inquire_v a_o liceat_fw-la &_o expediat_fw-la aliquando_fw-la perditum_fw-la hominem_fw-la permittere_fw-la in_o pejora_fw-la prolabi_fw-la crimina_fw-la ut_fw-la ignominiâ_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la confusus_fw-la facilius_fw-la resipiscat_fw-la &_o emendetur_fw-la and_o he_o answer_v licet_fw-la nobis_fw-la aliquando_fw-la permittere_fw-la peccatorem_fw-la ad_fw-la tempus_fw-la in_o pejus_fw-la cadere_fw-la ut_fw-la cautius_fw-la resurgat_fw-la the_o 9th_o proposition_n there_o be_v maritus_fw-la qui_fw-la vxorem_fw-la adulteram_fw-la suspicatur_fw-la potest_fw-la e●_n occasionem_fw-la offer_n ut_fw-la in_o adulterio_fw-la deprehensam_fw-la corrigat_fw-la lay_v man._n jesuita_n lib._n 2._o tract_n 3._o cap._n 13._o num_fw-la 5._o but_o in_o p._n 205._o extractatu_fw-la de_fw-la justitia_fw-la &_o jure_fw-la propositio_fw-la 4._o the_o correction_n that_o may_v be_v lawful_o use_v be_v assign_v it_o be_v there_o say_v that_o non_fw-la peccat_fw-la maritus_fw-la occidens_fw-la propria_fw-la authoritate_fw-la vxorem_fw-la in_o adulterio_fw-la deprehensam_fw-la the_o which_o he_o say_v sa_n the_o jesuit_n represent_v as_o a_o probable_a opinion_n and_o which_o hurtado_n he_o say_v positive_o defend_v tom._n 1._o resol_n moral_a tr_fw-la ulti_fw-la res_fw-la 5._o 5._o 7._o n._n 204._o so_o that_o if_o a_o protestant_a statesman_n have_v inveigle_v they_o into_o a_o plot_n and_o then_o hang_v they_o for_o it_o his_o politic_n have_v square_v exact_o with_o their_o moral_n and_o even_o as_o the_o call_n of_o a_o rat-catcher_n be_v a_o lawful_a call_n though_o some_o of_o that_o profession_n have_v have_v no_o certain_a way_n to_o take_v rat_n but_o by_o the_o use_n of_o one_o experiment_n namely_o first_o to_o provoke_v they_o to_o fly_v in_o the_o artist_n face_n according_a to_o the_o say_a principle_n be_v the_o call_n of_o a_o statesman_n both_o lawful_a and_o laudable_a who_o deal_v so_o with_o such_o as_o he_o judge_v to_o nibble_n at_o treason_n but_o this_o by_o the_o way_n and_o now_o to_o let_v your_o lordship_n see_v how_o some_o of_o their_o divinity_n be_v particular_o but_o a_o labour_a shame_n in_o the_o case_n of_o treason_n and_o even_o but_o a_o mock_n at_o sin_n i_o shall_v divert_v you_o with_o a_o know_a author_n among_o they_o make_v man_n play_v with_o the_o bait_n of_o regicide_n as_o he_o be_v hook_v they_o into_o it_o and_o it_o be_v mariana_n the_o jesuit_n
the_o english_a language_n that_o the_o spaniard_n cause_v to_o be_v make_v by_o a_o english_a jesuite_n call_v parson_n and_o it_o be_v by_o the_o way_n of_o the_o low_a country_n disperse_v about_o england_n etc._n etc._n and_o further_o in_o the_o 7_o the_o book_n p._n 301._o in_o the_o letter_n to_o villeroy_n letter_n 133._o what_o he_o say_v of_o that_o book_n of_o parson_n may_v be_v thus_o make_v english_a and_o from_o that_o book_n of_o father_n parson_n one_o may_v draw_v reason_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o majesty_n which_o will_v be_v more_o weighty_a than_o those_o he_o deduce_v for_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o his_o sister_n the_o say_a father_n parson_n do_v contradict_v himself_o very_o often_o and_o very_o gross_o as_o it_o happen_v to_o all_o person_n in_o passion_n as_o able_a as_o they_o be_v who_o be_v not_o guide_v by_o truth_n and_o by_o reason_n but_o transport_v by_o interest_n and_o by_o passion_n and_o in_o the_o last_o letter_n of_o the_o 8_o book_n and_o to_o villeroy_n from_o rome_n the_o 30_o of_o december_n 1602_o he_o speak_v of_o father_n parson_n have_v make_v application_n to_o himself_o to_o desire_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o treaty_n prepare_v from_o rome_n between_o the_o pope_n the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o agree_v among_o themselves_o of_o a_o catholic_n that_o may_v reign_v in_o england_n after_o the_o queen_n be_v it_o the_o king_n of_o scot_n if_o he_o will_v turn_v catholic_n or_o be_v it_o some_o one_o else_o etc._n etc._n but_o there_o in_o p._n 367_o year_n 1603_o letter_n 174._o from_o rome_n to_o villeroy_n and_o on_o april_n 21_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o the_o machination_n of_o the_o hot_a jesuitical_a head_n against_o king_n james_n his_o succession_n be_v overturn_v by_o providence_n for_o he_o there_o say_v that_o the_o queen_n be_v no_o soon_o dead_a then_o that_o the_o king_n of_o scotland_n be_v in_o england_n peaceable_o receive_v and_o the_o controversy_n of_o king_n james_n his_o title_n evaporate_v and_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o english_a understanding_n he_o there_o say_v les_fw-fr gens_fw-fr de_fw-fr cet_fw-fr isle_n la_fw-fr ont_fw-fr bien_fw-fr monstrè_n qu'_fw-fr ils_fw-fr scavoient_fw-fr fair_a leur_fw-fr affair_n enter_n enter_n eux_fw-fr toast_n &_o seurement_n &_o que_fw-fr ceux_fw-fr de_fw-fr dehors_fw-fr se_fw-fr sont_fw-fr fort_fw-fr mescontez_fw-fr en_fw-fr leur_fw-fr dessein_n &_o esperances_n i_o e._n the_o people_n of_o england_n have_v well_o show_v that_o they_o know_v how_o to_o do_v their_o own_o business_n among_o themselves_o quick_o and_o safe_o and_o that_o other_o abroad_o take_v very_o wrong_a measure_n in_o their_o design_n and_o hope_n i_o have_v here_o say_v enough_o to_o entertain_v your_o lordship_n with_o the_o view_n of_o their_o unreasonableness_n who_o will_v impose_v on_o we_o that_o father_n parson_n write_v not_o that_o impious_a and_o treasonable_a book_n and_o likewise_o with_o the_o more_o pleasant_a view_n of_o god_n confute_v it_o as_o i_o may_v say_v by_o the_o happy_a determination_n of_o his_o overrule_a providence_n and_o now_o because_o i_o will_v make_v it_o appear_v to_o your_o lordship_n that_o i_o have_v not_o be_v unjust_o severe_a to_o the_o jesuitical_a principle_n in_o render_v they_o such_o as_o be_v the_o sturdy_a extravagance_n of_o those_o offal_n of_o mankind_n call_v bully_n and_o hector_n i_o shall_v entertain_v you_o with_o one_o instance_n of_o a_o bravado_n of_o threaten_v from_o one_o english_a jesuite_n to_o all_o protestant_n crown_v head_n a_o bravado_n that_o be_v like_o the_o high_a water_n mark_n to_o show_v in_o word_n how_o high_a it_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o foam_n of_o the_o rage_a sea_n of_o anger_n to_o reach_v and_o it_o be_v in_o a_o letter_n of_o campian_n the_o jesuite_n to_o queen_n elizabeth_n privy_a councillor_n print_v afterward_o at_o trier_n 1583._o as_o i_o find_v it_o cite_v in_o that_o most_o learned_a preface_n of_o my_o lord_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n to_o the_o book_n concern_v the_o gunpowder_n treason_n in_o the_o year_n 1679_o and_o it_o be_v thus_o in_o english_a viz._n that_o all_o the_o jesuit_n throughout_o the_o world_n have_v long_o since_o enter_v into_o a_o covenant_n to_o kill_v heretical_a king_n any_o manner_n of_o way_n and_o as_o to_o our_o society_n know_v that_o we_o jesuit_n who_o be_v spread_v far_o and_o wide_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v enter_v into_o a_o holy_a covenant_n that_o we_o shall_v easy_o overcome_v all_o your_o machination_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v never_o despair_v of_o it_o as_o long_o as_o any_o one_o of_o we_o remain_v in_o the_o world._n lo_o here_o a_o drawcansir_n that_o will_v not_o only_o snub_v all_o protestant_a king_n and_o take_v the_o bowl_n from_o their_o mouth_n and_o beat_v out_o their_o brain_n with_o they_o himself_o but_o he_o say_v there_o be_v a_o society_n or_o corporation_n of_o such_o brethren_n of_o the_o blade_a ecclesiastical_a who_o have_v enter_v into_o a_o covenant_n or_o association_n to_o murder_v all_o protestant_a king_n and_o that_o every_o single_a member_n of_o the_o corporation_n shall_v have_v that_o dead-doing_a talon_n of_o valour_n that_o shall_v awe_v and_o subjugate_v the_o protestant_n world._n and_o here_o then_o my_o lord_n every_o jesuit_n value_v himself_o on_o be_v a_o mutius_n scaevola_n and_o more_o than_o three_o hundred_o of_o these_o new_a roman_n or_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o they_o i_o mean_v all_o of_o they_o according_a to_o campian_n have_v covenant_v to_o destroy_v every_o porsenna_n that_o lay_v siege_n to_o rome_n but_o in_o that_o time_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n there_o be_v a_o industrious_a gentleman_n who_o fear_v not_o the_o terror_n of_o these_o huff_v but_o with_o his_o secrecy_n and_o silence_n do_v reduce_v these_o mad_a dog_n into_o the_o condition_n of_o neither_o bark_n nor_o bite_v in_o england_n i_o mean_v sir_n francis_n walsingham_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v in_o cotton_n posthuma_n that_o his_o bountiful_a hand_n make_v his_o intelligence_n so_o active_a that_o a_o seminary_n can_v scarce_o stir_v out_o of_o the_o gate_n of_o rome_n without_o his_o privity_n and_o no_o wonder_n then_o if_o campian_n be_v soon_o bring_v to_o the_o end_n of_o a_o traitor_n here_o in_o england_n by_o the_o care_n of_o one_o of_o queen_n elizabeth_n privy_a councillor_n in_o the_o year_n 1581._o who_o do_v both_o defy_v and_o scorn_v that_o rhodomantado_n address_v wherein_o the_o jesuite_n do_v goliah-like_a defy_v all_o protestant_a king_n and_o their_o army_n and_o as_o if_o he_o will_v give_v their_o flesh_n to_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n but_o the_o event_n show_v his_o own_o flesh_n be_v so_o give_v as_o a_o traitor_n to_o that_o use_v here_o in_o england_n it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o a_o bravado_n in_o the_o great_a archimedes_n to_o say_v give_v i_o where_o to_o stand_v and_o i_o will_v shake_v the_o earth_n he_o well_o know_v no_o such_o place_n can_v be_v find_v the_o jesuit_n it_o seem_v will_v have_v every_o one_o of_o their_o order_n to_o be_v a_o archimedes_n and_o able_a to_o shake_v the_o earth_n as_o he_o please_v and_o the_o hypothesis_n of_o popery_n they_o know_v offer_v they_o a_o place_n divide_v from_o the_o civil_a and_o imperial_a government_n where_o to_o stand_v with_o their_o engine_n namely_o the_o ecclesiastical_a but_o thing_n will_v not_o be_v ill_o administer_v and_o holy_a church_n itself_o will_v sink_v into_o the_o earth_n if_o its_o foundation_n be_v not_o lay_v as_o god_n and_o nature_n will_v have_v it_o and_o the_o man_n who_o stand_v for_o the_o place_n to_o be_v a_o archimedes_n and_o to_o move_v the_o earth_n will_v soon_o find_v his_o fate_n of_o be_v dissolve_v into_o his_o own_o little_a dust_n and_o that_o among_o the_o artificial_a line_n he_o be_v make_v it_o seem_v that_o boast_a association_n or_o covenant_n of_o the_o jesuit_n do_v help_v to_o occasion_v another_o among_o the_o protestant_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n which_o be_v ratify_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n in_o the_o 27_o the_o of_o eliz._n which_o be_v about_o three_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o campian_n who_o be_v convict_v of_o high_a treason_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o statute_n make_v in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o popish_a ancestor_n namely_o in_o the_o 25_o of_o edward_n the_o three_o and_o thereupon_o execute_v and_o yet_o by_o the_o romish_a church_n make_v a_o martyr_n though_o as_o i_o say_v convict_v on_o that_o statute_n but_o according_a to_o this_o thunder_a denunciation_n of_o war_n against_o all_o heretical_a king_n by_o campian_n as_o the_o jesuit_n herald_n and_o his_o boast_n when_o he_o do_v put_v on_o his_o armour_n that_o every_o one_o of_o his_o order_n shall_v be_v like_o a_o alexander_n a_o adequate_a match_n for_o at_o
his_o preservation_n he_o will_v fear_v and_o hate_v they_o for_o their_o ability_n to_o hurt_v he_o and_o as_o toad_n tho'_o not_o know_v to_o do_v any_o hurt_n be_v kill_v some_o time_n for_o the_o imagine_v precious_a stone_n in_o their_o head_n such_o may_v be_v the_o fate_n of_o man_n for_o the_o value_n of_o their_o brain_n and_o which_o depretiate_a the_o worth_n of_o other_o i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o any_o order_n or_o society_n must_v take_v what_o follow_v from_o be_v think_v nuisance_n and_o enemy_n to_o mankind_n and_o prepare_v for_o a_o political_a death_n or_o dissolution_n who_o think_v themselves_o able_a by_o artifices_fw-la to_o divest_v man_n of_o the_o property_n they_o have_v in_o their_o understanding_n and_o to_o outwit_n their_o wisdom_n and_o who_o both_o hang_v out_o to_o the_o world_n a_o new_a light_n and_o proclaim_v a_o new_a law_n of_o nature_n contrary_n to_o the_o old_a notwithstanding_o the_o outcry_n of_o nation_n that_o nolumus_fw-la legem_fw-la naturae_fw-la mutari_fw-la and_o who_o calumniate_v all_o that_o allow_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o calumny_n and_o invent_v crime_n to_o cut_v off_o the_o head_n that_o will_v not_o lie_v at_o their_o foot_n tho'_o yet_o they_o can_v invent_v no_o crime_n even_a regicide_n not_o except_v but_o what_o the_o invention_n of_o their_o theology_n have_v make_v lawful_a and_o think_v that_o a_o hypothesis_n may_z renitente_fw-la mundo_fw-la call_n itself_o religion_n or_o politics_n which_o if_o it_o be_v universal_o receive_v will_v not_o leave_v the_o world_n one_o minute_n out_o of_o a_o state_n of_o war_n for_o it_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la dissolve_v all_o paction_n and_o cancel_v all_o allegiance_n and_o null_v all_o hope_n of_o protection_n insomuch_o that_o in_o a_o gaming-house_n that_o agree_v on_o cheat_v the_o play_n can_v not_o be_v worth_a the_o candle_n at_o a_o day_n end_n and_o each_o of_o the_o cheater_n must_v be_v reduce_v to_o cheat_v by_o himself_o and_o thus_o too_o any_o one_o that_o make_v fraud_n venial_a can_v be_v sure_a that_o any_o participant_n with_o he_o in_o sedition_n will_v keep_v their_o word_n and_o he_o must_v rebel_v by_o himself_o too_o against_o a_o irritated_a world_n that_o be_v never_o make_v only_o for_o any_o to_o play_v in_o and_o with_o and_o which_o must_v needs_o with_o inconceiveable_a regret_n see_v those_o man_n who_o make_v all_o accusation_n and_o testimony_n in_o nature_n uncertain_a instrumental_a in_o the_o inflict_a of_o the_o punishment_n of_o certain_a death_n thereupon_o and_o see_v a_o religion_n that_o be_v die_v a_o natural_a death_n make_v any_o religious_a man_n die_v by_o a_o violent_a and_o observe_v that_o its_o inventor_n do_v in_o a_o positive_a and_o dictatorian_a way_n propound_v principle_n that_o such_o sturdy_a propounder_n can_v themselves_o believe_v till_o like_o geta_n a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v long_o as_o a_o disguise_n wear_v a_o patch_n over_o one_o of_o his_o eye_n he_o lose_v the_o use_n of_o it_o for_o ever_o they_o have_v by_o habituate_a their_o understanding_n long_o to_o dissimulation_n lose_v the_o use_n of_o their_o faculty_n of_o discern_v and_o this_o be_v the_o case_n between_o mankind_n and_o the_o jesuit_n neither_o better_a nor_o worse_o and_o be_v like_a to_o be_v the_o fate_n of_o these_o and_o especial_o consider_v that_o their_o principle_n have_v both_o weight_n and_o number_n to_o contest_v with_o i_o mean_v the_o weight_n of_o argument_n and_o the_o number_n of_o their_o own_o and_o our_o religion_n there_o be_v no_o resist_v the_o power_n of_o nature_n where_o those_o two_o thing_n meet_v we_o see_v by_o frequent_a observation_n in_o our_o own_o land_n that_o the_o very_a breath_n of_o the_o people_n like_o that_o of_o a_o canon_n bullet_n prove_v destructive_a and_o what_o then_o will_v not_o the_o breath_n of_o incense_a mankind_n do_v they_o have_v number_n to_o contest_v with_o that_o their_o principle_n have_v infect_v with_o calumny_n who_o think_v it_o scarce_o a_o venial_a sin_n to_o pay_v any_o man_n in_o the_o false_a coin_n that_o be_v receive_v from_o he_o and_o who_o will_v be_v make_v it_o as_o lawful_a as_o they_o can_v not_o to_o play_v upon_o the_o square_n with_o false_a gamester_n and_o as_o the_o strong_a be_v natural_o apt_a to_o repel_v force_n by_o force_n so_o be_v the_o weak_a to_o repel_v fraud_n by_o fraud_n and_o will_v be_v tempt_v to_o make_v a_o ill_a use_n of_o the_o lex_fw-la talionis_fw-la and_o to_o account_v the_o pursue_v of_o they_o with_o wild_a defamatory_n report_v to_o be_v but_o follow_v they_o in_o their_o own_o wild-goose-chace_n jarrigius_fw-la in_o his_o book_n print_v together_o with_o that_o call_v the_o jesuit_n on_o the_o scaffold_n say_v while_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o league_n leave_v in_o france_n all_o the_o slight_a the_o jesuit_n have_v to_o weaken_v the_o authority_n and_o elude_v the_o unavoidable_a accusation_n of_o the_o pasquier_n the_o servant_n the_o arnaud_n of_o that_o time_n be_v to_o persuade_v the_o credulous_a people_n that_o those_o incomparable_a man_n be_v fautor_n of_o calvinisme_n and_o thereby_o imagine_v themselves_o sufficient_o vindicate_v as_o to_o the_o horrid_a crime_n and_o execrable_a parricide_n wherewith_o they_o be_v charge_v by_o those_o illustrious_a officer_n of_o state_n in_o france_n if_o in_o some_o wretched_a answer_n they_o accuse_v they_o of_o heresy_n so_o stale_a and_o senseless_a have_v that_o humour_n of_o the_o jesuit_n be_v to_o call_v all_o that_o oppose_v they_o presbyterian_o but_o any_o who_o read_v the_o very_a learned_a epistle_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n to_o the_o discourse_n of_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1670._o will_v find_v that_o he_o there_o cites_n alphon._n de_fw-fr vargas_n toletanus_n for_o say_v that_o all_o the_o university_n of_o spain_n in_o a_o book_n against_o the_o jesuit_n print_v and_o send_v to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n give_v this_o character_n of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v fraudulenti_fw-la mendaces_fw-la veritatis_fw-la interversores_fw-la infamatores_fw-la virtutis_fw-la impostores_fw-la pietatis_fw-la velo_n operti_fw-la lupi_fw-la in_o vestimentis_fw-la ovium_fw-la novitatum_fw-la amici_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la doctorum_fw-la contemptores_fw-la lutheri_fw-la &_o calvini_n partiarii_fw-la ac_fw-la de_fw-la haeresi_fw-la suspecti_fw-la pacis_fw-la publicae_fw-la perturbatores_fw-la diabolicae_fw-la industriae_fw-la homines_fw-la serpent_n ipsique_fw-la cacodaemone_n ac_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la cavendi_fw-la ac_fw-la fugiendi_fw-la fraudulent_a liar_n corrupter_n of_o truth_n defamer_n of_o virtue_n impostor_n under_o a_o veil_n of_o piety_n wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n lover_n of_o novelty_n contemner_n of_o the_o holy_a doctor_n partner_n with_o calvin_n and_o luther_n and_o suspect_v of_o heresy_n troubler_n of_o the_o public_a peace_n man_n of_o diabolical_a industry_n serpent_n and_o very_a devil_n and_o to_o be_v shun_v and_o avoid_v or_o flee_v from_o by_o all_o man_n thus_o their_o hand_n and_o head_n be_v against_o every_o one_o by_o a_o tacit_n paction_n and_o confederation_n of_o nature_n almost_o all_o man_n be_v so_o against_o they_o they_o and_o other_o casuist_n and_o jesuited_a papist_n have_v complain_v of_o shamme_n and_o calumny_n put_v on_o they_o by_o protestant_n in_o england_n since_o the_o plot_n and_o no_o doubt_n if_o they_o have_v not_o suffer_v in_o that_o kind_n they_o may_v expect_v it_o all_o protestant_n have_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o temper_n of_o st._n michael_n the_o archangel_n to_o forbear_v rail_a accusation_n nor_o to_o the_o holiness_n of_o st._n bartholomew_n who_o it_o be_v say_v by_o continual_a prayer_n have_v his_o knee_n as_o hard_o as_o a_o camel_n i_o have_v read_v of_o a_o antidote_n against_o the_o poison_n of_o calumny_n and_o false_a testimony_n beyond_o what_o protestant_n can_v compass_n namely_o a_o indulgence_n grant_v by_o pope_n innocent_a the_o 8_o the_o to_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o bear_v upon_o he_o or_o her_o the_o length_n of_o christ_n nail_n wherewith_o he_o be_v fasten_v to_o the_o cross_n the_o just_a length_n of_o which_o be_v nine_o inch_n and_o worship_v they_o daily_o with_o five_o paternosters_a and_o five_o ave_n and_o a_o creed_n that_o he_o or_o she_o shall_v have_v grant_v they_o these_o great_a gift_n the_o first_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v never_o die_v a_o sudden_a nor_o evil_a death_n the_o second_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n or_o weapon_n the_o three_o be_v his_o enemy_n shall_v never_o overcome_v he_o the_o four_o be_v poison_n nor_o false_a witness_n shall_v never_o grieve_v he_o by_o my_o consent_n every_o protestant_n and_o papist_n shall_v in_o this_o pestilential_a time_n of_o shamme_n carry_v this_o antidote_n about_o he_o but_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o shamme-indulgence_n or_o no_o and_o put_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o invent_v
by_o some_o non-papists_a i_o know_v not_o my_o author_n for_o it_o be_v mr._n john_n gee_n master_n of_o art_n of_o exeter_n college_n in_o oxford_n in_o his_o book_n 4_o to_o call_v new_a shred_n of_o the_o old_a share_n p._n 103._o print_a at_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1624._o in_o any_o such_o wretched_a contention_n between_o the_o faex_fw-la romuli_n and_o any_o of_o the_o protestant_n here_o who_o shall_v become_v most_o impure_a by_o calumny_n as_o the_o protestant_n be_v much_o more_o numerous_a than_o the_o papist_n will_v be_v able_a to_o out-shamme_a they_o and_o to_o make_v the_o more_o plain_a detection_n of_o the_o shamme_n contrive_v by_o their_o adversary_n it_o will_v likewise_o go_v the_o hard_a with_o any_o sect_n that_o the_o majority_n of_o number_n will_v thus_o run_v down_o with_o shamme_n in_o this_o nation_n at_o this_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n when_o the_o many_o swarm_n of_o those_o who_o offer_v at_o wit_n and_o think_v they_o merit_v the_o be_v call_v wit_n by_o do_v the_o exercise_n in_o a_o coffey-house_n call_v baldr_v that_o be_v with_o a_o serious_a grave_a face_n tell_v idle_a feign_v story_n farce_v with_o particular_a circumstance_n to_o ensnare_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o credulous_a which_o kind_n of_o ungenerous_a triumph_v over_o weak_a understanding_n by_o ridiculous_a shamme_n be_v a_o false_a sort_n of_o wit_n and_o humour_n below_o not_o only_o the_o gravity_n of_o the_o english_a nation_n but_o the_o levity_n of_o the_o french_a and_o use_v by_o none_o but_o fool_n who_o stand_v for_o the_o place_n of_o be_v knave_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o talon_n of_o these_o foolish_a shammer_n as_o their_o interest_n and_o dependence_n or_o humour_n incline_v they_o to_o wish_v well_o either_o to_o popery_n or_o protestancy_n extend_v to_o abuse_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o unthinking_a vulgar_a with_o little_a romantic_a story_n concern_v those_o religion_n help_v to_o convey_v they_o into_o the_o press_n which_o give_v wing_n to_o these_o sham_n present_o to_o fly_v round_o the_o kingdom_n if_o the_o papist_n think_v the_o press_n have_v not_o in_o any_o of_o the_o pamphlet_n it_o daily_o spit_v charge_v they_o with_o calumny_n and_o of_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o to_o bring_v universal_a odium_fw-la on_o they_o by_o alarm_v the_o kingdom_n almost_o as_o much_o as_o it_o can_v be_v by_o foreign_a invasion_n and_o occasional_o lay_v a_o tax_n on_o man_n to_o buy_v what_o arm_n for_o their_o defence_n the_o law_n allow_v i_o will_v ask_v they_o what_o they_o think_v of_o one_o of_o our_o print_a intelligence_n that_o come_v out_o on_o the_o 26_o the_o of_o february_n 1680_o 1_o wherein_o it_o be_v say_v last_o friday_n come_v a_o letter_n from_o stafford_n direct_v to_o one_o bacchus_n tenant_n to_o the_o lord_n stafford_n from_o one_o wilson_n in_o cheshire_n but_o order_v to_o be_v leave_v with_o one_o finny_a of_o stafford_n to_o be_v send_v to_o the_o say_v bacchus_n but_o finny_a observe_v letter_n so_o direct_v to_o pass_v through_o his_o hand_n and_o apprehend_v they_o may_v relate_v to_o some_o dangerous_a correspondence_n take_v the_o liberty_n to_o open_v this_o and_o therein_o to_o his_o great_a surprise_n find_v direction_n to_o bacchus_n for_o burn_v of_o stafford_n and_o several_a great_a town_n upon_o which_o make_v a_o speedy_a discovery_n to_o a_o magistrate_n bacchus_n be_v send_v for_o who_o after_o some_o evasion_n do_v confess_v he_o have_v receive_v letter_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o just_o now_o the_o say_a wilson_n be_v apprehend_v and_o commit_v and_o confess_v he_o be_v by_o the_o order_n of_o a_o certain_a lord_n to_o fire_n stafford_n drayton_n shrewsbury_n nantwich_n chester_n congerton_n newcastle_n under-line_n and_o two_o more_o and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o have_v 900_o l._n for_o fire_v those_o nine_o towns._n i_o have_v never_o hear_v of_o any_o proclamation_n or_o proceed_n either_o of_o the_o magistracy_n or_o lieutenancy_n of_o this_o kingdom_n after_o such_o a_o alarm_n of_o public_a hostility_n and_o of_o a_o rebellion_n hatch_v in_o the_o kingdom_n nor_o of_o the_o last_o punishment_n inflict_v on_o the_o pretend_a certain_a lord_n that_o be_v the_o general_n of_o those_o incendiary_n do_v look_v on_o they_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o army_n in_o disguise_n but_o whatever_o ground_n the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v get_v or_o shall_v get_v by_o these_o poor_a mean_n i_o desire_v that_o it_o may_v go_v to_o the_o next_o occupant_a for_o not_o only_o the_o air_n it_o exhale_v be_v pestilential_a but_o it_o include_v that_o air_n in_o it_o which_o may_v produce_v earthquake_n which_o danger_n therefore_o the_o new_a popish_a or_o jesuited_a religion_n must_v be_v expose_v to_o by_o the_o air_n of_o sham_n and_o calumny_n my_o lord_n i_o shall_v here_o entertain_v your_o lordship_n with_o somewhat_o very_o remarkable_a out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o father_n parson_n of_o the_o succession_n whereby_o you_o will_v see_v that_o instead_o of_o allow_v the_o oportet_fw-la esse_fw-la haereses_fw-la he_o do_v in_o effect_n tell_v we_o that_o while_o the_o kingdom_n have_v two_o religion_n in_o it_o oportet_fw-la esse_fw-la calumnias_fw-la that_o great_a jesuit_n have_v with_o much_o agility_n dance_v on_o the_o high_a rope_n as_o to_o the_o casuistical_a part_n of_o the_o question_n of_o the_o succession_n affect_v to_o do_v it_o too_o in_o the_o politic_n but_o miss_v his_o centre_n of_o gravity_n in_o his_o motion_n both_o as_o a_o divine_a and_o a_o statesman_n and_o do_v shameful_o fall_v in_o either_o capacity_n as_o your_o lordship_n will_v find_v by_o the_o read_n of_o his_o word_n he_o say_v p._n 217._o be_v near_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o book_n and_o thus_o much_o now_o for_o matter_n of_o conscience_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v reason_n of_o state_n also_o and_o worldly_a policy_n it_o can_v be_v but_o great_a folly_n and_o oversight_n for_o a_o man_n of_o whatsoever_o religion_n he_o be_v to_o promote_v to_o a_o kingdom_n in_o which_o himself_o must_v live_v one_o of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n to_o himself_o for_o let_v the_o bargain_n and_o agreement_n be_v what_o they_o will_v and_o fair_a promise_n and_o vain_a hope_n never_o so_o great_a yet_o see_v the_o prince_n once_o make_v and_o settle_v must_v needs_o proceed_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o his_o own_o religion_n it_o follow_v also_o that_o he_o must_v come_v quick_o to_o break_v with_o the_o other_o party_n though_o he_o love_v he_o never_o so_o well_o which_o yet_o perhaps_o be_v very_o hard_o if_o not_o impossible_a for_o two_o of_o different_a religion_n to_o love_v sincere_o but_o if_o it_o be_v so_o yet_o many_o jealousy_n suspicion_n accusation_n calumniation_n and_o other_o aversion_n must_v needs_o light_v upon_o the_o party_n that_o be_v of_o different_a religion_n from_o the_o state_n and_o prince_n under_o who_o he_o live_v as_o not_o only_o he_o can_v be_v capable_a of_o such_o preferment_n honour_n charge_n government_n and_o the_o like_a which_o man_n may_v deserve_v and_o desire_v in_o their_o commonwealth_n but_o also_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o continual_a danger_n and_o subject_a to_o a_o thousand_o molestation_n and_o injury_n which_o be_v incident_a to_o the_o condition_n and_o state_n of_o he_o that_o be_v not_o current_n with_o the_o same_o course_n of_o his_o prince_n and_o realm_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o so_o before_o he_o be_v aware_a he_o become_v to_o be_v account_v a_o enemy_n or_o backward_a man_n which_o in_o mind_n he_o must_v either_o dissemble_v deep_o and_o against_o his_o own_o conscience_n make_v show_v to_o favour_n and_o set_v forward_o that_o which_o in_o his_o heart_n he_o do_v detest_v which_o be_v the_o great_a calamity_n and_o misery_n of_o all_o other_o though_o yet_o many_o time_n not_o sufficient_a to_o deliver_v he_o from_o suspicion_n or_o else_o to_o avoid_v this_o everlasting_a perdition_n he_o must_v break_v with_o all_o the_o temporal_a commodity_n of_o this_o life_n which_o his_o country_n and_o realm_n may_v yield_v he_o and_o this_o be_v the_o ordinary_a end_n of_o all_o such_o man_n how_o soft_a and_o sweet_a soever_o the_o beginning_n be_v this_o jesuite_n who_o be_v before_o mention_v to_o have_v be_v call_v one_o of_o the_o great_a man_n that_o his_o order_n have_v produce_v be_v here_o it_o seem_v a_o statesman_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o no_o more_o and_o have_v very_o honest_o foretell_v all_o protestant_n that_o shall_v live_v under_o a_o prince_n of_o another_o religion_n how_o dishonest_a roman_a catholic_o will_v prove_v to_o they_o the_o jesuit_n be_v here_o a_o almanac-maker_n who_o predict_v nothing_o to_o protestant_n but_o lightning_n and_o thunder_n and_o too_o the_o continual_a rain_v of_o snare_n upon_o they_o during_o such_o a_o conjuncture_n and_o
out_o of_o the_o temple_n with_o as_o much_o ease_n almost_o as_o our_o saviour_n do_v the_o jewish_a any_o one_o who_o shall_v consider_v the_o burden_n of_o oblation_n that_o the_o devoute●_n roman_n catholic_n in_o england_n lie_v under_o as_o to_o their_o priest_n which_o we_o may_v suppose_v to_o be_v very_o heavy_a according_a to_o mr._n john_n goose_n account_v in_o his_o book_n call_v the_o foot_n out_o of_o the_o snare_n p._n 76_o where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o popish_a pastor_n ordinary_o have_v a_o five_o of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o laity_n allow_v they_o and_o that_o he_o know_v that_o in_o a_o great_a shire_n in_o england_n there_o be_v not_o a_o papist_n of_o 40_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la but_o do_v at_o his_o own_o charge_n keep_v a_o priest_n in_o his_o house_n some_o poor_a neighbour_n perhaps_o contribute_v some_o small_a matter_n towards_o it_o may_v well_o think_v our_o laity_n will_v bid_v as_o high_a for_o english_a prayer_n and_o for_o ware_n they_o understand_v and_o see_v and_o weigh_v as_o the_o popish_a laity_n do_v for_o latin_a one_o and_o merchandise_n they_o be_v not_o allow_v to_o examine_v and_o he_o who_o consider_v that_o the_o priest_n of_o that_o religion_n though_o thus_o pamper_v with_o oblation_n yet_o know_v they_o burdensome_a to_o the_o laity_n do_v feed_v themselves_o and_o they_o with_o hope_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o tithe_n to_o holy_a church_n and_o even_o of_o that_o sort_n of_o tithe_n alien_v from_o it_o in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n may_v reasonable_o conclude_v that_o our_o divine_n whenever_o force_v to_o fly_v to_o the_o asylum_fw-la of_o oblation_n will_v be_v restless_a in_o be_v both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n remembrancer_n of_o their_o claim_n of_o tithe_n appropriate_v to_o the_o protestant_a religion_n by_o the_o law_n in_o be_v and_o that_o a_o violent_a religion_n and_o illegal_a gospel_n will_v be_v but_o a_o temporary_a bar_n against_o the_o collect_v of_o tithe_n from_o a_o land_n only_o during_o a_o earthquake_n i_o shall_v here_o acquaint_v your_o lordship_n with_o a_o passage_n in_o the_o late_a time_n relate_v to_o the_o clerical_a revenue_n in_o england_n worthy_a not_o only_o your_o knowledge_n but_o posterity_n and_o that_o be_v this_o a_o person_n of_o great_a understanding_n and_o of_o great_a regard_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n he_o affirm_v and_o one_o who_o make_v a_o great_a figure_n in_o the_o law_n then_o and_o in_o the_o long_a parliament_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n of_o it_o relate_v to_o i_o occasional_o in_o discourse_n that_o himself_o and_o some_o few_o other_o after_o the_o war_n be_v begin_v between_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n be_v employ_v by_o the_o govern_n party_n of_o that_o parliament_n to_o negotiate_v with_o some_o few_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a presbyterian_a divine_n and_o such_o who_o counsel_n rule_v the_o rest_n of_o that_o clergy_n and_o to_o assure_v they_o that_o the_o parliament_n have_v resolve_v if_o they_o shall_v succeed_v in_o that_o war_n to_o settle_v all_o the_o land_n issue_n and_o profit_n belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o dignitaries_n upon_o the_o ministry_n in_o england_n as_o a_o perpetual_a and_o unalienable_a maintenance_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o parliament_n on_o that_o encouragement_n expect_v that_o they_o shall_v incline_v the_o clergy_n of_o their_o persuasion_n by_o their_o preach_v and_o all_o way_n within_o the_o sphere_n of_o their_o call_v to_o promote_v the_o parliament_n cause_v and_o that_o thereupon_o those_o divine_v according_o undertake_v to_o do_v so_o and_o that_o after_o the_o end_n of_o the_o war_n he_o be_v mind_v by_o some_o of_o those_o divine_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o parliament_n promise_v by_o he_o notify_v do_v short_o after_o signify_v to_o they_o the_o answer_n of_o that_o party_n who_o have_v employ_v he_o in_o that_o negotiation_n to_o this_o effect_n viz._n that_o the_o parliament_n former_o do_v full_o intend_v to_o do_v what_o he_o have_v signify_v to_o they_o as_o aforesaid_a and_o that_o the_o public_a debt_n occasion_v by_o the_o war_n disable_v they_o from_o settle_v the_o bishop_n land_n on_o the_o church_n but_o that_o however_o he_o be_v authorize_v at_o that_o time_n to_o 〈◊〉_d they_o that_o if_o it_o will_v satisfy_v they_o to_o have_v the_o dean_n and_o chapter_n land_n so_o settle_v that_o will_v be_v do_v and_o that_o then_o those_o divine_n in_o anger_n reply_v they_o will_v have_v settle_v on_o the_o ministry_n all_o or_o none_o represent_v it_o as_o sacrilege_n to_o divert_v the_o revenue_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o secular_a use_n and_o that_o thereupon_o they_o miss_v both_o the_o dean_n and_o chapter_n land_n be_v sold._n those_o divine_v it_o seem_v have_v a_o presension_n that_o the_o prosperous_a condition_n of_o their_o church_n will_v diminish_v the_o charity_n of_o oblation_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o impolitic_o try_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o duration_n of_o their_o model_n by_o divide_v both_o the_o bishop_n power_n and_o l●nds_n among_o their_o clergy_n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o fac_fw-la simile_n after_o this_o presbyterian_a copy_n the_o popish_a priest_n will_v in_o concert_n with_o the_o pope_n even_o under_o a_o popish_a successor_n as_o well_o as_o now_o combine_v to_o lessen_v the_o king_n power_n and_o advance_v the_o pope_n on_o promise_n from_o the_o holy_a see_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o church_n land_n restore_v to_o they_o and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o a_o popish_a successor_n will_v support_v a_o popish_a clergy_n with_o what_o maintenance_n he_o can_v have_v a_o reference_n to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o likewise_o to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n that_o bind_v he_o first_o to_o support_v himself_o and_o perhaps_o by_o keep_v vacant_a bishopric_n long_o so_o a_o thing_n that_o by_o law_n he_o may_v do_v he_o may_v have_v their_o temporal_a tie_n to_o bestow_v on_o who_o he_o shall_v please_v and_o perhaps_o by_o issue_v out_o new_a commission_n about_o the_o valuation_n of_o the_o clerical_a revenue_n a_o large_a share_n of_o first-fruit_n and_o ten_o legal_o accrue_v to_o he_o may_v enable_v he_o to_o gratify_v such_o ecclesiastic_n as_o he_o shall_v favour_v but_o as_o i_o likewise_o doubt_v not_o that_o ever_o any_o accident_n of_o time_n will_v leave_v the_o disposal_n of_o such_o a_o great_a proportion_n of_o the_o church_n revenue_n at_o his_o arbitrage_n as_o the_o usurper_n have_v at_o they_o so_o neither_o do_v i_o of_o his_o affair_n ever_o permit_v he_o to_o allow_v so_o large_a a_o share_n of_o that_o revenue_n to_o his_o clergy_n as_o the_o usurper_n do_v to_o they_o who_o as_o those_o power_n dare_v not_o whole_o disoblige_v and_o therefore_o unasked_a settle_v on_o they_o towards_o the_o augmentation_n of_o their_o live_n the_o impropriate_a tithe_n belong_v to_o the_o crown_n and_o to_o the_o bishop_n and_o dean_n and_o chapter_n though_o yet_o nothing_o of_o their_o terra_fw-la firma_fw-la so_o neither_o dare_v those_o presbyterian_a divine_n who_o follow_v they_o for_o the_o loaf_n and_o who_o once_o in_o a_o sullen_a humour_n resolve_v not_o to_o have_v half_o a_o loaf_n rather_o than_o no_o bread_n reject_v the_o impropriate_a tithe_n give_v they_o because_o they_o see_v a_o new_a race_n of_o divine_n call_v independent_a ready_a to_o take_v from_o those_o power_n what_o they_o will_v give_v and_o who_o be_v prepare_v by_o their_o religion_n to_o support_v the_o state-government_n and_o some_o of_o who_o have_v already_o acquire_v church-living_n and_o other_o of_o who_o in_o the_o great_a controversy_n among_o all_o those_o party_n which_o be_v not_o generalral_o so_o much_o de_fw-mi fide_fw-la propagandâ_fw-la as_o de_fw-la pane_fw-la lucrando_fw-la will_v with_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o time_n easy_o have_v then_o worsted_n the_o presbyterian_a clergy_n in_o the_o scramble_v for_o that_o thing_n aforesaid_a that_o though_o moreau_n in_o his_o learned_a note_n on_o schola_fw-la salerni_fw-la say_v no_o book_n be_v ever_o write_v of_o yet_o i_o think_v few_o have_v be_v write_v but_o for_o namely_o bread._n but_o herein_o on_o the_o whole_a matter_n the_o usurper_n policy_n be_v so_o successful_a as_o that_o order_n the_o great_a revenue_n of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o do_v and_o appropriate_v the_o bishop_n and_o dean_n and_o chapter_n land_n to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o state_n they_o by_o the_o augmentation_n arise_v from_o the_o fond_a of_o the_o impropriate_a tithe_n to_o their_o clergy_n and_o especial_o to_o those_o of_o they_o they_o plant_v in_o great_a town_n and_o city_n tie_v they_o to_o their_o authority_n as_o i_o may_v say_v by_o the_o tooth_n and_o keep_v they_o from_o bark_v against_o it_o or_o bite_v they_o which_o else_o they_o will_v have_v
of_o cattle_n by_o pasture_n hinder_v that_o increase_n of_o man_n that_o the_o advancement_n of_o tillage_n will_v have_v produce_v and_o the_o furnish_n the_o crown_n with_o more_o subsidy_n man_n and_o soldiers_z but_o this_o supineness_n of_o our_o king_n be_v not_o only_o cause_v by_o superstition_n and_o a_o vitiate_a fancy_n in_o religion_n a_o idol_n to_o which_o philip_n the_o second_o sacrifice_v his_o son_n and_o therefore_o may_v be_v well_o suppose_v prevalent_a with_o other_o to_o wish_v the_o generation_n of_o their_o child_n or_o subject_n restrain_v but_o our_o king_n be_v not_o then_o stimulate_v by_o necessity_n to_o promote_v the_o populousness_n of_o their_o realm_n for_o that_o their_o riches_n and_o strength_n depend_v on_o comparison_n the_o same_o religious_a order_n do_v by_o celibate_n and_o depopulation_n equal_o obstruct_v the_o wealth_n and_o power_n of_o the_o neighbour_a kingdom_n as_o well_o as_o this_o and_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o be_v not_o our_o over-match_n but_o the_o course_n of_o increase_a generation_n have_v operate_v so_o far_o as_o to_o awaken_v the_o world_n and_o man_n for_o not_o have_v so_o much_o elbow-room_n as_o they_o have_v jostle_v one_o another_o by_o the_o violence_n of_o war_n the_o politic_n of_o statute_n against_o depopulation_n be_v force_v and_o reinforce_v on_o this_o realm_n and_o like_o as_o man_n so_o too_o will_v such_o statute_n beget_v one_o another_o as_o i_o may_v say_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n nor_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o kingdom_n ever_o likely_a again_o to_o be_v real_o emasculate_v by_o such_o as_o pretend_v to_o make_v themselves_o eunuch_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n sake_n and_o honour_v not_o the_o founder_n of_o christianity_n of_o who_o since_o he_o for_o the_o good_a of_o mankind_n make_v his_o first_o disciple_n fisher_n of_o man_n it_o may_v seem_v unworthy_a that_o he_o shall_v intend_v the_o hurt_n of_o state_n and_o kingdom_n by_o make_v the_o follow_a doctor_n of_o his_o church_n pastor_n of_o sheep_n sir_n thomas_n moor_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o utopia_n do_v with_o a_o sharpness_n worthy_a his_o excellent_a wit_n tell_v we_o that_o certain_a abbot_n holy_a man_n god_n wot_v not_o profit_v but_o much_o damnify_v the_o common_a wealth_n leave_v no_o ground_n for_o tillage_n they_o enclose_v all_o in_o pasture_n they_o throw_v down_o house_n they_o pull_v down_o town_n and_o leave_v nothing_o stand_v but_o only_o the_o church_n to_o make_v of_o it_o a_o sheep-house_n and_o afterward_o say_v that_o one_o shepherd_n be_v enough_o to_o eat_v up_o that_o ground_n with_o cattle_n to_o the_o occupy_v whereof_o about_o husbandry_n many_o hand_n be_v requisite_a and_o he_o in_o that_o book_n call_v the_o friar_n errones_fw-la maximos_fw-la and_o desire_v they_o may_v be_v treat_v like_o vagabond_n and_o sturdy_a beggar_n and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n contrive_v a_o model_n of_o the_o priesthood_n so_o as_o not_o to_o make_v it_o such_o a_o nuisance_n to_o the_o civil_a government_n as_o the_o papal_a one_o be_v according_o as_o have_v be_v before_o discourse_v for_o one_o of_o his_o fundamental_o there_o be_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v very_o few_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v choose_v by_o the_o people_n like_o other_o magistrate_n and_o with_o secret_a voice_n and_o enjoin_v to_o his_o priest_n marriage_n and_o make_v they_o to_o be_v promote_v to_o no_o power_n but_o only_o to_o honour_v sir_n thomas_n more_o it_o seem_v be_v far_o then_o from_o write_v at_o the_o pope_n foot_n the_o character_n that_o be_v afterward_o give_v to_o bellarmine_n style_n and_o there_o be_v as_o little_a occasion_n for_o a_o peace-maker_n interposal_n between_o he_o and_o fish_n as_o be_v between_o two_o wrangle_a lawyer_n at_o a_o bar._n but_o the_o matter_n be_v well_o mend_v with_o our_o english_a world_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o supplication_n of_o beggar_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o healthy_a and_o robu_v plebs_fw-la of_o our_o nation_n that_o till_o the_o earth_n and_o plough_n the_o sea_n and_o who_o by_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o money_n current_n come_v to_o their_o hand_n have_v fortify_v their_o vital_a spirit_n with_o good_a diet_n there_o be_v finis_fw-la litium_fw-la and_o a_o end_n of_o such_o lamentation_n as_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o supplication_n to_o the_o king_n in_o part_n before_o refer_v mention_n viz._n most_o lamentable_o complain_v of_o their_o woeful_a misery_n to_o your_o highness_n your_o poor_a daily_a beadsman_n the_o wretched_a hideous_a monster_n on_o who_o scarce_o for_o horror_n any_o eye_n dare_v look_v the_o foul_a unhappy_a sort_n of_o leper_n and_o other_o sore_a people_n needy_a impotent_a blind_a lame_a and_o sick_a etc._n etc._n how_o that_o their_o number_n be_v daily_o so_o sore_o increase_v that_o all_o the_o alm_n of_o all_o the_o well_o dispose_v people_n of_o this_o your_o realm_n be_v not_o half_a enough_o to_o sustain_v they_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o their_o indigence_n be_v extreme_a when_o they_o be_v to_o glean_v not_o only_o after_o the_o reap_v of_o the_o monk_n but_o after_o the_o ecclesiastic_a beggar_n the_o fratres_n mendicantes_fw-la or_o as_o they_o be_v then_o call_v manducantes_fw-la have_v be_v satiate_v in_o diebus_fw-la illis_fw-la and_o when_o holy_a church_n almost_o engross_v not_o only_o the_o wealth_n but_o the_o beg_n in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o he_o who_o now_o look_v on_o our_o english_a infantry_n when_o they_o turn_v their_o ploughshare_n into_o sword_n will_v see_v nothing_o of_o the_o horror_n of_o starveling_n in_o their_o face_n and_o the_o writ_n de_fw-fr leproso_fw-la amovendo_fw-la be_v in_o effect_n obsolete_a in_o nature_n as_o that_o too_o de_fw-mi haeretico_fw-la comburendo_fw-la be_v abrogate_a and_o within_o the_o term_n of_o about_o twenty_o year_n that_o the_o observator_fw-la of_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n refer_v his_o calculation_n to_o he_o mention_n but_o six_o of_o 229150_o die_v of_o the_o leprosy_n what_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n in_o france_n may_v contain_v about_o death_n by_o the_o leprosy_n happen_v there_o in_o late_a year_n i_o know_v not_o but_o do_v suppose_v that_o the_o general_a scourge_n appear_v in_o the_o skin_n of_o the_o pesantry_n there_o condemn_v to_o sell_v their_o birthright_n of_o nature_n for_o no_o pottage_n and_o to_o eat_v little_a of_o the_o corn_n they_o sow_v and_o to_o drink_v as_o little_a of_o the_o vine_n they_o plant_v and_o to_o taste_v little_a of_o flesh_n save_o what_o they_o have_v in_o alm_n from_o the_o basket_n of_o the_o abbey_n and_o who_o be_v diet_v only_o for_o vassalage_n may_v be_v a_o indication_n of_o the_o leprosy_n have_v still_o its_o former_a effect_n among_o they_o but_o our_o english_a husbandman_n be_v both_o better_a feed_v and_o teach_v and_o the_o poor_a people_n here_o have_v so_o much_o of_o brown_a bread_n and_o the_o gospel_n that_o by_o the_o calculation_n on_o our_o bill_n of_o mortality_n it_o appear_v that_o for_o so_o many_o year_n pass_v but_o one_o of_o four_o thousand_o be_v starve_v it_o be_v therefore_o i_o think_v by_o instinct_n of_o nature_n that_o our_o yeomanry_n in_o the_o country_n though_o not_o addict_v to_o mind_n niceness_n of_o controversy_n in_o religion_n nor_o to_o be_v dealer_n in_o the_o protestant_a faith_n by_o retail_n be_v great_a wholesale_n trader_n in_o it_o and_o will_v as_o soon_o suffer_v their_o plough_n to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n as_o their_o bible_n from_o under_o their_o arm_n and_o they_o have_v be_v general_o observe_v since_o the_o plot_n and_o some_o year_n before_o to_o manifest_v in_o common_a discourse_n their_o robu_v abhorrence_n of_o popery_n as_o suppose_v that_o under_o that_o religion_n they_o can_v neither_o save_v their_o soul_n nor_o their_o bacon_n doleman_n alias_o parson_n in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n speak_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n here_o make_v it_o very_o considerable_a in_o that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o country_n people_n that_o live_v out_o of_o city_n and_o great_a town_n in_o which_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o english_a force_n be_v wont_a to_o consist_v be_v much_o affect_v ordinary_o to_o their_o religion_n mean_v the_o popish_a religion_n by_o reason_n the_o preacher_n of_o the_o contrary_a religion_n be_v not_o so_o frequent_a with_o they_o as_o in_o town_n etc._n etc._n but_o be_v he_o now_o alive_a he_o will_v find_v the_o scene_n of_o thing_n change_v in_o our_o country_n church_n since_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n in_o who_o reign_n a_o book_n be_v print_v anno_fw-la 1585._o call_v a_o lamentable_a complaint_n of_o the_o commonalty_n by_o way_n of_o supplication_n to_o the_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n for_o a_o learned_a ministry_n he_o will_v find_v
subject_a that_o be_v equal_a to_o great_a parish_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o the_o grant_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o extraparochial_a title_n in_o several_a county_n may_v serve_v for_o a_o indication_n of_o great_a number_n of_o people_n that_o be_v not_o inhabitant_n in_o parish_n and_o so_o likewise_o may_v the_o multitude_n of_o those_o people_n who_o live_v in_o forest_n and_o which_o place_n be_v general_o account_v by_o the_o law_n to_o be_v extraparochial_a the_o number_n of_o parsonage_n and_o vicarage_n in_o edward_n the_o 1_o st_n valuation_n whereof_o there_o be_v a_o manuscript_n copy_n in_o the_o bodleian_n library_n be_v about_o 8900_o and_o into_o that_o number_n the_o chapel_n be_v not_o account_v but_o of_o the_o chapel_n many_o since_o have_v grow_v up_o into_o parsonage_n and_o this_o will_v likewise_o induce_v one_o to_o think_v the_o number_n of_o our_o parish_n at_o this_o time_n to_o be_v great_a than_o the_o common_a estimate_n especial_o when_o according_a to_o the_o king_n book_n which_o respect_v the_o valuation_n in_o harry_n the_o 8_o this_o time_n the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v considerable_o above_o 9000._o but_o what_o may_v seem_v more_o strange_a be_v that_o some_o man_n of_o thought_n and_o learning_n have_v attempt_v even_o by_o calculation_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o people_n of_o england_n have_v for_o a_o very_a long_a space_n of_o time_n decrease_v in_o their_o number_n and_o particular_o the_o author_n of_o a_o book_n in_o quarto_n call_v a_o account_n of_o the_o french_a usurpation_n on_o the_o trade_n of_o england_n and_o the_o great_a damage_n the_o english_a yearly_o sustain_v by_o their_o commerce_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1679_o and_o write_v with_o excellence_n of_o calculation_n in_o some_o part_n thereof_o and_o yet_o that_o author_n do_v p._n 16_o say_v and_o i_o can_v easy_o believe_v that_o 1000_o year_n since_o this_o nation_n have_v a_o much_o great_a stock_n of_o people_n then_o now_o it_o have_v for_o the_o romescot_n or_o peter-pence_n which_o be_v but_o one_o penny_n a_o chimney_n grant_v by_o offa_n and_o ina_n saxon_a king_n to_o the_o pope_n do_v amount_v to_o 50000_o yearly_a and_o the_o hearth-money_n which_o be_v two_o shilling_n the_o hearth_n and_o one_o stack_n of_o chimney_n may_v have_v many_o hearth_n do_v not_o amount_v to_o 300,000l_o yearly_a whereas_o if_o the_o number_n of_o chimney_n charge_v with_o the_o romescot_n have_v be_v two_o shilling_n a_o chimney_n it_o will_v have_v amount_v to_o 1,200,000_o l._n yearly_a so_o that_o we_o may_v conclude_v there_o be_v then_o more_o building_n and_o chimney_n and_o so_o by_o consequence_n more_o people_n but_o have_v that_o author_n consider_v that_o the_o romescot_n or_o denarius_fw-la sancti_fw-la petri_n be_v only_o a_o annual_a penny_n from_o every_o family_n or_o household_n and_o that_o it_o amount_v to_o 300_o mark_n and_o a_o noble_a yearly_a as_o blunt_n say_v by_o that_o reckon_n it_o will_v have_v appear_v that_o there_o be_v not_o then_o in_o all_o england_n 50000_o family_n liable_a to_o that_o duty_n whereas_o there_o be_v now_o above_o a_o million_o of_o such_o family_n so_o that_o now_o the_o people_n and_o family_n of_o england_n be_v twenty_o time_n as_o many_o as_o they_o be_v then_o which_o agree_v pretty_a well_o with_o my_o lord_n chief_a justice_n hales_n reckon_n that_o great_a person_n in_o his_o primitive_a origination_n of_o mankind_n yield_v that_o the_o people_n of_o england_n be_v at_o least_o 6_o million_o and_o do_v too_o in_o page_n 205_o say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o know_v any_o thing_n render_v clear_a to_o the_o view_n than_o the_o gradual_a increase_n of_o mankind_n by_o the_o curious_a and_o strict_a observation_n on_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n and_o do_v very_o elaborate_o make_v a_o comparison_n between_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n in_o glocestershire_n and_o particular_o some_o great_a town_n and_o burrough_n there_o as_o thornbury_n and_o tedbury_n as_o they_o be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o make_n up_o of_o domesday_n book_n and_o as_o they_o now_o be_v and_o show_v that_o there_o be_v very_o many_o more_o vill_n and_o hamlet_n now_o then_o there_o be_v then_o and_o few_o village_n or_o town_n or_o parish_n then_o which_o continue_v not_o to_o this_o day_n and_o that_o the_o number_n of_o inhabitant_n now_o be_v above_o 20_o time_n more_o through_o the_o general_a extent_n of_o the_o country_n then_o at_o that_o time_n and_o afterward_o say_v if_o we_o shall_v institute_v a_o late_a comparison_n viz._n between_o the_o present_a time_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n which_o be_v not_o above_o 112_o year_n since_o and_o compare_v the_o number_n of_o train_v soldier_n then_o and_o now_o the_o number_n of_o subsidy_n man_n then_o and_o now_o they_o will_v easy_o give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o a_o very_a great_a increase_n and_o multiplication_n of_o people_n within_o this_o kingdom_n even_o to_o admiration_n it_o will_v be_v no_o difficult_a thing_n to_o fortify_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o great_a gradual_a increase_n of_o the_o people_n and_o particular_o of_o those_o in_o the_o parish_n of_o glocestershire_n by_o the_o show_v the_o increase_n of_o their_o worth_n and_o riches_n in_o the_o several_a public_a valuation_n and_o their_o present_a real_a value_n from_o whence_o their_o growth_n in_o the_o number_n of_o their_o inhabitant_n may_v be_v well_o infer_v as_o for_o example_n in_o edward_n the_o 1_o st_n valuation_n tedbury_n be_v value_v ecclesia_fw-la de_fw-fr tedbury_n 36._o m._n i_o e._n mark_n and_o in_o harry_n the_o 8ths_n valuation_n be_v value_v at_o 36l_o 13_o s_z 2d_o and_o be_v now_o worth_a about_o 100_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la thornbury_n in_o edward_n the_o 1_o st_n valuation_n be_v value_v at_o 47_o mark_n and_o a_o half_a and_o in_o harry_n the_o 8_o this_o to_o 32_o l._n 14s_o 8d_n and_o be_v now_o worth_a about_o 120_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la berkley_n in_o edward_n the_o 1_o st_n valuation_n come_v to_o 36_o mark_n and_o a_o half_a and_o in_o harry_n the_o 8_o this_o to_o 32_o l._n 14s_o 8d_n and_o be_v now_o worth_a about_o 100_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la i_o have_v instance_a in_o these_o place_n as_o refer_v to_o by_o hales_n and_o shall_v here_o as_o to_o gloster_n only_o further_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v more_o place_n in_o the_o decanatus_n glocestriae_fw-la in_o harry_n the_o 8_o this_o valuation_n than_o be_v in_o edward_n the_o 1_o st_n as_o for_o instance_n edward_n the_o 1_o st_n valuation_n do_v in_o the_o rural_a deanery_n of_o gloucester_n comprise_v 6_o church_n and_o a_o chapel_n but_o harry_n the_o 8_o the_o do_v in_o the_o deanery_n contain_v above_o 20_o church_n and_o a_o chapel_n i_o shall_v here_o corroborate_v his_o lordship_n remark_n of_o the_o increase_n of_o family_n in_o another_o town_n in_o glocestershire_n which_o he_o call_v dursilege_n and_o which_o be_v in_o edward_n the_o 1_o st_n valuation_n call_v durs_o and_o value_v as_o a_o rectory_n there_o at_o 10_o mark_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la and_o in_o harry_n the_o 8_o this_o as_o a_o rectory_n at_o 10_o l._n 14s_o 3d._n and_o be_v now_o let_v for_o 72_o l._n yearly_a i_o have_v observe_v a_o suitable_a difference_n between_o the_o former_a valuation_n of_o other_o live_n in_o that_o county_n and_o their_o present_a real_a value_n his_o lordship_n have_v before_o just_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v a_o laborious_a piece_n of_o work_n to_o make_v a_o calculation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o inhabitant_n at_o this_o day_n throughout_o england_n do_v however_o in_o a_o way_n very_o worthy_a of_o his_o great_a judgement_n adapt_v his_o estimate_n to_o the_o extent_n of_o one_o entire_a county_n for_o have_v he_o go_v less_o and_o restrain_v it_o to_o this_o or_o that_o parish_n the_o gradual_a increase_n of_o the_o people_n there_o may_v have_v fall_v short_a by_o particular_a accident_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n we_o have_v it_o in_o mr._n bentham_n christian_a conflict_n p._n 322._o that_o 11_o manor_n in_o northamptonshire_n have_v be_v enclose_v with_o depopulation_n and_o have_v vomit_v out_o their_o former_a desolate_a owner_n and_o their_o posterity_n many_o ingenious_a person_n have_v apply_v their_o thought_n to_o several_a way_n of_o calculation_n whereby_o to_o discover_v the_o total_a of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n in_o england_n and_o in_o the_o investigation_n thereof_o some_o concern_v in_o the_o management_n of_o the_o hearth-money_n have_v reckon_v that_o in_o england_n and_o wales_n the_o number_n of_o hearth_n of_o rich_a and_o poor_a be_v 2_o million_o and_o 6_o hundred_o thousand_o and_o that_o at_o a_o medium_fw-la there_o be_v between_o 4_o and_o 5_o person_n to_o a_o hearth_n and_o account_v but_o 4_o person_n to_o a_o hearth_n they_o suppose_v that_o at_o that_o
under_o who_o they_o be_v bear_v some_o for_o heresy_n some_o for_o murder_n treason_n robbery_n and_o be_v there_o further_o represent_v as_o such_o who_o secret_a practice_n have_v not_o fail_v to_o stir_v her_o highness_n subject_n to_o a_o rebellion_n against_o god_n and_o her_o grace_n etc._n etc._n but_o secret_a traitor_n they_o be_v find_v by_o the_o realm_n and_o secret_a they_o be_v leave_v by_o it_o two_o of_o they_o be_v john_n a_o lasco_n uncle_n to_o the_o king_n of_o poland_n and_o peter_n martyr_n that_o be_v thus_o send_v out_o of_o the_o realm_n with_o sanbenito_n on_o and_o so_o far_o be_v our_o popish_a ancestor_n from_o hospitality_n to_o stranger_n and_o thereby_o unaware_o entertain_v angel_n that_o they_o make_v devil_n of_o they_o and_o as_o such_o use_v they_o and_o to_o make_v amends_o to_o the_o multitude_n of_o foreign_a artist_n for_o the_o gold_n they_o bring_v here_o they_o have_v the_o dirt_n of_o sham_n throw_v at_o they_o by_o a_o proclamation_n and_o as_o if_o not_o only_o the_o bite_a but_o the_o very_a bark_v of_o mad_a dog_n have_v power_n to_o make_v other_o mad_a she_o grow_v so_o enrage_v by_o the_o book_n of_o heresy_n and_o sedition_n print_v in_o foreign_a part_n and_o here_o import_v that_o she_o publish_a a_o proclamation_n print_v likewise_o in_o fox_n wherein_o she_o declare_v to_o all_o her_o subject_n that_o whoever_o shall_v after_o the_o proclaim_v hereof_o be_v find_v to_o have_v any_o of_o the_o say_v wicked_a and_o seditious_a book_n or_o find_v they_o do_v not_o forthwith_o burn_v the_o same_o without_o show_v or_o read_v the_o same_o shall_v in_o that_o case_n be_v repute_a and_o take_v for_o a_o rebel_n and_o shall_v without_o delay_n be_v execute_v for_o the_o offence_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o martial_a law._n but_o nothing_o can_v palliate_v the_o arbitrariness_n of_o queen_n mary_n proclamation_n for_o the_o exercise_v of_o martial_a law_n but_o that_o she_o think_v she_o reign_v a_o time_n of_o war_n and_o perhaps_o not_o altogether_o improper_o for_o that_o heretic_n have_v the_o title_n of_o host_n give_v they_o by_o popish_a master_n of_o ceremony_n there_o be_v another_o reason_n that_o induce_v queen_n mary_n to_o use_v the_o arbitrary_a power_n that_o her_o popish_a predecessor_n do_v not_o and_o that_o be_v this_o the_o people_n of_o england_n in_o the_o day_n of_o popery_n be_v like_a to_o the_o three_o fool_n in_o lipsius_n that_o be_v tie_v together_o by_o a_o twine_n thread_n go_v whine_v about_o the_o house_n and_o consent_v that_o they_o who_o will_v untie_v the_o knot_n of_o it_o shall_v have_v what_o money_n from_o they_o they_o please_v and_o thus_o be_v our_o foolish_a ancestor_n innodate_v with_o papal_a censure_n and_o the_o priest_n do_v but_o arbitrary_o ask_v and_o have_v their_o reward_n to_o absolve_v they_o but_o that_o queen_n find_v that_o the_o reformation_n begin_v have_v prove_v physic_n to_o cure_v those_o idiot_n of_o their_o dull_a stupidity_n she_o therefore_o suppose_v that_o the_o fool_n who_o before_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o twine_n thread_n must_v then_o be_v bind_v to_o the_o good_a behaviour_n with_o chain_n in_o fine_a by_o these_o three_o important_a act_n of_o arbitrary_a power_n the_o which_o present_o occur_v to_o my_o remembrance_n out_o of_o her_o story_n and_o without_o my_o trouble_v myself_o to_o rake_v for_o more_o she_o give_v the_o alarm_n to_o her_o subject_n new_o after_o their_o eye_n have_v be_v open_v and_o their_o hand_n untie_v by_o the_o reign_n of_o k._n edward_n that_o they_o be_v to_o expect_v no_o free_a trade_n where_o there_o be_v no_o free_a live_n and_o to_o hear_v nothing_o but_o the_o die_a groan_n of_o liberty_n and_o religion_n so_o very_o exact_v indeed_o be_v the_o frame_n of_o our_o english_a government_n and_o of_o the_o sovereign_n power_n and_o people_n liberty_n therein_o that_o as_o in_o a_o arch_a building_n if_o one_o stone_n be_v remove_v from_o it_o the_o whole_a be_v immediate_o endanger_v and_o nothing_o can_v probable_o have_v save_v it_o from_o ruin_n but_o the_o restoration_n of_o our_o law_n as_o well_o as_o gospel_n by_o such_o a_o reign_n as_o queen_n elizabeth_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o exercise_n of_o arbitrary_a power_n on_o her_o good_a subject_n and_o friend_n that_o she_o do_v it_o not_o on_o the_o worst_a nor_o on_o her_o enemy_n one_o will_v have_v think_v that_o after_o the_o many_o attempt_n against_o her_o life_n and_o after_o the_o foremention_v threaten_a letter_n of_o campian_n which_o notify_v that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v enter_v into_o a_o covenant_n or_o association_n to_o kill_v heretical_a prince_n etc._n etc._n that_o she_o may_v have_v be_v provoke_v to_o have_v declare_v that_o order_n by_o a_o proclamation_n to_o be_v host_n a_o thing_n that_o she_o or_o any_o protestant_n crown_v head_n may_v do_v without_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o nation_n in_o reference_n to_o those_o foreign_a prince_n that_o be_v their_o ally_n and_o to_o who_o any_o of_o that_o order_n be_v subject_n a_o thing_n not_o only_o consonant_a to_o the_o jus_o gentium_fw-la but_o to_o our_o lex_fw-la terrae_fw-la as_o it_o be_v resolve_v in_o cambden_n elizabeth_n by_o the_o lord_n chief_a justice_n catelin_n who_o be_v ask_v whither_o the_o subject_n of_o another_o prince_n confederate_a with_o the_o queen_n may_v be_v hold_v for_o the_o queen_n enemy_n answer_v that_o they_o may_v and_o that_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n may_v make_v war_n with_o any_o duke_n of_o france_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n hold_v peace_n with_o the_o french_a king_n and_o a_o thing_n that_o if_o do_v will_v have_v tend_v more_o to_o their_o extermination_n out_o of_o this_o or_o any_o country_n perhaps_o than_o all_o other_o law_n against_o they_o in_o regard_n that_o it_o will_v have_v more_o effectual_o bereave_v they_o of_o the_o benefit_n of_o correspondence_n aid_n and_o assistance_n from_o thence_o all_o subject_n be_v every_o where_o by_o the_o law_n render_v traitor_n who_o correspond_v with_o or_o give_v aid_n and_o assistance_n to_o declare_v enemy_n nor_o will_v the_o term_n of_o host_n bestow_v on_o such_o be_v more_o than_o a_o retaliation_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n mariana_n make_v the_o people_n authorise_a too_o proclaim_v a_o king_n upon_o occasion_n to_o be_v a_o public_a enemy_n and_o so_o likewise_o lessius_fw-la even_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr justitiâ_fw-la &_o jure_fw-la say_v that_o a_o tyrant_n be_v to_o be_v declare_v a_o enemy_n by_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o thus_o parson_n alias_o doleman_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n part_v 2._o cap._n 4._o term_n a_o evil_a king_n a_o arm_a enemy_n the_o term_n i_o mention_v before_o of_o inimicus_fw-la homo_fw-la be_v certain_o proper_a enough_o for_o those_o that_o sow_v such_o tare_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o jesuit_n do_v and_o make_v not_o only_a lollard_n of_o ordinary_a heretic_n but_o as_o the_o commenter_n on_o the_o epitome_n of_o confession_n otherwise_o the_o 7_o the_o book_n of_o decretal_n tell_v we_o in_o commendation_n of_o all_o the_o jesuit_n in_o these_o word_n tyrannos_fw-la aggrediuntur_fw-la lolium_fw-la ab_fw-la agro_fw-la dominico_n evellunt_fw-la i_o shall_v here_o observe_v how_o in_o the_o year_n 1596._o the_o hollander_n and_o other_o of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o unite_a province_n do_v publish_v a_o edict_n that_o none_o of_o the_o bloody_a sect_n of_o the_o jesuit_n or_o any_o that_o give_v himself_o to_o study_v at_o this_o time_n among_o the_o professor_n of_o that_o sect_n whether_o he_o be_v b●rn_v in_o any_o of_o the_o province_n that_o be_v confederate_a or_o be_v a_o foreigner_n creep_v secret_o into_o the_o same_o province_n shall_v long_o remain_v there_o then_o the_o time_n prescribe_v under_o the_o pain_n of_o be_v account_v and_o kill_v for_o a_o enemy_n but_o that_o magnanimous_a queen_n do_v as_o much_o think_v it_o inglorious_a for_o she_o to_o employ_v her_o anger_n in_o such_o a_o proclamation_n on_o such_o fiery_a pedant_n as_o i_o believe_v our_o potent_a neighbour_a monarch_n who_o name_n will_v look_v as_o great_a in_o all_o ●uture_a story_n for_o mighty_a diligence_n and_o for_o exact_a prudence_n in_o the_o conduct_n of_o his_o affair_n of_o state_n as_o for_o the_o success_n of_o his_o arm_n will_v to_o honour_n with_o the_o title_n of_o enemy_n such_o little_a great_a talker_n who_o here_o in_o the_o coffeehouse_n arraign_v his_o political_a measure_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o it_o be_v not_o worthy_a the_o grandeur_n of_o prince_n who_o be_v heaven_n vicegerent_n to_o squander_v away_o its_o thunder_n in_o experiment_n on_o shrub_n and_o mushroom_n or_o on_o slight_a ground_n to_o call_v any_o of_o slight_a mankind_n and_o who_o be_v of_o no_o name_n by_o that_o dreadful_a one_o
countenance_v and_o maintain_v by_o the_o same_o and_o i_o believe_v none_o will_v imagine_v that_o those_o nonconform_v divine_n will_v take_v any_o oath_n but_o in_o the_o imposer_n sense_n or_o casuistical_o advise_v other_o so_o to_o do_v it_o be_v therefore_o no_o marvel_n if_o our_o late_a presbytery_n be_v so_o unconformable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o to_o the_o tenet_n of_o the_o former_a nonconformist_n soon_o grow_v weary_a of_o itself_o and_o do_v with_o its_o horrid_a visage_n only_a face_n we_o and_o march_v off_o your_o lordship_n find_v that_o in_o another_o thing_n it_o resemble_v popery_n namely_o in_o that_o it_o will_v be_v all_o or_o nothing_o and_o you_o help_v it_o to_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o alternative_a mr._n nye_n who_o make_v a_o great_a figure_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o divine_n have_v in_o that_o book_n of_o his_o forementioned_a p._n 98_o help_v this_o age_n to_o know_v how_o arbitrary_a they_o will_v have_v be_v in_o deliver_v man_n to_o satan_n for_o say_v he_o there_o the_o exercise_n of_o discipline_n in_o our_o congregation_n be_v order_v by_o the_o parliament_n but_o limit_v likewise_o to_o a_o enumeration_n of_o the_o sin_n for_o which_o we_o may_v excommunicate_v exempt_n other_o sinner_n that_o be_v as_o much_o under_o our_o charge_n this_o be_v look_v on_o by_o the_o assembly_n as_o a_o great_a abridgement_n of_o their_o ministerial_a liberty_n and_o so_o great_a as_o they_o profess_v it_o can_v not_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n be_v submit_v to_o as_o not_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v their_o trust_n which_o they_o receive_v from_o jesus_n christ_n and_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o to_o he_o resolve_v to_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o liberty_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v make_v they_o free_a so_o ridiculous_a be_v those_o divine_n that_o though_o no_o pope_n ever_o arrogate_a a_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v one_o but_o for_o the_o crime_n nominate_v in_o his_o canon-law_n and_o though_o our_o church_n of_o england_n never_o claim_v a_o power_n of_o excommunicate_v but_o for_o a_o crime_n express_v in_o the_o king_n ecclesiastical_a law_n yet_o those_o froward_a disciplinarian_o will_v have_v be_v allow_v to_o shoot_v their_o thunderbolt_n of_o excommunication_n upon_o a_o capricio_n but_o not_o only_o the_o parliament_n but_o the_o whole_a nation_n in_o a_o manner_n pronounce_v they_o contumacious_a the_o people_n see_v how_o arbitrary_o they_o will_v have_v interdict_v the_o whole_a land_n from_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o bread_n too_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o have_v rail_v in_o the_o communion-table_n with_o fantastic_a qualification_n and_o they_o soon_o judge_v those_o clergyman_n guilty_a of_o irregularity_n and_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o they_o have_v engage_v so_o far_o in_o causâ_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la and_o the_o same_o sun_n of_o reason_n and_o knowledge_n that_o with_o the_o strength_n of_o its_o beam_n have_v here_o put_v out_o the_o pope_n kitchen_n fire_n of_o purgatory_n do_v soon_o without_o noise_n and_o insensible_o confound_v their_o dominion_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n and_o those_o divine_n themselves_o find_v that_o their_o destroy_a episcopacy_n here_o have_v in_o effect_n by_o the_o parliament_n be_v their_o superintendant_o enthrone_v erastianisme_n that_o which_o indeed_o their_o principle_n lead_v they_o to_o hate_v more_o than_o episcopacy_n itself_o mr._n baxter_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o second_o part_n of_o the_o nonconformist_n plea_n speak_v of_o presbytery_n say_v i_o do_v not_o hear_v of_o many_o out_o of_o london_n and_o lancashire_n that_o do_v ever_o set_v up_o this_o government_n and_o i_o know_v not_o of_o one_o congregation_n now_o in_o london_n of_o englishman_n that_o exercise_v the_o presbyterian_a government_n nor_o ever_o do_v since_o the_o king_n come_v home_o etc._n etc._n and_o say_v they_o have_v no_o national_a assembly_n no_o class_n no_o coalition_n of_o many_o church_n to_o make_v a_o presbytery_n and_o i_o hear_v of_o none_o unless_o perhaps_o some_o independent_n that_o i_o know_v not_o that_o have_v so_o much_o as_o rule_v lay-elder_n allude_v to_o some_o expression_n before_o apply_v to_o papist_n and_o popery_n i_o may_v say_v that_o the_o cato_n of_o presbytery_n come_v here_o on_o the_o stage_n tantum_fw-la ut_fw-la exirent_fw-la and_o that_o government_n soon_o have_v its_o period_n here_o per_fw-la simplicem_fw-la desinentiam_fw-la it_o be_v obvious_a that_o presbytery_n as_o well_o as_o popery_n direct_v man_n where_o to_o stand_v in_o a_o place_n divide_v from_o the_o civil_a government_n and_o so_o to_o shake_v the_o earth_n and_o it_o appear_v very_o inauspicious_a to_o the_o model_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o in_o its_o first_o paragraph_n it_o shall_v stumble_v upon_o implicit_a faith_n by_o swear_v to_o a_o government_n and_o reformation_n that_o shall_v be_v and_o to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n discipline_n and_o government_n the_o particular_n whereof_o the_o lay-covenanters_n of_o england_n if_o not_o the_o clerical_a also_o be_v far_o from_o understanding_n and_o though_o in_o that_o paragraph_n the_o covenant_n bind_v its_o taker_n to_o endeavour_v to_o advance_v the_o reformation_n of_o religion_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n a_o clause_n that_o sir_n harry_n vane_n declare_v to_o a_o very_a worthy_a gentleman_n now_o live_v that_o he_o cause_v to_o be_v insert_v into_o the_o covenant_n after_o much_o debate_n about_o the_o same_o and_o opposition_n from_o the_o scotch_a commissioner_n with_o who_o he_o be_v interest_v in_o the_o make_n of_o it_o and_o thereupon_o say_v that_o ●e_n be_v three_o day_n in_o get_v the_o word_n of_o god_n into_o the_o covenant_n yet_o that_o covenant_n have_v almost_o extirpated_a root_n and_o branch_n those_o spiritual_a guide_n from_o who_o the_o people_n may_v expect_v a_o more_o rational_a and_o learned_a interpretation_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n then_o from_o the_o presbyterian_a divine_n they_o be_v soon_o sensible_a of_o their_o danger_n both_o as_o to_o the_o pervert_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o subvert_v of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o new_a corrector_n of_o magnificat_fw-la and_o find_v that_o such_o a_o inundation_n of_o vile_a religionary_a tenet_n be_v get_v into_o the_o church_n that_o the_o house_n of_o parliament_n order_v the_o 10_o the_o of_o march_n 1646._o to_o be_v set_v apart_o as_o a_o solemn_a day_n of_o humiliation_n to_o seek_v god_n assistance_n for_o the_o suppress_n and_o prevent_v of_o the_o growth_n and_o spread_v of_o error_n heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n and_o that_o mr._n vine_n on_o that_o day_n preach_v before_o the_o commons_o p._n the_o 4_o the_o of_o his_o sermon_n print_v acknowledge_v that_o that_o day_n be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o be_v in_o england_n on_o that_o sad_a occasion_n and_o p._n 67_o of_o that_o sermon_n mention_v a_o most_o detestable_a thing_n then_o broach_v by_o the_o press_n though_o yet_o in_o the_o way_n of_o query_n namely_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o word_n scripture_n when_o it_o be_v assert_v that_o the_o deny_v of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v hold_v worthy_a of_o death_n for_o say_v the_o author_n either_o the_o english_a scripture_n or_o scripture_n in_o english_a be_v mean_v by_o the_o word_n scripture_n or_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a copy_n or_o original_n the_o former_a can_v be_v mean_v with_o reason_n because_o god_n do_v not_o speak_v to_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n nor_o the_o latter_a for_o the_o great_a part_n of_o man_n in_o the_o kingdom_n do_v not_o understand_v or_o know_v they_o mr._n vine_n declare_v his_o just_a abhorrence_n of_o that_o insinuation_n and_o say_v if_o this_o dilemma_n be_v good_a what_o be_v become_v of_o the_o certain_a foundation_n of_o our_o hope_n or_o faith_n or_o comfort_n how_o can_v we_o search_v the_o scripture_n without_o go_v first_o to_o school_n to_o learn_v hebrew_n and_o greek_a and_o it_o be_v obvious_a to_o every_o one_o to_o consider_v that_o if_o the_o english_a scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n there_o be_v a_o end_n not_o only_o of_o the_o reformation_n according_a to_o it_o mention_v in_o the_o covenant_n but_o the_o substantial_a one_o promote_v by_o the_o protestant_a religion_n that_o help_v we_o to_o the_o treasure_n of_o our_o english_a bibles_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v soon_o be_v strand_v on_o the_o shore_n of_o implicit_a faith._n nor_o can_v it_o long_o be_v hide_v from_o common_a observation_n that_o those_o divine_n who_o exclaim_v so_o much_o against_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o a_o oppressive_a yoke_n will_v have_v impose_v on_o we_o such_o a_o rigid_a observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n the_o great_a scene_n
reign_n of_o the_o royal_a martyr_n their_o number_n decrease_v fast_o in_o many_o active_a conjuncture_n of_o time_n than_o they_o increase_v in_o any_o lazy_a one_o the_o author_n of_o the_o regal_a apology_n and_o suppose_v to_o be_v doctor_n bate_v the_o physician_n say_v in_o p._n 39_o it_o be_v well_o know_v there_o be_v not_o 24000_o papist_n convict_v in_o all_o england_n and_o wales_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v suppose_v the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n then_o not_o convict_v to_o be_v double_a to_o that_o of_o the_o convict_a yet_o will_v such_o their_o number_n appear_v considerable_o dwindle_v from_o what_o it_o be_v swell_v to_o in_o any_o conjuncture_n before_o in_o king_n james_n reign_n and_o i_o believe_v if_o our_o civil_a war_n have_v not_o happen_v one_o canon_n even_o of_o the_o convacation_n of_o 1640_o as_o ill_o as_o that_o convocation_n hear_v among_o many_o i_o mean_v the_o three_o canon_n will_v have_v effect_v the_o extermination_n of_o popery_n from_o england_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o royal_a martyr_n the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v for_o suppress_v of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n no_o doubt_n but_o a_o little_a before_o that_o time_n popery_n do_v again_o lift_v up_o his_o head_n as_o if_o its_o redemption_n be_v to_o draw_v nigh_o in_o ireland_n and_o england_n and_o therefore_o the_o convocation_n then_o with_o great_a conduct_n and_o skill_n do_v lead_v up_o our_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n to_o confront_v its_o growth_n and_o i_o do_v not_o remember_v to_o have_v find_v that_o phrase_n of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n which_o have_v in_o late_a day_n so_o fill_v our_o mouth_n use_v in_o any_o author_n before_o the_o write_n of_o that_o canon_n and_o do_v think_v that_o all_o the_o committee_n that_o have_v be_v appoint_v to_o prevent_v the_o growth_n of_o popery_n or_o book_n of_o that_o subject_n have_v not_o produce_v to_o the_o world_n any_o mean_n or_o expedient_a so_o likely_a to_o make_v popery_n have_v do_v grow_v here_o as_o be_v the_o excellent_a scheme_n for_o that_o purpose_n draw_v in_o that_o canon_n and_o which_o when_o ever_o it_o shall_v be_v with_o vigour_n execute_v will_v make_v our_o fear_n grow_v out_o of_o fashion_n either_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o papist_n or_o of_o the_o argument_n of_o their_o number_n that_o since_o that_o restoration_n of_o our_o king_n and_o law_n and_o of_o the_o discipline_n of_o our_o church_n a_o conjuncture_n happen_v that_o make_v the_o barren_a womb_n of_o popery_n here_o fruitful_a of_o number_n none_o will_v deny_v who_o consider_v how_o all_o our_o great_a divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v so_o late_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n against_o it_o as_o i_o before_o observe_v in_o the_o account_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o persuasion_n in_o religion_n in_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n that_o dr._n glanvile_n say_v he_o have_v see_v and_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o a_o sheet_n of_o paper_n among_o the_o nine_o preliminary_a observation_n the_o first_o be_v that_o many_o leave_v the_o church_n upon_o the_o late_a indulgence_n who_o before_o do_v frequent_v it_o i_o believe_v by_o the_o many_o there_o be_v mean_v those_o that_o veer_v towards_o popery_n and_o i_o suppose_v that_o few_o have_v for_o several_a precedent_n year_n repair_v thither_o from_o fear_n of_o the_o penal_a law_n we_o have_v a_o remark_n give_v we_o by_o that_o learned_a statesman_n and_o noble_a confessor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o earl_n of_o clarendon_n in_o his_o judicious_a animadversion_n print_v anno_fw-la 1673_o on_o cressy_n cressy_n s_o book_n against_o dr._n stillingfleet_n that_o the_o rude_a and_o boisterous_a behaviour_n of_o some_o of_o the_o roman_a catholic_n here_o disturb_v the_o happy_a calm_a they_o all_o enjoy_v and_o the_o vanity_n and_o folly_n of_o other_o make_v that_o ill_a use_n of_o the_o king_n bounty_n and_o generosity_n towards_o they_o that_o they_o endeavour_v to_o make_v it_o believe_v that_o it_o proceed_v not_o from_o charity_n and_o compassion_n towards_o their_o person_n but_o from_o affection_n to_o their_o religion_n and_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o reproach_v the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o all_o who_o adhere_v to_o it_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o a_o condition_n as_o well_o as_o a_o disposition_n to_o oppress_v it_o and_o to_o affront_v and_o discountenance_v all_o who_o will_v adhere_v to_o it_o and_o so_o alienate_v the_o affection_n of_o those_o who_o desire_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v disquiet_v and_o kindle_v a_o jealousy_n in_o other_o who_o have_v believe_v that_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o attempt_v it_o and_o have_v more_o power_n to_o compass_v it_o then_o be_v discern_v etc._n etc._n and_o this_o mischief_n the_o wise_a and_o sober_a catholic_n of_o england_n have_v long_o foresee_v will_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o that_o petulant_a and_o unruly_a spirit_n that_o sway_v too_o much_o among_o they_o and_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o restrain_v it_o etc._n etc._n and_o afterward_o say_v as_o if_o they_o can_v subdue_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o so_o care_v not_o who_o they_o provoke_v a_o friend_n of_o i_o in_o the_o king_n loyal_a long_a parliament_n write_v to_o i_o for_o news_n after_o one_o of_o their_o session_n that_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o mr._n seymour_n open_v according_o to_o the_o customary_a manner_n in_o a_o public_a speech_n to_o his_o majesty_n in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o bill_n then_o ready_a for_o the_o royal_a assent_n speak_v thus_o concern_v that_o sharp_a one_o that_o will_v forever_o here_o cut_v popery_n to_o the_o quick_a viz._n and_o for_o the_o severity_n of_o this_o bill_n to_o the_o papist_n they_o may_v thank_v their_o own_o petulant_a insolence_n the_o word_n petulant_a be_v very_o significant_a and_o import_v saucy_a malepert_a impudent_a reproachful_a ready_a to_o do_v wrong_n one_o will_v suppose_v that_o those_o two_o great_a observe_a person_n will_v not_o apply_v it_o to_o any_o body_n of_o man_n without_o just_a occasion_n it_o seem_v the_o house_n of_o commons_o at_o their_o next_o session_n in_o a_o address_n to_o the_o king_n october_n 31._o 1673._o have_v this_o clause_n that_o for_o another_o age_n at_o the_o least_o this_o kingdom_n will_v be_v under_o continual_a apprehension_n of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o in_o a_o address_n to_o his_o majesty_n november_n the_o 3_o d_o 1673._o speak_v of_o the_o popish_a recusant_n they_o have_v these_o word_n who_o number_n and_o insolence_n be_v great_o of_o late_a increase_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v then_o high_a time_n for_o that_o great_a minister_n of_o the_o king_n the_o earl_n of_o danby_n when_o he_o see_v that_o of_o all_o dissenter_n chief_o the_o popish_a one_o have_v sascinated_a so_o many_o with_o a_o belief_n of_o their_o number_n to_o cause_v that_o great_a enquiry_n into_o they_o to_o be_v make_v and_o it_o be_v his_o fortune_n by_o the_o very_a enquiry_n to_o strip_v the_o papist_n of_o many_o of_o their_o value_a number_n for_o the_o very_a next_o observation_n to_o that_o i_o before_o mention_v be_v this_o the_o send_v forth_o these_o inquiry_n have_v cause_v many_o to_o frequent_v the_o church_n alsted_n in_o his_o chronology_n venture_v to_o say_v p._n 112._o david_n ex_fw-la merâ_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d numerat_fw-la populum_fw-la and_o the_o thing_n perhaps_o do_v with_o a_o ill_a intent_n be_v punish_v with_o a_o plague_n from_o god_n but_o the_o fact_n of_o our_o noble_a and_o profound_a statesman_n do_v abate_v the_o plague_n of_o the_o late_a conjuncture_n of_o pragmatical_a insolence_n and_o too_o the_o plague_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o papist_n that_o be_v then_o so_o epidemical_a among_o protestant_n and_o do_v in_o effect_n console_n we_o as_o with_o the_o word_n of_o elisha_n viz._n fear_v not_o for_o they_o that_o be_v with_o we_o be_v more_o than_o they_o that_o be_v with_o they_o and_o indeed_o the_o number_v of_o people_n in_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n who_o die_v of_o the_o plague_n be_v not_o more_o necessary_a to_o the_o state_n then_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o soul_n infect_v in_o any_o conjuncture_n with_o destructive_a opinion_n and_o the_o omission_n thereof_o in_o a_o public_a minister_n when_o ever_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o necessary_a as_o at_o that_o time_n it_o be_v will_v appear_v in_o he_o a_o lethargy_n that_o will_v be_v as_o penal_a as_o a_o plague_n to_o a_o kingdom_n that_o useful_a undertake_n of_o his_o lordship_n as_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o his_o very_a great_a ability_n and_o vigilance_n for_o the_o public_a so_o be_v it_o of_o the_o great_a power_n he_o have_v in_o the_o government_n and_o
when_o by_o the_o ill_a poet_n of_o the_o play_n they_o shall_v be_v well_o pay_v to_o line_v the_o pit_n box_n and_o gallery_n to_o cry_v it_o up_o and_o thus_o the_o wit_n and_o philosophy_n of_o a_o great_a lady_n have_v be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o university_n by_o head_n of_o college_n and_o lodge_v there_o in_o library_n on_o the_o expectance_n of_o her_o be_v a_o benefactress_n and_o if_o any_o tecelius_n will_v come_v not_o as_o a_o sturdy_a pardon-pedlar_n as_o before_o to_o require_v money_n the_o which_o thing_n then_o prove_v so_o destructive_a to_o popery_n but_o to_o distribute_v it_o there_o will_v be_v enough_o to_o receive_v it_o and_o among_o the_o indigent_n for_o a_o while_n according_a to_o the_o stylus_fw-la curiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la in_o mr._n colemans_n letter_n of_o march_n the_o 12_o the_o 74_o to_o the_o internuntio_fw-la a_o little_a money_n i_o say_v a_o very_a little_a will_v do_v but_o conclamatum_fw-la est_fw-la as_o to_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n itself_o as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o power_n of_o any_o prince_n when_o man_n come_v to_o be_v buy_v by_o he_o either_o into_o religion_n or_o loyalty_n the_o profusion_n of_o money_n in_o the_o way_n of_o legacy_n by_o any_o one_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o be_v near_o his_o end_n and_o tacitus_n therefore_o say_v it_o not_o improper_o of_o otho_n pecunias_fw-la distribuit_fw-la parce_fw-la nec_fw-la tanquam_fw-la periturus_fw-la and_o thus_o be_v any_o prince_n power_n and_o likewise_o religion_n near_o expire_a when_o once_o he_o come_v to_o buy_v of_o hydra_n head_n as_o mr._n hobbs_n expression_n be_v in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o civil_a war_n i_o know_v that_o it_o have_v be_v the_o common_a practice_n of_o king_n to_o buy_v of_o demagogue_n and_o some_o of_o their_o minister_n have_v perhaps_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v that_o those_o who_o former_o be_v by_o their_o artifices_fw-la able_a to_o make_v the_o disease_n of_o sedition_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n have_v likewise_o the_o great_a skill_n to_o cure_v it_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o any_o doctor_n of_o phsick_n who_o can_v make_v a_o quartan_a ague_n or_o any_o other_o disease_n will_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o great_a repute_n for_o ability_n to_o cure_v it_o it_o be_v perhaps_o more_o easy_a to_o make_v a_o disease_n then_o to_o cure_v it_o as_o composition_n be_v more_o easy_a than_o analysis_n and_o multiplication_n than_o division_n but_o the_o too_o dear_o buy_v experience_n of_o prince_n have_v seal_v the_o probatum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o this_o case_n of_o all_o popular_a wizard_n lose_v their_o power_n of_o charm_a when_o they_o have_v be_v captivate_v with_o royal_a gift_n witch_n according_a to_o the_o vulgar_a receive_v opinion_n be_v unable_a to_o hurt_v when_o they_o be_v in_o jail_n there_o be_v another_o notion_n i_o descant_v large_o on_o before_o and_o that_o overstock_n the_o market_n of_o expectant_n to_o be_v buy_v off_o namely_o that_o all_o man_n natural_o think_v themselves_o equal_o wise_a and_o therefore_o as_o any_o ship_n that_o sail_v fast_a than_o another_o be_v in_o the_o sea-phrase_n say_v to_o wrong_v it_o so_o be_v man_n apt_a to_o think_v themselves_o wrong_v by_o those_o who_o with_o gale_n of_o court_n preferment_n get_v beyond_o they_o moreover_o though_o the_o power_n of_o gold_n be_v still_o what_o it_o always_o be_v namely_o the_o most_o ductile_a thing_n in_o nature_n next_o to_o degenerate_a man_n make_v ductile_a by_o it_o yet_o will_v any_o prince_n be_v impoverish_v who_o buy_v gold_n or_o man_n of_o golden_a ability_n and_o great_a part_n too_o dear_a by_o preferment_n and_o donative_n for_o such_o donee_n will_v be_v continuando-begger_n and_o everlasting_a expectant_n of_o further_a gift_n and_o their_o conversion_n either_o to_o a_o prince_n interest_n of_o state_n or_o religion_n must_v be_v still_o nourish_v by_o the_o same_o thing_n it_o be_v make_v of_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v worthy_a the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n to_o observe_v that_o he_o that_o oppress_v the_o poor_a and_o give_v gift_n to_o the_o rich_a shall_v sure_o come_v to_o want_v and_o most_o certain_o here_o as_o in_o france_n the_o play_n of_o a_o prince_n who_o shall_v use_v that_o game_n to_o win_v soul_n will_v not_o be_v worth_a the_o sorry_a candle_n of_o conversion_n he_o shall_v light_v up_o and_o the_o conversion_n of_o sharper_n will_v be_v of_o such_o who_o will_v soon_o run_v away_o with_o the_o stake_n of_o their_o soul_n they_o have_v lay_v down_o the_o fisherman_n of_o rome_n st._n peter_n pretend_a successor_n can_v neither_o in_o france_n nor_o here_o with_o a_o drag-net_n of_o conversion_n catch_v thousand_o of_o soul_n at_o a_o draught_n as_o st._n peter_n elsewhere_o do_v but_o must_v angle_v for_o every_o convert_n and_o that_o with_o a_o golden_a hook_n of_o which_o the_o value_n be_v more_o considerable_a to_o be_v lose_v then_o be_v that_o of_o the_o fish_n to_o be_v take_v and_o from_o which_o hook_n too_o it_o can_v invisible_o get_v off_o at_o pleasure_n a_o prince_n of_o that_o religion_n will_v have_v more_o occasion_n for_o the_o multiply_a miracle_n of_o the_o loaf_n then_o that_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o multitude_n that_o follow_v his_o converter_n for_o the_o former_a miracle_n will_v be_v apt_a as_o soon_o to_o leave_v he_o as_o they_o do_v our_o saviour_n who_o follow_v he_o on_o that_o account_n the_o observator_fw-la on_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n show_v we_o that_o in_o december_n 1672._o the_o protestant_n in_o paris_n be_v but_o as_o one_o to_o 65_o and_o it_o be_v confess_o true_a on_o all_o hand_n that_o the_o great_a scene_n of_o the_o late_a french_a conversion_n lie_v in_o paris_n and_o even_o there_o the_o present_a ecclesiastical_a policy_n be_v to_o attaque_fw-la t●e_v fleet_n of_o the_o heretic_n rather_o by_o merchantman_n then_o by_o fire_n ship_n i_o have_v never_o hear_v of_o any_o bishop_n survey_v of_o the_o persuasion_n there_o relate_v to_o religion_n but_o in_o the_o index_n of_o mersennus_n his_o comment_n on_o the_o first_o 6_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n i_o find_v it_o say_v atheorum_fw-la numerus_fw-la luteciae_fw-la p._n 671._o and_o athei_fw-la in_o gall●â_fw-la germaniâ_fw-la scotiâ_fw-la poloniâ_fw-la p._n 673._o i_o can_v find_v neither_o of_o those_o place_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o book_n but_o observe_v that_o in_o the_o learned_a friar_n dedicatory_a epistle_n to_o de_fw-fr gondy_n the_o archbishop_n of_o paris_n he_o say_v quibus_fw-la addo_fw-la te_fw-la huius_fw-la vrbis_fw-la &_o orbis_fw-la parisiensis_fw-la ut_fw-la vigilantissimum_fw-la praelatum_fw-la sapientissimè_fw-la constitutum_fw-la esse_fw-la in_fw-la quâ_fw-la sicut_fw-la eximiam_fw-la plurimorum_fw-la virtutem_fw-la atque_fw-la pietatem_fw-la admiramur_fw-la à_fw-la multorum_fw-la etiam_fw-la infesto_fw-la &_o immani_fw-la scelere_fw-la longissimè_fw-la abhorremus_fw-la ad_fw-la cujus_fw-la fastigium_fw-la non_fw-la video_fw-la quid_fw-la adjungi_fw-la possit_fw-la cum_fw-la numen_fw-la omne_fw-la pernegent_n &_o ex_fw-la eorum_fw-la ment_fw-la quibuscum_fw-la familiariter_fw-la degunt_fw-la sensum_fw-la divinitatis_fw-la &_o consensum_fw-la pro_fw-la viribus_fw-la evellunt_fw-la quamobrem_fw-la impii_fw-la suorum_fw-la numerum_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la parisiorum_n luce_fw-fr ingentem_fw-la esse_fw-la aiunt_fw-la atque_fw-la gloriantur_fw-la but_o i_o have_v hear_v some_o more_o conversant_a in_o that_o book_n than_o i_o have_v be_v relate_v how_o that_o great_a master_n of_o number_n do_v make_v the_o atheist_n in_o paris_n to_o be_v 20,000_o and_o it_o be_v just_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o those_o 20000_o miscreant_n be_v wretched_o poor_a for_o that_o as_o aristotle_n have_v long_o since_o well_o observe_v rich_a man_n be_v natural_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o lover_n of_o god_n who_o have_v provide_v so_o well_o for_o they_o they_o will_v present_o seem_v protestant_n to_o qualify_v they_o for_o turn_v papist_n and_o receive_v their_o conversion_n money_n and_o will_v say_v as_o of_o old_a accipe_fw-la pecuniam_fw-la &_o dimitte_v asinum_fw-la and_o instant_o swell_v up_o the_o number_n of_o convert_v in_o paris_n but_o popery_n gain_v nothing_o in_o reality_n by_o those_o fugitive_n convert_v for_o the_o fool_n that_o say_v in_o his_o heart_n there_o be_v no_o god_n will_v be_v easy_o bring_v to_o say_v in_o his_o soul_n there_o be_v no_o soul_n and_o therefore_o say_v i_o caveat_n emptor_n to_o messieurs_n the_o french_a converter_n the_o volatile_a convert_v for_o a_o good_a quantity_n of_o solid_a gold_n sell_v they_o but_o a_o little_a quicksilver_n or_o rather_o smoke_n and_o i_o think_v they_o may_v as_o well_o employ_v their_o money_n in_o convert_v the_o poisoner_n there_o be_v another_o thing_n that_o make_v it_o very_o impolitic_a thus_o to_o throw_v away_o good_a money_n on_o bad_a convert_v and_o that_o be_v what_o have_v be_v observe_v to_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o this_o expenceful_a project_n in_o france_n namely_o that_o it_o
most_o vital_a part_n sincerity_n hereby_o in_o danger_n to_o be_v exterminate_v for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n well_o know_v to_o merchant_n and_o goldsmith_n and_o mint-master_n that_o if_o the_o par_fw-fr as_o they_o call_v it_o or_o exact_a proportion_n between_o gold_n and_o silver_n be_v not_o observe_v in_o any_o country_n either_o the_o gold_n will_v carry_v all_o the_o silver_n out_o of_o it_o or_o the_o silver_n all_o the_o gold_n so_o it_o may_v be_v affirm_v too_o that_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o par_n or_o proportion_n observe_v as_o to_o religion_n and_o profit_n or_o wealth_n either_o the_o religion_n of_o a_o country_n will_v carry_v out_o all_o the_o profit_n or_o proventus_fw-la of_o it_o or_o the_o profit_n will_v carry_v out_o or_o exterminate_v religion_n i_o will_v not_o therefore_o here_o prophecy_n that_o the_o world_n will_v never_o but_o say_v that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v fix_v in_o a_o quiet_a and_o orderly_a state_n and_o free_a from_o the_o importunity_n and_o sedition_n of_o hypocrite_n till_o its_o present_a state_n be_v such_o that_o man_n can_v neither_o get_v nor_o lose_v by_o religion_n and_o till_o the_o world_n recover_v this_o golden_a age_n namely_o that_o gold_n can_v carry_v out_o our_o religion_n and_o people_n we_o with_o hypocrite_n or_o our_o religion_n gold_n the_o world_n will_v be_v but_o a_o great_a disorderly_a house_n and_o scarce_o worth_a any_o man_n be_v monarch_n over_o it_o as_o the_o irish_a call_v their_o last_o rebellion_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o commotion_n so_o some_o have_v happen_v to_o call_v the_o present_a state_n of_o people_n mind_n in_o england_n which_o be_v so_o disorderly_a by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o fermentation_n and_o this_o fermentation_n can_v never_o be_v over_o in_o our_o english_a world_n till_o there_o shall_v here_o be_v neither_o profit_n or_o loss_n by_o religion_n and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v more_o or_o less_o rich_a by_o more_o or_o less_o combine_a with_o any_o party_n to_o cry_v up_o or_o decry_v any_o religionary_a tenet_n or_o proposition_n one_o will_v wonder_v that_o since_o religion_n and_o particular_o the_o christian_n with_o its_o credenda_fw-la do_v crown_v the_o reason_n of_o man_n and_o likewise_o annex_v by_o the_o exuberance_n of_o the_o divine_a benignity_n a_o crown_n of_o glory_n hereafter_o to_o the_o believer_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v for_o their_o belief_n of_o proposition_n not_o contrary_a to_o reason_n and_o wherein_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o propounder_n be_v support_v by_o miracle_n expect_v to_o be_v reward_v in_o this_o world_n a_o humour_n that_o have_v be_v regnant_a even_o among_o christian_n from_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v on_o earth_n to_o the_o present_a age_n and_o a_o humour_n that_o so_o poison_v the_o jew_n of_o old_a that_o they_o think_v it_o not_o tanti_n to_o have_v their_o mind_n free_v from_o the_o slavery_n to_o error_n unless_o the_o messiah_n will_v have_v deliver_v they_o from_o the_o servitude_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o because_o he_o do_v not_o and_o do_v decline_v the_o be_v make_v a_o earthly_a king_n when_o the_o jew_n with_o their_o hosanna_n be_v tempt_v he_o to_o it_o they_o accuse_v he_o capital_o for_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o king_n whenas_o it_o be_v not_o he_o but_o they_o that_o say_v it_o and_o they_o put_v he_o to_o death_n reverà_fw-la because_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n and_o a_o humour_n that_o will_v not_o quit_v the_o stage_n when_o the_o first_o christian_n do_v but_o bold_o still_o face_v the_o world_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o millennium_n have_v be_v so_o much_o applaud_v by_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o christian_n before_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n but_o methinks_v from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o old_a who_o do_v ambire_fw-la martyrium_fw-la to_o such_o a_o degree_n that_o st._n gregory_n say_v let_v god_n number_v our_o martyr_n for_o to_o we_o they_o be_v more_o in_o number_n then_o the_o sand_n as_o if_o the_o work_n have_v be_v too_o hard_o for_o another_o archimedes_n with_o his_o arenarius_n to_o calculate_v the_o number_n of_o the_o martyr_a christian_n and_o one_o author_n account_v that_o except_v on_o the_o first_o of_o january_n there_o be_v no_o day_n for_o which_o record_n do_v not_o allow_v 500_o martyr_n at_o least_o and_o that_o for_o most_o day_n they_o allow_v 900_o and_o who_o do_v ennoble_v the_o christian_a religion_n by_o show_v to_o the_o world_n a_o example_n of_o contempt_n of_o death_n and_o even_o of_o life_n beyond_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n i_o say_v from_o the_o example_n of_o those_o christian_n who_o do_v in_o shoal_n die_v daily_o for_o their_o religion_n we_o may_v if_o they_o please_v be_v teach_v the_o modesty_n not_o to_o expect_v daily_a livelihood_n from_o it_o and_o to_o account_v they_o have_v very_o fair_a play_n if_o they_o do_v not_o lose_v their_o livelihood_n by_o it_o it_o be_v moreover_o observable_a that_o under_o the_o jewish_a theocracy_n providence_n have_v then_o so_o order_v thing_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v get_v or_o lose_v by_o religion_n the_o tribe_n have_v then_o their_o share_n of_o the_o good_a land_n by_o lot_n and_o the_o levite_n only_o have_v that_o affluent_a proportion_n of_o the_o proventus_fw-la of_o the_o other_o tribe_n that_o i_o have_v before_o calculate_v and_o which_o will_v have_v tempt_v many_o of_o the_o other_o tribe_n to_o have_v march_v over_o to_o the_o officium_fw-la and_o beneficium_fw-la of_o the_o priesthood_n have_v not_o god_n their_o monarch_n provide_v against_o that_o by_o the_o confinement_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o priesthood_n to_o one_o tribe_n and_o its_o descendants_n by_o natural_a generation_n but_o as_o to_o the_o notion_n of_o get_v or_o lose_v by_o religion_n i_o shall_v recommend_v to_o your_o lordship_n read_v a_o small_a pamphlet_n print_v in_o two_o sheet_n of_o paper_n in_o folio_n and_o call_v the_o great_a question_n to_o be_v consider_v by_o the_o king_n and_o this_o parliament_n etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n how_o far_o religion_n be_v concern_v in_o policy_n or_o civil_a government_n and_o policy_n in_o religion_n etc._n etc._n on_o the_o disquisition_n of_o which_o a_o sufficient_a basis_n be_v propose_v for_o the_o firm_a settlement_n of_o these_o nation_n to_o the_o most_o probable_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o several_a party_n and_o interest_n therein_o and_o subscribe_v by_o the_o name_n of_o philo-britanicus_n who_o the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v i_o can_v learn_v but_o do_v easy_o find_v by_o the_o book_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a acumen_fw-la of_o thought_n and_o that_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o state_n especial_o relate_v to_o this_o kingdom_n have_v be_v very_o much_o think_v of_o by_o he_o and_o that_o the_o author_n be_v certain_o neither_o papist_n nor_o presbyterian_a and_o so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o favourer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o he_o do_v interminis_fw-la make_fw-mi the_o public_a maintenance_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o have_v be_v the_o bone_n of_o contention_n in_o these_o nation_n p._n 8._o and_o there_o say_v it_o will_v be_v find_v to_o stand_v on_o the_o same_o foot_n with_o abbey_n and_o nunnery_n and_o their_o land_n and_o there_o further_o as_o a_o propounder_n will_v give_v all_o the_o church-land_n to_o the_o crown_n and_o the_o tithe_n to_o the_o people_n and_o then_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n and_o animosity_n on_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n will_v be_v pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n that_o author_n in_o p._n the_o 5_o do_v very_o acute_o observe_v that_o popery_n have_v two_o part_n the_o one_o be_v that_o which_o be_v mere_o religious_a that_o be_v which_o relate_v proper_o to_o religion_n or_o conscience_n and_o which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o they_o such_o as_o the_o believe_v of_o transubstantiation_n purgatory_n adoration_n of_o saint_n and_o image_n yea_o and_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o other_o churchman_n all_o which_o and_o those_o of_o this_o kind_n may_v be_v believe_v and_o profess_v without_o prejudice_n to_o civil_a society_n and_o as_o be_v matter_n relate_v to_o conscience_n come_v not_o proper_o under_o the_o magistrate_n cognizance_n the_o other_o part_n be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n over_o prince_n and_o state_n his_o obsolve_v the_o people_n from_o their_o obedience_n his_o give_v they_o dispensation_n to_o kill_v prince_n and_o destroy_v they_o and_o allow_v they_o not_o to_o keep_v faith_n to_o heretic_n and_o such_o like_a which_o as_o they_o be_v destructive_a to_o government_n be_v true_o no_o part_n of_o religion_n but_o a_o politic_a contrivance_n long_o hatch_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o dependent_n
a_o flame_n of_o zeal_n reflect_v in_o these_o word_n on_o the_o queen_n herself_o our_o posterity_n shall_v rue_v that_o ever_o such_o father_n go_v before_o they_o and_o chronicle_n shall_v report_v this_o contempt_n of_o learning_n among_o the_o plague_n and_o murrain_n and_o other_o punishment_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v leave_v it_o write_v in_o what_o time_n and_o under_o who_o reign_n this_o be_v do_v if_o the_o good_a bishop_n have_v consider_v the_o vastness_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n expense_n before_o mention_v in_o descend_v the_o protestant_a cause_n contra_fw-la gentes_fw-la he_o will_v have_v give_v her_o day_n to_o have_v build_v and_o endow_v some_o church_n and_o to_o those_o expense_n before_o mention_v it_o come_v into_o my_o memory_n here_o to_o add_v what_o i_o then_o forget_v which_o be_v relate_v in_o the_o travel_n of_o mr._n fines_n moryson_n who_o be_v secretary_n then_o to_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o ireland_n in_o her_o reign_n viz._n that_o she_o expend_v in_o 4_o year_n time_n on_o that_o kingdom_n a_o million_o and_o one_o hundred_o ninety_o eight_o thousand_o pound_n sterling_n which_o sum_n so_o lay_v out_o then_o on_o ireland_n will_v seem_v the_o more_o considerable_a when_o by_o a_o late_a report_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o trade_n in_o that_o kingdom_n draw_v by_o sir_n w._n p._n the_o currant_n cash_n of_o that_o kingdom_n be_v make_v to_o be_v but_o three_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o thousand_o pound_n sterling_n but_o this_o by_o the_o way_n and_o to_o resume_v my_o discourse_n of_o our_o clergy_n neither_o get_v nor_o lose_v by_o religion_n i_o shall_v say_v that_o as_o the_o acceptable_a free_a restoration_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o crown_n to_o its_o land_n show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n of_o its_o injure_v the_o balance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n or_o hurt_v religion_n by_o its_o weight_n so_o have_v the_o follow_a acquiescence_n of_o all_o disinterested_n man_n in_o the_o same_o evince_v that_o weight_n to_o be_v no_o gravamen_fw-la in_o a_o pamphlet_n call_v a_o letter_n from_o a_o person_n of_o quality_n to_o his_o friend_n in_o the_o country_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1675_o general_o suppose_v to_o be_v write_v by_o the_o earl_n of_o shaftsbury_n and_o which_o assert_n the_o justice_n of_o the_o declaration_n of_o indulgence_n the_o author_n in_o p._n 5._o speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n become_v the_o head_n of_o the_o protestant_n at_o home_n and_o abroad_o say_v for_o that_o place_n be_v due_a to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v in_o favour_n and_o of_o near_a approach_n to_o the_o most_o powerful_a prince_n of_o that_o religion_n and_o so_o always_o have_v it_o in_o their_o hand_n to_o be_v the_o intercessor_n and_o procurer_n of_o the_o great_a good_a and_o protection_n that_o party_n throughout_o all_o christendom_n can_v receive_v and_o thus_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n may_v become_v not_o only_a alterius_fw-la orbis_fw-la but_o alterius_fw-la religionis_fw-la papa_n and_o all_o this_o addition_n of_o honour_n and_o power_n attain_v without_o the_o least_o loss_n or_o diminution_n of_o the_o church_n it_o not_o be_v intend_v that_o one_o dignity_n or_o preferment_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o any_o but_o those_o that_o be_v strict_o conformable_a the_o natural_a inclination_n in_o all_o ingenious_a man_n not_o to_o cast_v a_o evil_a eye_n on_o the_o church_n revenue_n appear_v in_o mr._n marvel_n be_v second_o part_n of_o the_o rehearsal_n transpose_v p._n 146._o where_o he_o say_v i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o think_v envious_o of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n etc._n etc._n that_o i_o think_v in_o my_o conscience_n it_o be_v all_o but_o too_o little_a and_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o there_o can_v be_v some_o way_n find_v out_o to_o augment_v it_o and_o our_o ingenious_a and_o great_a lord_n chancellor_n bacon_n in_o his_o certain_a consideration_n touch_v the_o pacification_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v with_o great_a equity_n decree_v our_o parliament_n to_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n indebt_v to_o the_o church_n moreover_o that_o gentlemanly_a way_n of_o write_v use_v by_o our_o great_a divine_n in_o a_o late_a conjuncture_n against_o popery_n and_o so_o suitable_a to_o the_o refinement_n of_o wit_n and_o reason_n in_o the_o age_n and_o wherein_o without_o the_o pedantry_n of_o unnecessary_a word_n or_o quotation_n or_o raise_v a_o dust_n out_o of_o the_o learned_a rubbish_n of_o the_o schoolman_n they_o general_o with_o a_o manly_a style_n and_o clear_a reason_n and_o skill_n at_o that_o weapon_n get_v the_o sword_n out_o of_o their_o enemy_n hand_n by_o the_o argumentum_fw-la ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la and_o show_v we_o that_o popery_n and_o implicit_a faith_n be_v not_o calculate_v for_o the_o meridian_n of_o this_o age_n have_v i_o think_v make_v all_o ingenious_a man_n conformist_n in_o this_o opinion_n that_o if_o their_o genius_n have_v be_v cramp_v with_o the_o res_fw-la angu_v a_o domi_fw-la their_o thought_n have_v not_o in_o their_o book_n appear_v so_o great_a and_o therefore_o i_o hope_v that_o all_o the_o well_o write_v work_n of_o their_o hand_n and_o seasonable_a discourse_n against_o popery_n at_o that_o time_n when_o it_o be_v ready_a to_o curse_v we_o and_o to_o rise_v up_o against_o our_o religion_n will_v make_v all_o think_v protestant_n to_o say_v amen_o to_o that_o prayer_n of_o moses_n bless_v o_o lord_n levi_n be_v substance_n accept_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n smite_v through_o the_o loin_n of_o they_o that_o hate_v he_o that_o they_o rise_v not_o again_o it_o will_v i_o doubt_v not_o appear_v to_o rational_a and_o think_v man_n that_o our_o little_a interlope_a church_n or_o congregation_n that_o set_v up_o with_o their_o precarious_a power_n and_o small_a stock_n of_o learning_n or_o revenue_n will_v no_o more_o be_v able_a to_o break_v the_o great_a compact_a body_n of_o the_o papal_a church_n that_o have_v the_o monopoly_n of_o the_o religion-trade_n in_o so_o many_o part_n of_o the_o world_n than_o a_o few_o interlope_a merchantman_n to_o break_v the_o opulent_a dutch_a east-india_n company_n who_o have_v engross_v so_o much_o of_o the_o spice_n of_o the_o world_n that_o sometime_o they_o cause_v several_a ship_n loading_n of_o they_o to_o be_v at_o once_o consume_v as_o know_v what_o quantity_n and_o no_o more_o will_v be_v useful_a to_o the_o world._n and_o somewhat_o like_o that_o thing_n too_o the_o polity_n of_o the_o anglican_n church_n in_o harry_n the_o 8_o th_n time_n perform_v while_o it_o drive_v a_o religion-trade_n with_o rome_n and_o yet_o consume_v a_o great_a quantity_n of_o its_o superfluous_a merchandise_n and_o the_o same_o thing_n have_v be_v do_v by_o our_o national_a church_n as_o to_o remain_v part_n of_o the_o romish_a superstition_n in_o succeed_a time_n and_o indeed_o superstition_n which_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o nimiety_n of_o religion_n be_v so_o incident_a to_o humane_a nature_n and_o be_v so_o destructive_a to_o the_o polity_n of_o church_n and_o the_o substantial_a commerce_n of_o nation_n that_o it_o be_v worthy_a the_o power_n and_o care_n of_o nation_n to_o consume_v it_o and_o consider_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v still_o value_v itself_o for_o be_v terribilis_fw-la sicut_fw-la castrorum_fw-la acies_fw-la ordinata_fw-la it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n to_o contend_v with_o such_o a_o regular_a church_n militant_a without_o our_o have_v of_o general_a officer_n and_o as_o exact_v a_o conduct_n or_o to_o think_v to_o have_v such_o officer_n without_o honourable_a maintenance_n from_o the_o public_a for_o none_o do_v go_v a_o warfare_n at_o any_o time_n at_o his_o own_o charge_n when_o i_o think_v how_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n while_o a_o cloud_n of_o persecution_n be_v always_o over_o the_o head_n of_o the_o christian_n that_o yet_o they_o strain_v themselves_o so_o much_o in_o contribution_n for_o the_o pastorage_n of_o their_o soul_n that_o all_o the_o pastor_n than_o be_v so_o far_o from_o lose_v by_o religion_n that_o some_o be_v tempt_v to_o that_o office_n for_o filthy_a lucre_n as_o we_o may_v see_v out_o of_o peter_n ep._n 1._o ch_n 5._o vers._n 2._o though_o yet_o too_o so_o little_a comparative_o be_v to_o be_v gain_v by_o all_o thereby_o that_o other_o probable_o undertake_v that_o office_n by_o constraint_n as_o the_o same_o place_n intimate_v and_o that_o therein_o the_o apostolic_a prudence_n be_v conspicuous_a in_o order_v it_o upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n that_o the_o generality_n of_o pastor_n than_o shall_v not_o get_v or_o lose_v by_o religion_n i_o may_v reasonable_o conclude_v that_o we_o who_o live_v in_o the_o flourish_a and_o prosperous_a state_n of_o christianity_n aught_o to_o provide_v that_o the_o mean_a pastor_n of_o soul_n in_o england_n may_v live_v competent_o and_o decent_o by_o that_o
to_o believe_v it_o will_v ever_o suffer_v such_o real_a madness_n and_o real_a danger_n as_o former_o from_o supposition_n and_o fiction_n not_o of_o law_n but_o of_o injury_n and_o when_o some_o injurious_a demagogue_n do_v often_o acquire_v both_o popular_a air_n and_o bread_n by_o their_o but_o seem_v to_o suppose_v what_o they_o seduce_v the_o people_n real_o to_o do_v and_o to_o be_v real_o thereby_o impoverish_v when_o i_o think_v how_o some_o man_n by_o false_a alarm_n of_o supposition_n will_v for_o the_o lengthen_v their_o interest_n lengthen_v the_o fear_n of_o any_o person_n and_o among_o mortal_a man_n make_v the_o danger_n of_o plot_n immortal_a i_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o it_o be_v not_o very_o long_o ago_o that_o a_o foreigner_n who_o be_v physician_n to_o king_n charles_n the_o first_o i_o mean_v sir_n theodore_n mayerne_n occasion_v a_o universal_a outcry_n of_o the_o disease_n of_o the_o spleen_n here_o and_o be_v observe_v in_o many_o case_n where_o the_o disease_n proceed_v from_o the_o foulness_n of_o the_o stomach_n or_o other_o cause_n yet_o to_o attribute_v it_o to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o body_n which_o though_o all_o animal_n have_v yet_o most_o if_o not_o all_o may_v live_v without_o i_o mean_v the_o spleen_n but_o however_o he_o get_v his_o live_v thereby_o and_o so_o plentiful_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o he_o as_o it_o be_v make_v the_o spleen_n and_o the_o spleen_n make_v he_o and_o thus_o do_v a_o spleen_n of_o some_o popish_a sham-plot_n and_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o fear_n and_o danger_n from_o a_o true_a one_o make_v some_o person_n perhaps_o who_o make_v the_o former_a and_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o latter_a and_o such_o state_n empyricks_n will_v be_v as_o much_o impoverish_v by_o the_o utter_a abolish_n of_o the_o same_o as_o some_o of_o our_o great_a merchant_n who_o trade_n in_o company_n and_o with_o convoy_n will_v be_v if_o there_o be_v no_o argeer_n but_o as_o the_o swell_a of_o the_o spleen_n prove_v the_o emaciate_a of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o body_n so_o have_v the_o swell_a spleen_n of_o the_o popish-plot_n particular_o not_o more_o enrich_v some_o merchant_n that_o trade_a therein_o than_o it_o have_v impoverish_v the_o kingdom_n in_o general_n and_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o a_o tax_n of_o a_o million_o of_o money_n raise_v in_o england_n in_o the_o way_n before_o mention_v will_v not_o have_v be_v universal_o so_o heavy_a a_o burden_n as_o the_o popish-plot_n in_o its_o effect_n and_o consequence_n have_v be_v but_o what_o by_o the_o bravery_n of_o the_o english_a genius_n to_o which_o as_o be_v say_v the_o continuance_n of_o any_o sort_n of_o fear_n be_v unnatural_a and_o despair_v which_o general_o grow_v from_o sloth_n and_o cowardice_n appear_v so_o dull_a a_o thing_n humane_a nature_n be_v apt_a easy_a to_o descend_v into_o it_o than_o to_o ascend_v by_o presumption_n and_o what_o by_o people_n be_v convince_v of_o the_o smallness_n of_o the_o papist_n number_n here_o comparative_o and_o of_o the_o ridiculousness_n of_o the_o rumour_v greatness_n thereof_o in_o particular_a place_n as_o for_o example_n of_o there_o be_v 60,000_o papist_n in_o st._n martin_n parish_n where_o there_o die_v ordinary_o about_o 2000_o in_o a_o year_n there_o can_v be_v judge_v to_o live_v 60000_o soul_n of_o man_n woman_n and_o child_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o 1_o in_o 30_o die_v each_o year_n and_o what_o by_o the_o late_a great_a divulsion_n of_o the_o double_a bottom_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o jesuit_n appear_v by_o his_o decree_n of_o march_n the_o 2_o d_o before_o mention_v which_o make_v all_o think_a people_n as_o much_o to_o expect_v its_o shipwreck_n as_o do_v the_o throng_n of_o the_o plebs_fw-la resort_v to_o the_o shore_n in_o tempest_n expect_v the_o ruin_n of_o navigate_a vessel_n and_o to_o look_v on_o papism_n as_o say_v in_o effect_n to_o jesutisme_n nec_fw-la tecum_fw-la nec_fw-la sine_fw-la te_fw-la and_o what_o by_o the_o notion_n so_o much_o in_o vogue_n and_o so_o likely_a to_o be_v more_o that_o it_o be_v as_o improper_a to_o call_v some_o of_o the_o tenet_n of_o popery_n by_o the_o name_n of_o religion_n as_o it_o will_v be_v profess_o to_o miscall_a any_o thing_n obvious_a as_o for_o example_n to_o call_v music_n the_o art_n of_o rhetoric_n or_o grammar_n logic_n or_o to_o call_v astronomy_n or_o dyall_n by_o survey_v or_o gawge_v and_o that_o it_o be_v only_a that_o that_o be_v religion_n indeed_o that_o be_v to_o be_v honour_v according_a to_o that_o expression_n in_o the_o scripture_n honour_n widow_n that_o be_v widow_n indeed_o and_o what_o by_o the_o urge_v fate_n of_o christendom_n now_o so_o loud_o as_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o thunder_n repeat_v it_o to_o we_o that_o this_o nation_n must_v either_o now_o be_v quiet_a or_o that_o the_o world_n abroad_o can_v never_o be_v so_o and_o that_o the_o hand_n of_o this_o realm_n must_v be_v steady_a if_o ever_o it_o will_v keep_v the_o balance_n of_o christendom_n so_o and_o what_o by_o the_o nation_n have_v outlive_v all_o the_o malignant_a symptom_n of_o the_o plague_n of_o its_o fear_n i_o think_v on_o the_o whole_a matter_n we_o may_v without_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o prophecy_n and_o only_o from_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n presage_v that_o the_o excessive_a fear_n of_o popery_n as_o well_o as_o its_o danger_n will_v here_o be_v exterminate_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o former_a as_o well_o as_o late_a experience_n of_o the_o papist_n hear_v concern_v the_o inconvenience_n of_o their_o artifice_n of_o make_v or_o increase_v dissension_n in_o the_o kingdom_n the_o divide_v of_o which_o by_o they_o as_o well_o as_o other_o religion-trader_n have_v prejudice_v it_o more_o than_o the_o so_o much_o talk_v of_o division_n of_o the_o fleet_n will_v in_o the_o present_a conjuncture_n of_o affair_n incline_v the_o sober_a party_n of_o they_o to_o join_v with_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n in_o be_v sharp_a abhorrer_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n for_o they_o can_v hardly_o go_v any_o where_o now_o in_o the_o land_n without_o see_v a_o cain_n mark_n set_v on_o those_o who_o cause_n division_n or_o still_o drive_v the_o old_a trade_n that_o the_o bohemian_a nobleman_n andrea_n ab_fw-la haber_v field_n in_o his_o detection_n of_o the_o popish_a practice_n mention_n that_o sir_n toby_n mathews_n maxwel_n and_o read_v those_o jesuited_a political_a interloper_n do_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o royal_a martyr_n namely_o to_o misrepresent_v the_o court_n and_o the_o puritan_n to_o one_o another_o and_o to_o endeavour_v to_o persuade_v malcontented_n people_n that_o that_o pious_a prince_n design_v their_o slavery_n a_o thing_n so_o false_a that_o he_o be_v reverâ_fw-la their_o martyr_n as_o he_o with_o great_a justice_n say_v of_o himself_o on_o the_o scaffold_n and_o which_o great_a name_n he_o may_v challenge_v even_o on_o the_o account_n of_o natural_a justice_n if_o there_o have_v be_v nothing_o relate_v to_o reveal_v religion_n in_o the_o case_n to_o entitle_v he_o to_o it_o for_o st._n john_n the_o baptist_n be_v a_o martyr_n and_o yet_o die_v for_o no_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith._n it_o may_v be_v just_o say_v that_o our_o monarch_n fall_v a_o martyr_n for_o the_o people_n by_o not_o violate_v the_o lex_fw-la terrae_fw-la that_o he_o be_v by_o his_o oath_n bind_v to_o maintain_v and_o by_o his_o therefore_o not_o own_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o vile_a court_n over_o he_o and_o moreover_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n oblige_v he_o indispensable_o to_o do_v nothing_o that_o by_o his_o exemplary_a abdicate_v any_o right_n inherent_a in_o the_o crown_n will_v have_v incapacitate_v he_o and_o his_o successor_n from_o protect_v their_o liege-people_n in_o their_o inheritance_n of_o the_o law_n and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n certain_a that_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v as_o much_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o be_v the_o law_n positive_a or_o his_o write_a word_n and_o indeed_o as_o gataker_n say_v well_o in_o his_o book_n of_o lot_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n write_v in_o man_n heart_n be_v the_o very_a same_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v yet_o undefaced_a with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o word_n it_o may_v be_v with_o reason_n aver_v that_o any_o member_n of_o mankind_n whether_o prince_n or_o subject_a who_o be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o any_o court_n of_o justice_n or_o arm_a force_n or_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o russian_n or_o bravo_n on_o the_o account_n of_o his_o discharge_n his_o obligation_n to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n may_v enter_v his_o just_a claim_n to_o the_o name_n of_o martyrdom_n i_o have_v therefore_o suppose_v that_o godfrey_n lose_v his_o life_n by_o vile_a
plot_n that_o cause_v the_o vote_n of_o its_o reality_n to_o pass_v with_o a_o nemine_fw-la contradicente_fw-la there_o what_o fautor_n of_o false_a testimony_n the_o jesuit_n principle_n be_v i_o have_v show_v and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n afford_v my_o testimony_n to_o the_o heroic_a virtue_n of_o many_o other_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o think_v it_o great_a and_o pedantical_a kind_n of_o injustice_n to_o charge_v all_o lay-papists_a with_o a_o readiness_n to_o obey_v their_o priest_n command_v by_o be_v ministerial_a in_o cruelty_n to_o protestant_n i_o remember_v i_o have_v read_v it_o in_o a_o print_a speech_n of_o sir_n aud_o mervin_n the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o in_o ireland_n a_o speech_n glow_v with_o anger_n enough_o against_o the_o papist_n where_o yet_o it_o be_v say_v p._n 24._o in_o the_o barony_n of_o enishoan_n there_o be_v above_o two_o thousand_o irish_a papist_n can_v bring_v hundred_o of_o protestant_n to_o witness_v their_o civil_a demeanour_n through_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o distemper_n in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o as_o the_o bloody_a sect_n of_o the_o zealot_n grow_v at_o last_o so_o odious_a among_o the_o jew_n and_o another_o order_n of_o such_o sicarii_fw-la among_o the_o turk_n so_o i_o suppose_v that_o of_o the_o jesuit_n will_v natural_o do_v among_o christian_n and_o the_o jesuit_n write_v de_fw-fr haeretico_fw-la assassinando_n grow_v obsolete_a and_o especial_o in_o place_n where_o the_o scene_n of_o mr._n coleman_n northern_a heresy_n lie_v it_o be_v a_o old_a observation_n that_o northern_a country_n be_v more_o hospitable_a and_o less_o cruel_a than_o southern_a in_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o dawn_n of_o learning_n usher_v in_o that_o of_o the_o reformation_n it_o present_o grow_v odious_a to_o the_o first-rate_n ingeniosi_fw-la to_o draw_v heretic_n blood_n our_o famous_a countryman_n tunstal_v bishop_n of_o durham_n who_o have_v imbibe_v so_o much_o of_o the_o mathematical_a science_n that_o vossus_fw-la de_fw-la scientiis_fw-la mathematicis_fw-la say_v p._n 40._o ante_fw-la annos_fw-la centum_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la excurrit_fw-la magnâ_fw-la cum_fw-la laud_fw-la praecipue_fw-la ob_fw-la sermonem_fw-la purum_fw-la &_o perspicuum_fw-la de_fw-la arte_fw-la supputandi_fw-la egit_fw-la cutbertus_fw-la tunstallus_fw-la and_o who_o book_n of_o arithmetic_n write_v with_o such_o pure_a latinity_n be_v common_o extant_a be_v of_o such_o a_o temper_n that_o as_o fuller_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o church_n history_n the_o bishopric_n of_o durham_n have_v halcyon_n day_n of_o peace_n and_o quiet_a under_o god_n and_o good_a cuthbert_n tunstal_v the_o bishop_n thereof_o sir_n thomas_n moor_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v write_v on_o his_o tomb_n that_o he_o be_v furibus_fw-la haereticisque_fw-la molestus_fw-la yet_o in_o his_o utopia_n roll_v neither_o of_o they_o in_o blood_n and_o in_o his_o chapter_n there_o concern_v the_o religion_n in_o utopia_n he_o make_v divers_a kind_n of_o religion_n not_o only_o in_o sundry_a part_n of_o the_o island_n but_o also_o in_o divers_a place_n of_o every_o city_n some_o worship_v the_o sun_n and_o some_o the_o moon_n and_o some_o other_o of_o the_o planet_n and_o the_o wise_a of_o they_o worship_v god_n almighty_a and_o some_o embrace_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n at_o first_o without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o priesthood_n and_o mind_v to_o choose_v a_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o without_o send_v out_o of_o their_o own_o country_n for_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n and_o make_v they_o affright_v none_o to_o or_o from_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o that_o that_o book_n of_o he_o may_v rather_o be_v think_v a_o original_a of_o his_o mind_n than_o a_o mere_a copy_n of_o his_o countenance_n we_o have_v the_o suffrage_n of_o dr._n danne_v in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o have_v say_v that_o sir_n thomas_n moor_n be_v a_o man_n of_o the_o most_o tender_a and_o delicate_a conscience_n that_o the_o world_n have_v see_v since_o st._n austin_n and_o cite_v of_o his_o utopia_n l_o 2._o c._n de_fw-fr seruis_fw-la he_o say_v he_o be_v not_o likely_a to_o write_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o jest_n mischievous_o interpretable_a and_o if_o a_o man_n will_v quote_v thing_n of_o erasmus_n his_o great_a humanity_n to_o all_o humane_a kind_n he_o must_v quote_v almost_o his_o whole_a work_n but_o how_o far_o his_o genius_n lead_v he_o from_o any_o brutal_a freity_n towards_o heretic_n your_o lordship_n will_v see_v by_o this_o passage_n in_o his_o supput_n error_n bedae_fw-la dic_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la audierit_fw-la sit_fw-la tibi_fw-la velut_fw-la ethnicus_fw-la &_o publicanus_fw-la quasi_fw-la hic_fw-la ulla_fw-la sit_fw-la incendii_fw-la mentio_fw-la rursus_fw-la apostolum_n post_fw-la unam_fw-la &_o alteram_fw-la correptionem_fw-la devita_fw-la an_fw-mi devitare_fw-la est_fw-la in_o ignem_fw-la conjicere_fw-la iterum_fw-la auferte_fw-la malum_fw-la ex_fw-la vobis_fw-la ipsis_fw-la num_fw-la auferte_fw-la valet_fw-la idem_fw-la quod_fw-la occidere_fw-la he_o have_v say_v before_o quas_fw-la autem_fw-la mihi_fw-la narrat_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la leges_fw-la an_fw-mi leges_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sunt_fw-la quenquam_fw-la ultricibus_fw-la tradere_fw-la flammis_fw-la and_o afterward_o at_o episcoporum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la quidem_fw-la in_o ipsis_fw-la est_fw-la docere_fw-la corrigere_fw-la mederi_fw-la qualis_fw-la autem_fw-la est_fw-la &_o episcopus_fw-la qui_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la possit_fw-la quam_fw-la vincire_fw-la torquere_fw-la flammis_fw-la tradere_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la qui_fw-la tractant_fw-la hoc_fw-la negotium_fw-la tale_n essent_fw-la qualem_fw-la se_fw-la declarat_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la libello_fw-la beda_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la si_fw-la tantum_fw-la spirarent_fw-la odii_fw-la si_fw-la tantum_fw-la haberent_fw-la impudentiae_fw-la tam_fw-la impotens_fw-la calumniandi_fw-la studium_fw-la tam_fw-la corruptum_fw-la judicium_fw-la ut_fw-la videatur_fw-la citius_fw-la decem_fw-la propulsurus_fw-la in_o haeresim_fw-la quam_fw-la unum_fw-la revocaturus_fw-la nun_n belle_fw-fr ageretur_fw-la cum_fw-la delatis_fw-la nisi_fw-la fallor_fw-la primum_fw-la designare_fw-la cui_fw-la male_a vellet_fw-la eum_fw-la curaret_fw-la clam_fw-la rapiendum_fw-la in_o carcerem_fw-la ibi_fw-la quaererentur_fw-la articuli_fw-la tale_n quales_fw-la plurimos_fw-la objicit_fw-la mihi_fw-la partim_fw-la falsos_fw-la partim_fw-la depravatos_fw-la disputatio_fw-la si_fw-la qua_fw-la fieret_fw-la perageretur_fw-la in_o carcere_fw-la si_fw-la quidhisceret_fw-la contrà_fw-la mox_fw-la accersitis_fw-la tribus_fw-la dilectis_fw-la monachis_fw-la pronunciaretur_fw-la sententia_fw-la diffinitiva_fw-la quod_fw-la reliquum_fw-la est_fw-la perageret_fw-la carnifex_fw-la vbi_fw-la theologus_fw-la defert_fw-la rapit_fw-la in_o carcerem_fw-la urget_fw-la accusationem_fw-la damnatum_fw-la tradit_fw-la judici_fw-la profano_fw-la judex_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la suâ_fw-la cognition_n sed_fw-la ex_fw-la theologi_fw-la praejudicio_fw-la tradit_fw-la flammis_fw-la our_o martyrologist_n mr._n fox_n can_v not_o have_v express_v more_o anger_n against_o a_o bishop_n bonner_n than_o erasmus_n a_o papist_n have_v here_o against_o popish_a persecute_v prelate_n have_v erasmus_n then_o know_v of_o one_o practice_n enjoin_v constant_o by_o the_o canon_n to_o popish_a bishop_n at_o their_o condemn_v of_o heretic_n to_o salve_v the_o phoenomena_fw-la of_o their_o irregularity_n by_o intermeddle_v in_o causâ_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la and_o about_o which_o your_o lordship_n show_v i_o once_o some_o remarkable_a quotation_n in_o a_o letter_n write_v to_o you_o by_o the_o lord_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n and_o of_o which_o quotation_n i_o beg_v a_o copy_n from_o you_o by_o the_o first_o opportunity_n namely_o efficaciter_fw-la &_o excorde_n to_o intercede_v with_o the_o secular_a judge_n to_o who_o they_o deliver_v the_o heretic_n over_o to_o bring_v no_o pain_n of_o death_n or_o mutilation_n of_o member_n to_o he_o i_o believe_v the_o great_a wit_n of_o erasmus_n will_v after_o his_o ingenious_a account_n aforesaid_a of_o the_o tragedy_n of_o the_o condemn_a heretic_n pleasant_o entertain_v himself_o and_o posterity_n with_o the_o wanton_a cruelty_n of_o that_o farce_n that_o ensue_v it_o and_o let_v we_o see_v how_o the_o popish_a bishop_n then_o use_v the_o speech_n familiar_a to_o some_o tooth_n drawer_n just_a before_o their_o operation_n i_o will_v do_v you_o no_o harm_n and_o put_v you_o to_o little_a or_o no_o pain_n do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n make_v use_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n but_o as_o the_o linen_n clout_n or_o silk_n to_o wrap_v and_o hide_v the_o torment_a pincer_n of_o holy-church_n in_o but_o to_o return_v to_o my_o observation_n of_o all_o popish_a canonist_n themselves_o not_o allow_v that_o wanton_a mode_n of_o the_o cruel_a usage_n and_o intercede_v with_o the_o magistrate_n efficaciter_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la cord_n to_o do_v the_o condemn_a heretic_n no_o harm_n i_o think_v the_o same_o quotation_n mention_v how_o the_o famous_a panormitan_n do_v brand_v the_o hypocrisy_n of_o that_o practice_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v very_o abominable_a that_o heretic_n neither_o live_v nor_o die_v can_v be_v free_a from_o suffer_v shamme_n by_o some_o papist_n but_o again_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n it_o be_v with_o justice_n to_o be_v say_v that_o
swarm_a of_o the_o jesuit_n then_o in_o england_n and_o transform_v themselves_o into_o several_a shape_n among_o the_o divide_a sect_n here_o and_o say_v what_o liberty_n the_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n take_v how_o far_o they_o prevail_v on_o the_o people_n what_o countenance_n they_o receive_v from_o this_o government_n be_v apparent_a enough_o by_o not_o proceed_v against_o they_o in_o justice_n as_o if_o no_o law_n be_v in_o force_n for_o their_o punishment_n your_o private_a negotiation_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o your_o promise_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o you_o can_v establish_v your_o own_o greatness_n you_o will_v protect_v the_o catholic_n and_o the_o insinuation_n that_o you_o will_v countenance_v they_o much_o further_o be_v sufficient_o know_v and_o understand_v and_o of_o their_o dependence_n upon_o and_o devotion_n to_o you_o there_o need_v no_o evidence_n beyond_o the_o book_n late_o write_v by_o mr._n white_n a_o romish_a priest_n and_o dedicate_v to_o your_o favourite_n sir_n kenelm_n digby_n entitle_v the_o ground_n of_o obedience_n and_o government_n in_o which_o he_o justify_v all_o the_o ground_n and_o maxim_n in_o your_o declaration_n and_o determine_v positive_o that_o you_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o perform_v any_o promise_n or_o observe_v any_o oath_n that_o you_o have_v take_v if_o you_o know_v that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o people_n that_o you_o break_v it_o albeit_o they_o foresee_v all_o that_o you_o now_o see_v do_v therefore_o bind_v you_o by_o oath_n not_o to_o do_v it_o and_o that_o you_o offend_v both_o against_o your_o oath_n and_o fidelity_n to_o the_o people_n if_o you_o maintain_v those_o limitation_n you_o 〈◊〉_d swear_v to_o and_o sure_a what_o you_o do_v must_v be_v support_v by_o such_o casuist_n and_o afterward_o speak_v how_o cromwell_n in_o distrust_n of_o the_o whole_a english_a nation_n be_v treat_v to_o bring_v over_o a_o body_n of_o swiss_n to_o serve_v he_o as_o the_o janissary_n do_v the_o turk_n the_o declaration_n here_o refer_v to_o be_v cromwel_n declaration_n of_o october_n 31_o anno_fw-la 1655_o and_o which_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v word_v by_o his_o lord_n keeper_n fiennes_n wherein_o all_o the_o measure_n of_o justice_n towards_o the_o cavalier_n and_o particular_o the_o public_a faith_n of_o the_o parliament_n for_o the_o punctual_a and_o exact_a performance_n of_o article_n with_o they_o after_o the_o vast_a gain_n that_o have_v accrue_v to_o the_o parliament_n by_o their_o composition_n and_o a_o act_n of_o grace_n and_o oblivion_n afterward_o grant_v to_o the_o royal_a party_n be_v avowed_o break_v and_o in_o p._n 36._o of_o that_o declaration_n it_o be_v say_v if_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n be_v tie_v up_o to_o the_o ordinary_a rule_n and_o have_v not_o liberty_n to_o proceed_v upon_o the_o illustration_n of_o reason_n against_o those_o who_o be_v continual_o suspect_v there_o will_v be_v want_v in_o such_o a_o state_n the_o mean_n of_o common_a safety_n etc._n etc._n and_o before_o in_o p._n 12_o and_o 13._o the_o jesuit_n be_v outdo_v as_o to_o the_o keep_n of_o no_o faith_n with_o heretic_n by_o the_o assert_v in_o effect_n in_o general_n that_o nulla_fw-la fides_fw-la est_fw-la servanda_fw-la and_o the_o humour_n of_o pope_n paul_n the_o four_o be_v repeat_v who_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n tell_v we_o declare_v it_o in_o the_o consistory_n that_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o say_v the_o pope_n can_v bind_v himself_o and_o we_o be_v assure_v out_o of_o mr._n peter_n walsh_n his_o history_n and_o vindication_n of_o the_o irish_a remonstrance_n that_o edmund_n reilly_n the_o titular_a popish_a primate_n of_o ireland_n who_o at_o a_o public_a dinner_n boast_v that_o he_o never_o have_v be_v friend_n or_o well_o wisher_n to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o two_o brother_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o ormond_n do_v yet_o write_v precept_n under_o his_o seal_n to_o all_o the_o province_n of_o armagh_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o health_n establishment_n and_o prosperity_n of_o cromwell_n protector_n and_o his_o government_n more_o need_v not_o be_v say_v of_o the_o danger_n of_o popery_n and_o arbitrary_a power_n to_o the_o nation_n if_o god_n and_o man_n have_v not_o hinder_v lambert_n usurpation_n over_o it_o i_o have_v mention_v how_o some_o of_o the_o plot-winesses_a have_v depose_v somewhat_o thereof_o and_o some_o of_o his_o countryman_n have_v in_o discourse_n affirm_v his_o have_v be_v there_o a_o fautor_n of_o papist_n and_o myself_o observe_v it_o to_o a_o worthy_a gentleman_n of_o yorkshire_n that_o one_o of_o the_o popish_a lord_n in_o the_o tower_n do_v in_o february_n 1662._o pass_v a_o grant_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o several_a manor_n in_o yorkshire_n forfeit_v by_o the_o attainder_n of_o john_n lambert_n he_o aver_v to_o i_o that_o lambert_n son_n enjoy_v that_o estate_n at_o this_o day_n it_o have_v be_v just_a for_o the_o almighty_a to_o have_v punish_v the_o extravagance_n of_o the_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n that_o reign_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o royal_a martyr_n about_o his_o not_o be_v a_o protestant_n ah_o character_n of_o religion_n he_o have_v constant_o own_a in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o world_n both_o by_o his_o public_a devotion_n and_o alliance_n and_o particular_o that_o with_o holland_n which_o chief_o his_o zeal_n for_o that_o religion_n make_v he_o to_o ensure_v by_o the_o marriage_n of_o his_o daughter_n with_o the_o prince_n of_o orange_n in_o the_o time_n that_o the_o war_n between_o the_o crown_n of_o spain_n and_o the_o state_n be_v depend_v by_o permit_v a_o private_a gentleman_n who_o name_n perhaps_o have_v not_o come_v to_o public_a knowledge_n but_o for_o the_o figure_n he_o make_v in_o illegal_a arm_n so_o far_o to_o march_v with_o his_o religion_n undiscerned_a through_o the_o quarter_n of_o all_o the_o gather_v church_n and_o the_o classical_a one_o too_o that_o he_o deceive_v in_o that_o point_n so_o many_o that_o call_v themselves_o the_o very_a elect_n and_o who_o be_v as_o well_o verse_v in_o the_o business_n of_o all_o religion_n as_o jew_n be_v in_o coin_n and_o in_o the_o way_n of_o adulterate_v they_o and_o who_o after_o that_o religion_n have_v always_o be_v the_o staple_n commodity_n of_o england_n as_o much_o as_o wool_n do_v almost_o nothing_o else_o but_o weave_v and_o dye_v and_o tenter_n the_o same_o with_o all_o subtlety_n of_o art_n possible_a to_o they_o and_o as_o the_o israelite_n march_v out_o of_o egypt_n without_o the_o farewell_n of_o a_o dog_n bark_v at_o they_o we_o be_v then_o near_o the_o point_n of_o be_v drive_v back_o to_o egypt_n to_o civil_a and_o spiritual_a slavery_n without_o the_o least_o ●arm_n give_v we_o by_o any_o of_o our_o best_a and_o deep_o mouth_v dog_n against_o popery_n but_o the_o extreme_a danger_n to_o protestancy_n from_o that_o intend_a usurpation_n have_v be_v long_o since_o over_o nor_o do_v i_o expect_v that_o any_o fatality_n of_o that_o kind_n can_v ever_o happen_v to_o it_o from_o any_o prince_n of_o the_o right_a line_n how_o much_o a_o papist_n soever_o he_o may_v be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o one_o who_o be_v swath_v with_o the_o law_n in_o his_o cradle_n and_o will_v be_v circumscribe_v with_o they_o in_o his_o crown_n according_a to_o that_o great_a severe_a truth_n i_o observe_v before_o of_o the_o fate_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n after_o they_o have_v make_v a_o defection_n from_o the_o line_n of_o david_n that_o they_o be_v punish_v with_o a_o succession_n of_o 10_o king_n and_o not_o one_o one_o good_a one_o in_o the_o whole_a pack_n and_o their_o fall_n at_o last_o as_o a_o prey_n to_o foreigner_n it_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o england_n just_o to_o suffer_v what_o have_v be_v here_o describe_v from_o various_a government_n and_o governor_n for_o its_o defection_n from_o the_o royal_a line_n and_o the_o experience_n of_o our_o disastrous_a past_a calamity_n must_v needs_o convince_v all_o man_n of_o serious_a thought_n and_o sense_n that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o usurper_n how_o true_a a_o religion_n soever_o he_o may_v own_o but_o will_v be_v false_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o that_o particular_o by_o dive_v it_o and_o thereby_o as_o much_o depretiate_v it_o in_o the_o view_n of_o all_o christendom_n as_o a_o great_a diamond_n will_v be_v if_o cut_v in_o two_o for_o though_o diamond_n or_o pearl_n be_v equal_a and_o like_a in_o their_o figure_n water_n colour_n and_o evenness_n yet_o if_o they_o differ_v in_o their_o weight_n and_o magnitude_n those_o be_v the_o root_n of_o their_o price_n and_o a_o diamond_n of_o decuple_n weight_n be_v of_o centuple_a value_n i_o therefore_o think_v the_o king_n loyal_a long_a parliament_n do_v consult_v the_o public_a security_n when_o in_o the_o great_a act_n of_o the_o test_n they_o enjoin_v
verò_fw-la muneribus_fw-la honorat_fw-la amplissimis_fw-la &_o augustissimis_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la regno_fw-la &_o alibi_fw-la tum_fw-la bello_fw-la tum_fw-la pace_fw-la etc._n etc._n quartò_fw-la consilium_fw-la suum_fw-la è_fw-la puris_fw-la putis_fw-la haereticis_fw-la stabilit_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o that_o after_o he_o have_v with_o st._n peter_n deny_v his_o lord_n the_o follower_n of_o st._n peter_n pretend_a successor_n call_v he_o in_o effect_n a_o galilean_a and_o say_v that_o the_o speech_n of_o his_o action_n bewray_v he_o and_o after_o his_o absolution_n he_o continue_v in_o effect_n what_o the_o pope_n style_v he_o in_o his_o bull_n of_o excommunication_n filius_fw-la ●rae_fw-la and_o after_o as_o a_o prodigal_n have_v feed_v among_o heretical_a swine_n he_o return_v to_o his_o romish_a ghostly_a father_n house_n and_o have_v cry_v peccavi_fw-la and_o abjure_v and_o his_o father_n have_v compassion_n on_o he_o he_o experiment_v the_o contrary_a to_o for_o this_o my_o son_n be_v dead_a and_o be_v alive_a again_o and_o himself_o be_v the_o fat_a calf_n that_o be_v slay_v and_o so_o much_o wantonness_n be_v show_v by_o the_o contriver_n of_o his_o dire_a fate_n that_o gassendus_fw-la in_o his_o life_n of_o peiresk_n book_n 2_o d_o show_n how_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1610._o a_o almanac_n or_o yearly_a prognostication_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o spain_n in_o which_o the_o accident_n of_o harry_n the_o 4ths_n death_n be_v foretell_v and_o that_o it_o be_v send_v to_o his_o majesty_n to_o read_v who_o slight_v it_o as_o gassandus_n do_v likewise_o all_o judicial_a astrology_n but_o yet_o suppose_v that_o the_o figure-fling_a may_v possible_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o plot_n against_o that_o king_n life_n and_o say_v sure_o i_o be_o it_o can_v not_o be_v perfect_o conceal_v either_o in_o spain_n or_o italy_n for_o even_o the_o king_n ambassador_n and_o particular_o the_o most_o excellent_a johannes_n bochartus_n lord_n of_o champigny_n than_o agent_n at_o venice_n have_v already_o preadvertise_v his_o majesty_n thereof_o and_o it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o seafaring_a man_n of_o marseilles_n who_o for_o two_o month_n before_o come_v from_o spain_n bring_v word_n that_o there_o be_v a_o report_n spread_v abroad_o in_o spain_n that_o the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v already_o or_o shall_v be_v kill_v by_o a_o sword_n or_o knife_n poor_a harry_n the_o 4_o the_o he_o who_o while_o a_o protestant_n have_v dominion_n over_o his_o own_o star_n and_o his_o enemy_n star_n too_o for_o they_o be_v his_o enemy_n who_o make_v he_o first_o be_v call_v great_a and_o their_o design_v to_o ruin_v he_o by_o embroil_v france_n in_o civil_a war_n tend_v to_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o interest_n and_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o artifices_fw-la by_o which_o they_o think_v to_o have_v chase_v he_o out_o of_o guienne_n bring_v he_o into_o the_o heart_n of_o france_n and_o their_o former_a by_o unjustifiable_a practice_n urge_v the_o king_n his_o predecessor_n to_o have_v prosecute_v he_o with_o more_o violence_n than_o he_o have_v do_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o be_v reconcile_v to_o that_o king_n and_o who_o then_o in_o the_o most_o dark_a and_o stormy_a night_n of_o his_o affair_n never_o want_v that_o illumination_n from_o above_o which_o be_v like_o a_o star_n to_o he_o and_o not_o only_o a_o sign_n of_o fair_a weather_n but_o a_o mark_n of_o direction_n in_o the_o foul_a and_o which_o will_v have_v furnish_v his_o portraiture_n in_o story_n with_o another_o guess_n star_n than_o that_o usual_o engrave_v on_o coesars_n image_n and_o which_o by_o its_o blaze_a seven_o day_n over_o the_o game_n consercrate_v to_o caesar_n by_o augustus_n do_v make_v he_o inter_fw-la divos_fw-la and_o do_v awe_v the_o world_n as_o be_v think_v his_o soul_n which_o vouchsafe_v from_o heaven_n to_o visit_v it_o with_o its_o lustre_n this_o harry_n the_o 4_o the_o be_v at_o last_o grow_v the_o ludibrium_fw-la of_o stargazer_n and_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v say_v that_o franciscus_n de_fw-fr verona_n constantinus_n the_o author_n of_o the_o apology_n for_o chastel_n be_v not_o a_o voucher_n good_a enough_o for_o the_o spread_a the_o belief_n of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o heretical_a prince_n by_o their_o absolution_n from_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o restore_v to_o their_o regal_a right_n let_v he_o consult_v the_o great_a thuanus_n and_o he_o will_v find_v that_o in_o his_o book_n 135_o and_o on_o the_o year_n 1605_o where_o he_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n here_o he_o say_v that_o the_o conspirator_n therein_o ante_fw-la omne_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la instruunt_fw-la eâque_fw-la instructâ_fw-la ad_fw-la facinus_fw-la audendum_fw-la obfirmant_fw-la animum_fw-la sic_fw-la autem_fw-la à_fw-la theologis_fw-la suis_fw-la disserebatur_fw-la that_o heretic_n be_v yearly_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o bulla_fw-la coenae_fw-la and_o be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la fall_v into_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o law_n and_o that_o thence_o it_o follow_v that_o christian_a king_n if_o they_o fall_v into_o heresy_n may_v be_v depose_v and_o their_o subject_n release_v immediate_o from_o their_o prince_n dominion_n nec_fw-la jus_o illud_fw-la recuperare_fw-la posse_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la reconcilentur_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la communem_fw-la omnium_fw-la parentem_fw-la cum_fw-la nemini_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la redeunti_fw-la claudere_fw-la gremium_fw-la cum_fw-la dicitur_fw-la adhibitâ_fw-la distinctione_n interpretandum_fw-la esse_fw-la modo_fw-la non_fw-la it_o ad_fw-la damnum_fw-la &_o periculum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nam_fw-la id_fw-la verum_fw-la esse_fw-la quoad_fw-la animam_fw-la non_fw-la quoad_fw-la regnum_fw-la nec_fw-la solum_fw-la ad_fw-la principes_fw-la hac_fw-la labe_fw-la infectos_fw-la paenam_fw-la extendi_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la ad_fw-la eorum_fw-la filios_fw-la qui_fw-la à_fw-la regni_fw-la successione_n ob_fw-la vitium_fw-la paternum_fw-la pelluntur_fw-la haeresim_fw-la quip_n lepram_fw-la &_o morbum_fw-la haereditarium_fw-la esse_fw-la atque_fw-la ut_fw-la disertius_fw-la res_fw-la exprimatur_fw-la regnum_fw-la amittere_fw-la qui_fw-la romanam_fw-la religionem_fw-la deserit_fw-la diris_fw-la illum_fw-la devoveri_fw-la nec_fw-la unquam_fw-la ipsum_fw-la aut_fw-la illius_fw-la posteros_fw-la in_o regnum_fw-la restitui_fw-la quoad_fw-la animam_fw-la à_fw-la solo_fw-la pontifice_fw-la posse_fw-la absolvi_fw-la his_o se_fw-la rationibus_fw-la cum_fw-la satis_fw-la tutos_fw-la intus_fw-la existimarent_fw-la munimenta_fw-la externa_fw-la conjurationi_fw-la quaerere_fw-la coeperunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n ita_fw-la ad_fw-la facinus_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la licitum_fw-la &_o laudabile_fw-la verum_fw-la etiam_fw-la meritorium_fw-la à_fw-la theologis_fw-la suis_fw-la auctorati_fw-la accesserunt_fw-la they_o think_v it_o seem_v that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o divine_n they_o may_v blow_v up_o the_o king_n and_o three_o estate_n with_o gunpowder_n very_o fair_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o can_v have_v escape_v your_o lordship_n curious_a observation_n that_o both_o the_o nonconformist_n and_o papist_n be_v sturdy_a petitioner_n to_o king_n james_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o reign_n that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o fautor_n to_o they_o and_o their_o hypothesis_n in_o april_n in_o the_o year_n 1603_o a_o petition_n be_v present_v to_o he_o call_v the_o humble_a petition_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n desire_v reformation_n of_o certain_a ceremony_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n and_o there_o they_o particular_o desire_v that_o minister_n may_v not_o be_v urge_v to_o subscribe_v but_o according_a to_o the_o law_n to_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o king_n supremacy_n only_o and_o that_o none_o migat_n be_v excommunicate_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o pastor_n and_o therein_o they_o complain_v of_o minister_n be_v suspend_v silence_v disgrace_v imprison_v for_o man_n tradition_n this_o petition_n be_v common_o call_v the_o millenary_a petition_n the_o petitioner_n aver_v themselves_o to_o be_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o and_o a_o animadvert_v answer_n be_v make_v to_o the_o same_o by_o the_o vicechancellor_n and_o doctor_n and_o proctor_n and_o head_n of_o house_n in_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n and_o print_v in_o the_o year_n 1604._o methinks_v a_o humble_a petition_n with_o a_o thousand_o hand_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o contradictio_fw-la in_o adjecto_fw-la but_o the_o university_n in_o their_o animadversion_n on_o the_o petition_n do_v observe_v that_o the_o two_o contrary_a faction_n of_o papist_n and_o puritan_n do_v show_v themselves_o by_o their_o petition_n discontent_v with_o the_o present_a state_n and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n they_o mention_v particular_n as_o parallel_n wherein_o their_o petition_n agree_v and_o resemble_v they_o to_o samson_n fox_n etc._n etc._n i_o have_v occasion_n before_o to_o mention_v to_o your_o lordship_n the_o supplication_n of_o the_o papist_n to_o king_n james_n that_o be_v contemporary_a with_o that_o of_o the_o puritan_n and_o print_v too_o in_o the_o same_o year_n and_o though_o i_o remember_v not_o any_o of_o our_o historian_n to_o have_v give_v the_o world_n a_o account_n of_o that_o memorable_a
person_n as_o of_o very_o great_a ability_n so_o of_o a_o great_a and_o frank_a inclination_n to_o employ_v they_o even_o to_o the_o over-obliging_a a_o country_n and_o which_o though_o natural_o attend_v with_o envy_n from_o some_o must_v too_o be_v with_o acknowledgement_n from_o other_o of_o that_o dignity_n and_o authority_n that_o his_o mind_n be_v possess_v of_o and_o such_o as_o valerius_n maximus_n speak_v of_o as_o innate_a in_o famous_a man_n who_o have_v no_o extrinsic_n authority_n say_v of_o it_o quam_fw-la rectè_fw-la quis_fw-la dixerit_fw-la longum_fw-la &_o beatum_fw-la honorem_fw-la esse_fw-la sine_fw-la honore_fw-la and_o he_o who_o in_o the_o course_n of_o his_o history_n and_o his_o other_o work_n have_v appear_v so_o impartial_a and_o accurate_a in_o his_o observation_n of_o man_n and_o thing_n may_v very_o well_o be_v suppose_v not_o to_o have_v be_v partial_a in_o his_o comparison_n of_o papist_n and_o dissenter_n nor_o do_v i_o think_v he_o recede_v from_o his_o usual_a close_a judge_v of_o thing_n when_o in_o one_o of_o his_o book_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v that_o it_o be_v better_o there_o be_v no_o reveal_v religion_n in_o the_o world_n than_o that_o mankind_n shall_v by_o its_o influence_n be_v so_o vitiate_v as_o to_o become_v more_o barbarous_a and_o cruel_a than_o it_o will_v be_v if_o act_v by_o no_o high_a principle_n than_o those_o be_v with_o which_o nature_n inspire_v men._n i_o will_v not_o with_o our_o learned_a and_o reverend_a judge_n undertake_v to_o compute_v how_o many_o time_n popery_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o roman_n but_o this_o i_o will_v say_v that_o have_v i_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a senate_n and_o have_v there_o hear_v any_o one_o propound_v to_o they_o a_o removal_n of_o their_o mind_n out_o of_o that_o coast_n of_o religion_n which_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n lay_v open_a before_o they_o into_o the_o region_n of_o the_o jesuit_n moral_n i_o will_v have_v say_v my_o master_n let_v we_o keep_v where_o we_o be_v and_o shall_v have_v expect_v that_o the_o reason_n i_o will_v have_v urge_v for_o their_o so_o do_v will_v have_v have_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o good_a omen_n that_o happen_v in_o that_o remarkable_a crisis_n when_o the_o roman_a senator_n be_v debate_v whether_o they_o shall_v qu●t_v rome_n or_o remove_v to_o veij_fw-la and_o when_o a_o soldier_n then_o come_v on_o the_o guard_n and_o his_o captain_n be_v hear_v to_o cry_v out_o to_o he_o signiser_fw-fr signum_fw-la statue_n hic_fw-la optimè_fw-la manebimus_fw-la occasion_v their_o adhere_n to_o rome_n i_o think_v that_o no_o protestant_n who_o compare_v the_o tenet_n of_o the_o nonconformist_n divine_v in_o king_n james_n time_n with_o the_o tenet_n of_o popery_n will_v prefer_v the_o latter_a before_o the_o former_a but_o it_o be_v not_o deniable_a that_o before_o king_n james_n time_n and_o then_o and_o since_o many_o puritan_n and_o nonconformist_n have_v make_v great_a schism_n in_o the_o church_n and_o disturbance_n in_o the_o state_n and_o that_o especial_o in_o some_o particular_a conjuncture_n the_o great_a epoch_n of_o 41_o in_o england_n and_o likewise_o in_o ireland_n will_v in_o our_o history_n preserve_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o outrageous_a principle_n of_o many_o presbyterian_a divine_n in_o the_o one_o kingdom_n and_o of_o popish_a one_o in_o the_o other_o but_o if_o any_o shall_v be_v so_o partial_a to_o the_o papist_n as_o either_o to_o justify_v their_o commotion_n in_o ireland_n or_o to_o deny_v all_o part_n of_o the_o influence_n that_o commotion_n have_v on_o we_o here_o he_o will_v find_v himself_o a_o vain_a imposer_n on_o the_o world._n a_o great_a inspector_n into_o our_o modern_a english_a affair_n i_o mean_v the_o late_a earl_n of_o clarendon_n have_v in_o his_o animadversion_n on_o cressys_n be_v book_n against_o dr._n still_v fleet_n say_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v strange_a than_o that_o mr._n cressy_n shall_v so_o magnify_v the_o general_a obedience_n of_o all_o roman_a catholic_n that_o none_o of_o they_o be_v ever_o in_o rebellion_n against_o the_o king_n or_o his_o father_n when_o he_o know_v very_o well_o and_o have_v some_o mark_n of_o it_o that_o the_o whole_a irish_a nation_n very_o few_o person_n of_o honour_n except_v join_v in_o rebellion_n against_o the_o king_n but_o for_o that_o rebellion_n neither_o presbyterian_a independent_a or_o anabaptist_n have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v do_v any_o harm_n in_o england_n for_o the_o scots_a rebellion_n be_v total_o suppress_v and_o their_o army_n disband_v before_o the_o irish_a rebellion_n begin_v it_o be_v that_o which_o produce_v all_o the_o mischief_n that_o succeed_v in_o england_n and_o give_v those_o sect_n in_o religion_n opportunity_n to_o bring_v in_o their_o confusion_n to_o the_o destruction_n of_o church_n and_o state_n etc._n etc._n but_o as_o to_o the_o papist_n come_v in_o for_o their_o share_n in_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o commo●ion_n here_o we_o have_v the_o incontestable_a authority_n of_o the_o royal_a martyr_n who_o in_o one_o of_o his_o print_a declaration_n say_v and_o we_o be_v confident_a that_o a_o great_a number_n of_o that_o religion_n mean_v the_o popish_a be_v in_o the_o army_n of_o the_o rebel_n then_o in_o our_o own_o and_o it_o be_v there_o before_o say_v all_o man_n know_v the_o great_a number_n of_o papist_n which_o serve_v in_o their_o army_n commander_n and_o other_o the_o author_n of_o the_o regal_a apology_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 48_o in_o p._n 36_o answer_v that_o part_n of_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o that_o so_o unworthy_o r●flects_v on_o his_o majesty_n as_o to_o offer_v a_o toleration_n to_o the_o papist_n in_o ireland_n tontrary_a to_o his_o former_a resolution_n which_o say_v the_o author_n be_v on_o great_a and_o press_a necessity_n which_o have_v no_o law_n and_o to_o that_o degree_n of_o necessity_n as_o the_o two_o house_n have_v drive_v he_o so_o the_o consequence_n be_v to_o be_v set_v on_o their_o score_n not_o his_o own_o yet_o even_o then_o in_o his_o letter_n about_o that_o affair_n publish_v by_o themselves_o he_o do_v insist_v on_o it_o that_o the_o bargain_n may_v be_v make_v as_o good_a as_o can_v be_v for_o he_o but_o i_o have_v see_v other_o letter_n from_o one_o of_o his_o secretary_n to_o the_o irish_a which_o i_o be_o assure_v be_v true_a wherein_o where_o these_o expression_n after_o expostulation_n of_o their_o delay_n in_o his_o assistance_n he_o be_v inform_v that_o take_a advantage_n of_o his_o low_a condition_n you_o insist_v on_o something_o in_o religion_n more_o than_o former_o you_o be_v content_v with_o he_o have_v therefore_o command_v i_o to_o let_v you_o know_v that_o be_v his_o condition_n much_o low_a you_o shall_v never_o force_v he_o to_o any_o further_a concession_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o his_o conscience_n and_o of_o the_o true_a protestant_a religion_n in_o which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o live_v and_o for_o which_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v and_o that_o he_o will_v join_v with_o any_o protestant_a prince_n nay_o with_o these_o rebel_n themselves_o how_v odious_a soever_o mean_v his_o two_o house_n rather_o than_o yield_v the_o least_o to_o you_o in_o this_o particular_a i_o shall_v with_o extreme_a reluctance_n touch_v the_o sore_n of_o these_o sect_n who_o yet_o have_v both_o at_o several_a time_n give_v such_o deadly_a wound_n to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o that_o they_o be_v nuisance_n to_o the_o public_a quiet_n in_o rake_v up_o the_o odious_a comparison_n of_o one_o another_o practice_n and_o that_o the_o papist_n on_o the_o occasion_n of_o any_o of_o the_o worse_a sort_n of_o protestant_n or_o nonconformist_n be_v convict_v of_o sedition_n or_o treason_n a_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v expect_v from_o the_o degeneracy_n of_o humane_a nature_n to_o happen_v often_o from_o some_o of_o a_o religion_n of_o so_o great_a number_n then_o from_o a_o persuasion_n that_o have_v comparative_o but_o a_o handful_n of_o man_n for_o its_o disciple_n just_a as_o according_o perhaps_o where_o one_o papist_n be_v hang_v for_o clip_v or_o coin_v twenty_o protestant_n be_v so_o ●_o be_v so_o apt_a to_o expect_v that_o the_o world_n shall_v acquit_v the_o present_a principle_n and_o former_a practice_n of_o that_o sect_n from_o disloyalty_n on_o their_o outcry_n that_o they_o be_v no_o puritan_n or_o presbyterian_o and_o as_o ridiculous_o as_o if_o a_o false_a coyner_n arraign_v for_o the_o fact_n shall_v trouble_v the_o court_n with_o a_o plea_n and_o noise_n that_o he_o be_v no_o house-breaker_n and_o but_o that_o on_o the_o detection_n of_o a_o plot_n of_o papist_n several_a person_n that_o have_v in_o their_o public_a capacity_n do_v many_o act_n of_o hostility_n to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n yet_o entire_o by_o be_v more_o
into_o the_o field_n of_o time_n have_v yet_o grow_v up_o and_o how_o many_o even_a of_o the_o high_a class_n of_o understanding_n have_v be_v tempt_v to_o believe_v the_o prediction_n of_o the_o illiterate_a and_o that_o such_o can_v read_v the_o book_n of_o fate_n who_o yet_o can_v read_v no_o other_o as_o appear_v by_o sir_n thomas_n moor_n and_o bishop_n fisher_n be_v taint_v with_o some_o belief_n of_o the_o holy_a maid_n of_o kent_n say_n or_o at_o least_o seem_v so_o to_o be_v and_o that_o the_o prediction_n of_o thing_n as_o i_o partly_o before_o hint_v may_v help_v as_o a_o natural_a cause_n to_o give_v they_o birth_n i_o wish_v so_o well_o to_o my_o country_n and_o its_o religion_n by_o law_n establish_v have_v however_o adventure_v from_o natural_a cause_n to_o give_v my_o judgement_n for_o the_o future_a state_n thereof_o as_o i_o have_v do_v not_o despair_v of_o its_o influence_n on_o some_o present_a despairer_n and_o moreover_o the_o class_n of_o magna_fw-la nomina_fw-la who_o have_v faulter_v in_o their_o measure_n of_o prophecy_n be_v so_o great_a that_o a_o obscure_a mistake_a person_n may_v well_o hope_v to_o hide_v himself_o among_o they_o father_n parson_n alias_o doleman_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n do_v p._n 258._o give_v his_o final_a conjecture_n of_o the_o great_a future_a event_n of_o the_o succession_n after_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n say_v my_o opinion_n be_v that_o this_o affair_n can_v possible_o be_v end_v by_o any_o possibility_n moral_a without_o some_o war_n at_o leastwise_o for_o sometime_o at_o the_o beginning_n and_o give_v his_o reason_n for_o that_o his_o opinion_n and_o how_o all_o our_o hot_a apocalyptick_a man_n and_o teazer_n of_o antichrist_n have_v err_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a change_n they_o have_v predict_v in_o the_o world_n be_v obvious_a and_o therefore_o the_o most_o sagacious_a of_o that_o sort_n of_o expositor_n have_v make_v the_o thing_n they_o have_v foretell_v to_o be_v far_o distant_a in_o time_n and_o before_o which_o they_o know_v they_o shall_v long_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o non_fw-la entes_fw-la doctores_fw-la as_o one_o call_v the_o schoolman_n and_o thus_o likewise_o the_o ingenious_a author_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o tax_n and_o contribution_n print_v in_o london_n 1667_o do_v p._n 23._o say_v that_o before_o five_o hundred_o year_n we_o may_v be_v all_o transplant_v from_o hence_o into_o america_n these_o country_n be_v overrun_v with_o turk_n and_o make_v waste_v as_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o famous_a eastern_a empire_n at_o this_o day_n mr._n herbert_n our_o pious_a vates_fw-la make_v religion_n stand_v a_o tiptoe_n to_o take_v its_o flight_n thither_o many_o year_n ago_o and_o the_o ingenious_a author_n of_o the_o zelander_n choice_n have_v therein_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o french_a will_v never_o part_v with_o vtrecht_n and_o that_o our_o king_n declaration_n of_o indulgence_n will_v never_o be_v recall_v but_o the_o contrary_n happen_v in_o both_o case_n and_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o in_o order_n to_o his_o majesty_n recall_v the_o latter_a be_v carry_v by_o the_o party_n there_o favour_v the_o nonconformist_n and_o can_v not_o have_v be_v without_o they_o which_o that_o author_n do_v not_o foresee_v and_o that_o those_o nonconformist_n will_v be_v well_o neither_o full_a nor_o fast_v and_o therefore_o their_o reflection_n on_o the_o king_n minister_n for_o deny_v indulgence_n to_o they_o since_o aught_o to_o be_v very_o gentle_a mr._n fox_n in_o his_o martyrology_n in_o one_o volume_n p._n 694._o give_v we_o this_o conjectural_a prediction_n that_o the_o turk_n will_v seize_v rome_n and_o find_v one_o of_o his_o reason_n for_o it_o on_o the_o 18_o ch._n of_o the_o rev._n and_o that_o he_o shall_v consume_v it_o with_o fire_n and_o ribera_n the_o jesuite_n in_o chap._n 14_o of_o the_o rev._n say_v romam_fw-la igitur_fw-la non_fw-la tantum_fw-la propter_fw-la priora_fw-la peccata_fw-la conflagratarum_fw-la esse_fw-la magno_fw-la incendio_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la propter_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la extremis_fw-la illis_fw-la temporibus_fw-la commissura_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la huius_fw-la apocalypsis_n verbis_fw-la adeo_fw-la perspicue_n cognoscimus_fw-la ut_fw-la ne_fw-la stul●issimus_fw-la quidem_fw-la negare_fw-la possit_fw-la neither_o mr._n fox_n nor_o the_o jesuite_n name_n any_o particular_a time_n when_o rome_n shall_v be_v consume_v with_o fire_n but_o many_o who_o enthusiastic_a fancy_n have_v play_v with_o the_o fire_n of_o rome_n adventure_v to_o lay_v the_o scene_n of_o its_o ruin_n in_o the_o year_n 1666_o and_o to_o assert_v this_o a_o latin_a book_n be_v profess_o write_v and_o call_v romae_fw-la ruina_fw-la finalis_fw-la anno_fw-la dom._n 1666._o and_o print_v in_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1663._o in_o the_o title_n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v that_o rome_n shall_v be_v incendio_fw-la delenda_fw-la in_o the_o year_n 1666._o and_o no_o doubt_n our_o many_o prophetic_a writer_n that_o read_v that_o sentence_n as_o from_o god_n tribunal_n that_o rome_n shall_v be_v destroy_v that_o year_n anger_v the_o conclave_n there_o and_o they_o may_v well_o think_v that_o to_o such_o hot_a head_n there_o belong_v incendiary_n hand_n and_o according_o as_o it_o be_v before_o cite_v out_o of_o the_o pamphlet_n call_v the_o art_n and_o pernicious_a design_n of_o rome_n wherein_o be_v show_v what_o be_v the_o aim_n of_o the_o jesuit_n etc._n etc._n the_o author_n make_v the_o conflagration_n of_o london_n in_o case_n it_o be_v a_o practice_n of_o humane_a contrivance_n to_o have_v be_v cause_v by_o rome_n and_o the_o consistory_n there_o and_o the_o jesuit_n as_o be_v willing_a to_o signalise_v that_o year_n of_o 666_o with_o some_o remarkable_a mischief_n do_v to_o protestant_n in_o check_n to_o the_o fancy_n of_o some_o that_o predict_v rome_n utter_a destruction_n then_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o they_o may_v grant_v against_o our_o city_n the_o reprisal_n of_o performance_n for_o our_o prophecy_n against_o they_o which_o if_o they_o do_v be_v a_o revenge_n very_o disproportionate_a for_o according_a to_o that_o rule_n of_o the_o pharisee_n revenge_n namely_o a_o eye_n for_o a_o eye_n and_o a_o tooth_n for_o a_o tooth_n they_o shall_v only_o have_v equip_v airy_a prophecy_n against_o we_o and_o not_o fireship_n and_o by_o a_o little_a obvious_a art_n have_v hound_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n 666_o upon_o we_o and_o though_o i_o be_o sufficient_o convince_v by_o the_o quotation_n out_o of_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o the_o canonist_n refer_v to_o in_o gundissalvus_n that_o the_o tenet_n of_o burn_a whole_a city_n if_o the_o majority_n thereof_o be_v heretic_n be_v chargeable_a on_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o approve_v by_o it_o and_o though_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n and_o two_o house_n of_o commons_o and_o the_o magistrate_n of_o london_n have_v give_v their_o judgement_n of_o the_o causer_n of_o that_o fire_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o though_o one_o of_o our_o great_a divine_n and_o who_o name_n all_o protestant_n in_o our_o land_n must_v mention_v with_o great_a honour_n dr._n william_n lloyd_n dean_n of_o bangir_n have_v in_o his_o funeral_n sermon_n of_o sir_n edmund_n godfrey_n p._n 38._o speak_v of_o the_o incredible_a patience_n find_v in_o the_o citizen_n of_o london_n at_o the_o time_n of_o its_o conflagration_n as_o a_o effect_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n further_o say_v though_o so_o many_o believe_v and_o very_o few_o much_o doubt_a whence_o it_o come_v that_o it_o be_v from_o the_o same_o hand_n which_o we_o just_o suspect_v for_o this_o wickedness_n mean_v the_o murder_n of_o sir_n edmund_n godfrey_n yet_o be_v there_o no_o tumult_n rise_v upon_o it_o no_o violence_n do_v that_o extend_v to_o the_o life_n of_o any_o person_n yet_o shall_v i_o never_o without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o convince_a proof_n of_o such_o a_o fact_n project_v or_o model_v by_o some_o in_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o spiritual_a guide_n of_o our_o lay-papists_a charge_v the_o odium_n of_o the_o fact_n on_o more_o of_o they_o than_o make_v the_o least_o of_o number_n nor_o yet_o the_o allowance_n of_o this_o tenet_n on_o the_o generality_n of_o papist_n here_o at_o home_n or_o abroad_o in_o the_o world_n and_o will_v say_v that_o as_o infallible_a as_o the_o pope_n be_v he_o know_v not_o what_o spirit_n he_o be_v of_o when_o he_o thus_o in_o his_o law_n call_v for_o fire_n on_o heretical_a city_n i_o allude_v to_o our_o saviour_n word_n to_o the_o disciple_n that_o importune_v he_o to_o call_v for_o fire_n from_o heaven_n to_o burn_v the_o samaritan_n i_o know_v the_o roman_n catholic_n author_n of_o the_o forementioned_a pamphlet_n call_v the_o art_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o epistle_n of_o it_o say_v of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o friar_n that_o what_o they_o hold_v lawful_a to_o be_v do_v
tell_v i_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o the_o canon_n law_n do_v not_o as_o such_o bind_v all_o papist_n in_o foro_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la but_o he_o will_v stay_v in_o no_o church_n that_o he_o shall_v find_v to_o be_v build_v in_o any_o akeldama_n or_o field_n of_o blood_n that_o be_v a_o church_n that_o approve_a of_o tenet_n destructive_a of_o civil_a society_n or_o condemn_v not_o tenet_n that_o where_o any_o other_o religion_n than_o the_o pope_n be_v will_v condemn_v man_n like_o nebuchadnezor_n to_o graze_v and_o to_o solitude_n or_o if_o they_o will_v live_v in_o town_n or_o city_n make_v they_o live_v there_o in_o house_n under_o ground_n as_o dr._n browne_n in_o his_o travel_n say_v he_o see_v some_o town_n in_o the_o turkish_a dominion_n where_o christian_n so_o live_v like_o the_o troglodyte_n and_o subterraneous_a nation_n about_o egypt_n and_o which_o may_v be_v occasion_v by_o many_o army_n march_v that_o way_n and_o burn_a of_o town_n en_fw-fr passant_a and_o that_o till_o the_o pope_n disclaim_v this_o power_n and_o damn_v such_o tenet_n in_o his_o canon_n law_n that_o hang_v up_o there_o a_o light_n conspicuous_a to_o the_o world_n for_o the_o lawful_a kindle_v of_o the_o torch_n that_o shall_v set_v fire_n to_o heretical_a city_n such_o city_n as_o he_o call_v heretical_a will_v be_v in_o fear_n of_o their_o being_n incendio_fw-la delendae_fw-la and_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o jesuit_n who_o assert_v the_o plenitude_n of_o his_o power_n will_v implicit_o obey_v his_o command_n and_o their_o emissary_n execute_v they_o without_o consider_v whether_o gratian_n as_o a_o fool_n or_o a_o knave_n misapply_v cyprian_n and_o he_o grant_v that_o if_o as_o a_o universal_a censor_n morum_fw-la the_o pope_n do_v command_v the_o jesuit_n or_o other_o to_o inflict_v spiritual_a censure_n in_o case_n of_o sin_n or_o non-belief_n of_o any_o religionary_a notion_n and_o those_o censure_n be_v not_o to_o operate_v beyond_o the_o soul_n that_o civil_a society_n may_v yet_o be_v maintain_v but_o to_o give_v the_o pope_n power_n to_o issue_n out_o order_n to_o burn_v the_o city_n and_o town_n where_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n be_v not_o profess_v be_v say_v he_o to_o give_v he_o arbitrary_a power_n over_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o leave_v it_o to_o his_o arbitrage_n whether_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o political_a government_n and_o commerce_n in_o the_o state_n and_o kingdom_n of_o heretic_n and_o the_o world_n may_v suffer_v confusion_n by_o the_o papacy_n have_v this_o power_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la as_o much_o as_o if_o it_o have_v it_o de_fw-fr jure_fw-la and_o that_o several_a place_n have_v be_v burn_v as_o heretical_a and_o when_o certain_o they_o have_v a_o right_a not_o to_o be_v so_o serve_v and_o particular_o the_o heretical_a village_n at_o the_o massacre_n of_o merindol_n of_o which_o dr._n heylin_n in_o his_o geoghraphy_n in_o folio_n make_v mention_n say_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1560._o there_o be_v above_o 1250_o church_n of_o the_o hugonot_n in_o france_n which_o can_v in_o such_o a_o long_a time_n but_o be_v wonderful_o augment_v though_o scarce_o any_o of_o they_o have_v escape_v some_o massacre_n or_o other_o of_o these_o massacre_n two_o be_v most_o memorable_a viz._n that_o of_o merindol_n and_o chabiers_n as_o be_v the_o first_o and_o that_o of_o paris_n as_o be_v the_o great_a that_o of_o merindol_n happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1545._o the_o instrument_n of_o it_o be_v minier_n the_o precedent_n of_o the_o council_n of_o aix_n for_o have_v condemn_v those_o poor_a people_n of_o heresy_n he_o muster_v a_o small_a army_n and_o set_v fire_n on_o the_o village_n he_o direct_v i_o further_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o that_o fact_n to_o maimbourg_n history_n of_o calvinism_n book_n 2d_o where_o he_o mention_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o parliament_n of_o aix_n to_o which_o heylin_n refer_v and_o say_v maimbourg_n of_o it_o par_fw-fr le_fw-fr quel_fw-fr il_fw-fr condamn_v condamn_v par_fw-fr contumace_n dix_fw-fr neuf_fw-fr de_fw-fr ces_n heretic_n à_fw-fr estre_fw-fr brasléz_fw-fr etc._n etc._n ordonne_v que_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr les_fw-fr maisons_fw-fr de_fw-fr merindol_n qui_fw-fr sont_fw-fr toutes_fw-fr remply_v de_fw-fr ces_n heretic_n soient_fw-fr entierement_n démoly_n &_o renverse_v the_o fond_a en_fw-fr comble_o etc._n etc._n he_o further_o say_v that_o there_o be_v another_o guess_n fire_v project_v by_o the_o jesuit_n as_o be_v before_o mention_v out_o of_o thuanus_n and_o which_o be_v abet_v by_o the_o pope_n which_o show_v there_o be_v another_o pope_n beside_o eugenius_n that_o think_v the_o burn_a of_o heretical_a city_n lawful_a and_o meritorious_a and_o he_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o critic_n in_o gunpowder_n how_o far_o so_o great_a a_o quantity_n of_o it_o lodge_v in_o a_o strait_a vault_n may_v have_v tend_v to_o the_o demolish_n of_o the_o heretical_a city_n of_o westminster_n and_o even_o of_o london_n if_o the_o experiment_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n have_v take_v effect_n for_o say_v he_o the_o utmost_a power_n of_o gunpowder_n be_v never_o yet_o try_v he_o tell_v i_o that_o osborn_n in_o his_o king_n james_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n say_v i_o never_o meet_v two_o of_o the_o like_a conceit_n concern_v any_o effect_n or_o extent_n this_o powder_n may_v have_v reach_v have_v it_o not_o fail_v of_o success_n some_o man_n confine_v it_o to_o the_o circle_n it_o lay_v in_o and_o no_o far_o whereas_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o no_o less_o experience_v deliver_v at_o least_o the_o whole_a isle_n to_o the_o fury_n of_o it_o and_o then_o he_o quote_v it_o as_o the_o more_o probable_a conjecture_n then_o that_o it_o can_v not_o but_o work_v dire_a effect_n on_o the_o city_n itself_o he_o further_o discourse_v that_o in_o this_o case_n of_o secure_v protestant_n city_n from_o fire_n at_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n pere_fw-fr veron_n artifice_n in_o make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n chargeable_a with_o nothing_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o what_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o her_o general_a council_n or_o by_o her_o universal_a practice_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o article_n or_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n faith_n or_o any_o papist_n in_o this_o case_n join_v with_o protestant_n to_o decry_v the_o canon_n law_n be_v but_o trifle_v away_o time_n as_o to_o any_o give_a light_n to_o our_o understanding_n or_o keep_v fire_n from_o our_o city_n for_o if_o each_o pope_n believe_v he_o have_v this_o power_n and_o the_o jesuit_n too_o believe_v it_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o thing_n not_o be_v the_o fide_fw-la will_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o save_v our_o city_n when_o the_o incendiary_n even_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o probability_n may_v save_v their_o soul_n and_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v such_o doctor_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o gratian_n and_o as_o they_o may_v think_v cyprian_n for_o the_o opinion_n of_o burn_v the_o nest_n of_o heretical_a hornet_n he_o moreover_o mention_v how_o bellarmine_n as_o to_o the_o tenet_n of_o all_o christian_a monarchy_n owe_v subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n say_v the_o contrary_a to_o it_o be_v heretical_a though_o he_o well_o know_v that_o no_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n ever_o make_v it_o heresy_n and_o may_v as_o well_o have_v call_v the_o denial_n of_o this_o incendiary_n power_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o heretical_a city_n to_o be_v heresy_n moreover_o he_o tell_v i_o he_o have_v read_v bellarmine_n cite_v in_o that_o book_n of_o donne_n p._n 277._o for_o write_v against_o a_o doctor_n who_o have_v defend_v the_o venetian_a cause_n against_o the_o pope_n censure_n and_o reprimand_v that_o doctor_n in_o these_o word_n viz._n it_o be_v a_o grievous_a rashness_n not_o to_o be_v leave_v unpunished_a that_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o canon_n as_o be_v but_o humane_a law_n can_v have_v equal_a authority_n with_o divine_a for_o this_o be_v a_o contempt_n of_o the_o canon_n as_o though_o they_o be_v not_o make_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o yet_o say_v donne_n cite_v that_o doctor_n that_o impugn_a the_o canon_n those_o canon_n that_o he_o refer_v to_o be_v but_o two_o and_o cite_v but_o by_o gratian._n and_o that_o donne_n further_a in_o that_o page_n observe_v that_o when_o parson_n be_v to_o make_v his_o advantage_n of_o any_o sentence_n in_o gratian_n he_o use_v to_o dignify_v it_o thus_o that_o it_o be_v translate_v by_o the_o pope_n into_o the_o corpse_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o so_o not_o only_o allow_v and_o admit_v and_o approve_v but_o commend_v and_o command_v canonize_a and_o determine_v for_o canonical_a law_n and_o authorize_v and_o set_v forth_o for_o sacred_a and_o authentical_a by_o all_o pope_n whatsoever_o treat_n of_o mitag_n ca._n 7._o ●_o 42._o that_o moreover_o though_o we_o
may_v have_v who_o shall_v believe_v it_o nor_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o consubstantiation_n under_o any_o prince_n of_o the_o lutheran_n persuasion_n nor_o of_o calvin_n horrendum_fw-la decretum_fw-la relate_v to_o reprobation_n as_o it_o be_v call_v under_o any_o prince_n that_o may_v believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o calvin_n though_o yet_o till_o the_o peace_n of_o munster_n the_o timid_a people_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinian_a religion_n hate_v one_o another_o more_o than_o they_o do_v papist_n abroad_o in_o the_o world_n be_v so_o much_o impose_v on_o by_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n in_o case_n a_o lutheran_n or_o calvinian_a prince_n shall_v by_o the_o right_n of_o lineal_a descent_n come_v to_o rule_v they_o but_o the_o munster_n peace_n have_v teach_v they_o better_a thing_n and_o shall_v i_o ever_o hear_v that_o any_o roman_a catholic_n prince_n here_o do_v according_a to_o the_o power_n by_o law_n repose_v in_o he_o relax_v some_o of_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n in_o case_n of_o recusancy_n that_o as_o thing_n now_o be_v recusancy_n will_v not_o be_v thereby_o render_v considerable_o prolific_a with_o convert_v though_o i_o have_v give_v my_o opinion_n as_o beforemention_v concern_v the_o fact_n of_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o conjuncture_n of_o the_o declaration_n of_o indulgence_n and_o do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o alter_v it_o yet_o i_o can_v tell_v your_o lordship_n that_o a_o person_n of_o great_a sagacity_n who_o i_o believe_v consider_v the_o state_n of_o their_o number_n here_o than_o very_o careful_o and_o entire_o believe_v what_o he_o publish_v thereof_o in_o print_n i_o mean_v the_o author_n of_o the_o catholic_n apology_n with_o a_o reply_n etc._n etc._n there_o say_v that_o during_o the_o year_n 1672._o and_o which_o he_o call_v a_o year_n of_o peace_n there_o be_v not_o one_o priest_n one_o mass_n one_o conversion_n more_o in_o england_n than_o in_o the_o year_n 1663._o 1666._o or_o any_o other_o time_n of_o trouble_n i_o have_v in_o this_o discourse_n speak_v of_o such_o a_o perfect_a hatred_n against_o popery_n as_o may_v always_o consist_v with_o a_o perfect_a love_n to_o papist_n and_o cinge_fw-la not_o a_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n more_o than_o a_o lambent_a fire_n i_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o great_a mortification_n austerity_n and_o zealous_a devotion_n not_o only_o among_o many_o of_o the_o religious_a order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o the_o common_a people_n and_o have_v allow_v a_o sober_a party_n to_o the_o jesuit_n themselves_o and_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o bellarmine_n himself_o that_o hammer_n of_o heretical_a prince_n as_o his_o work_n show_v he_o be_v yet_o of_o so_o soft_a and_o gentle_a a_o disposition_n as_o will_v not_o permit_v he_o to_o hurt_v a_o fly_n or_o tread_v on_o a_o worm_n and_o i_o have_v reflect_v on_o no_o other_o principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n with_o any_o sharpness_n than_o what_o the_o present_a pope_n have_v do_v and_o which_o the_o court_n of_o inquisition_n at_o rome_n or_o elsewhere_o will_v have_v allow_v i_o to_o do_v and_o i_o have_v be_v as_o i_o still_o be_o so_o free_a from_o any_o thing_n of_o rancour_n or_o acerbity_n in_o my_o principle_n relate_v to_o the_o usage_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o a_o english_a priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o author_n of_o the_o remarkable_a book_n beforementioned_a call_v the_o advocate_n of_o conscience_n liberty_n or_o a_o apology_n for_o toleration_n right_o state_v publish_v in_o the_o year_n 1673._o and_o the_o most_o considerable_a book_n that_o have_v for_o several_a year_n be_v write_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_n and_o a_o book_n our_o learned_a dr._n still_v fleet_n refer_v to_o in_o a_o very_a excellent_a print_a sermon_n of_o his_o p._n 43._o and_o call_v the_o reformation_n justify_v and_o preach_v before_o the_o lord_n mayor_n of_o london_n do_v i_o the_o honour_n there_o to_o adopt_v as_o his_o own_o several_a say_n of_o i_o he_o find_v in_o a_o print_a discourse_n of_o i_o that_o be_v dissuasive_a of_o the_o use_n of_o force_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o give_v i_o occasion_n when_o i_o read_v some_o passage_n in_o his_o 14_o 25_o 26_o 34th_o 43d_o 54th_o 55th_o 62d_o 94th_o page_n there_o to_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o i_o have_v read_v they_o elsewhere_o and_o much_o good_a might_n any_o thing_n in_o my_o write_n do_v that_o author_n and_o he_o be_v as_o welcome_v to_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v his_o own_o and_o i_o be_o sorry_a that_o his_o not_o cite_v a_o author_n where_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v it_o be_v accompany_v with_o another_o misfortune_n of_o cite_v one_o where_o he_o shall_v not_o i_o mean_v his_o in_o p._n 225._o cite_v of_o de_fw-fr ossat_n he_o may_v have_v cite_v another_o passage_n of_o i_o against_o hereticide_n as_o be_v impolitic_a if_o he_o have_v please_v to_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o it_o among_o its_o fellow_n and_o where_o i_o observe_v that_o the_o put_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n priest_n here_o to_o death_n do_v propagate_v their_o religion_n and_o that_o that_o faith_n be_v give_v to_o the_o assertor_n of_o popish_a opinion_n because_o they_o be_v die_v which_o they_o can_v not_o have_v draw_v from_o i_o but_o by_o raise_v the_o dead_a i_o still_o own_o what_o in_o p._n 93._o he_o partly_o cite_v of_o i_o as_o say_v by_o another_o author_n that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o every_o man_n to_o be_v guide_v by_o his_o private_a judgement_n in_o thing_n of_o religion_n it_o will_v be_v hardly_o possible_a to_o acquit_v our_o separation_n from_o the_o romish_a church_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o any_o papist_n shall_v as_o to_o any_o tenet_n that_o can_v proper_o come_v within_o the_o denomination_n of_o religion_n tell_v i_o that_o his_o private_a judgement_n guide_v he_o to_o receive_v the_o guidance_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o therefore_o i_o a_o protestant_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v incline_v to_o bear_v hard_o upon_o he_o on_o the_o account_n of_o such_o adhesion_n to_o his_o private_a judgement_n i_o shall_v own_o the_o argumentum_fw-la ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la so_o far_o as_o to_o tell_v he_o that_o i_o be_o not_o incline_v eo_fw-la nomine_fw-la to_o he_o severe_a to_o he_o and_o now_o my_o lord_n because_o it_o have_v be_v so_o ●ust●mary_a in_o the_o author_n of_o large_a discourse_n to_o bestow_v on_o they_o a_o short_a review_n that_o it_o will_v appear_v sullenness_n in_o i_o not_o to_o follow_v they_o and_o because_o it_o will_v be_v a_o irreverence_n to_o your_o great_a judgement_n in_o i_o to_o present_v any_o thing_n for_o you_o to_o view_v once_o that_o i_o have_v not_o resolve_v to_o view_v twice_o i_o intend_v to_o improve_v some_o interval_n of_o leisure_n hereafter_o in_o review_v of_o this_o discourse_n and_o shall_v explain_v some_o passage_n therein_o on_o occasion_n and_o add_v other_o and_o if_o i_o doubt_v of_o any_o thing_n particular_o in_o the_o various_a matter_n of_o calculation_n herein_o contain_v and_o of_o many_o of_o which_o few_o or_o none_o perhaps_o have_v write_v or_o shall_v alter_v my_o opinion_n therein_o or_o in_o any_o thing_n else_o i_o shall_v acquaint_v your_o lordship_n why_o i_o do_v so_o and_o do_v as_o much_o value_n myself_o on_o my_o natural_a temper_n of_o acknowledge_v a_o quick_a and_o ready_a assent_n to_o any_o proposition_n of_o reason_n that_o convince_v my_o understanding_n how_o contradictory_n soever_o the_o same_o may_v be_v to_o any_o former_a notion_n of_o i_o as_o any_o man_n can_v value_v himself_o on_o his_o think_n he_o never_o err_v or_o on_o his_o ability_n either_o by_o eloquence_n or_o sophism_n to_o make_v other_o think_v so_o and_o to_o make_v they_o err_v with_o he_o and_o do_v still_o account_v this_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o best_a property_n in_o the_o best_a ship_n namely_o the_o soon_a to_o feel_v its_o rudder_n and_o do_v think_v that_o as_o none_o but_o coward_n be_v cruel_a so_o none_o but_o dunce_n be_v positive_a my_o lord_n after_o the_o efflux_n of_o the_o various_a interval_n in_o which_o this_o discourse_n be_v write_v it_o have_v happen_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v to_o the_o general_a satisfaction_n of_o impartial_a judge_n of_o man_n and_o thing_n become_v as_o found_v a_o part_n of_o this_o nation_n as_o they_o be_v and_o be_v of_o the_o dutch_a state_n and_o as_o throughout_o this_o discourse_n i_o always_o suppose_v they_o capable_a of_o be_v and_o that_o the_o body_n of_o they_o be_v as_o loyal_a as_o can_v be_v wish_v and_o likely_a forever_o so_o to_o continue_v and_o that_o none_o but_o the_o factious_a will_v have_v they_o now_o to_o groan_v under_o the_o penal_a law_n
particular_a law_n have_v declare_v the_o militia_n to_o be_v sole_o in_o the_o king_n i_o most_o humble_o take_v my_o leave_n of_o your_o lordship_n at_o present_a and_o be_o my_o lord_n your_o lordship_n most_o faithful_a servant_n to_o the_o right_n honourable_a the_o lord_n marquesse_n of_o halifax_n my_o lord_n according_a to_o the_o common_a civility_n of_o ship_n pay_v a_o salute_n to_o the_o fort_n on_o the_o coast_n they_o come_v near_o the_o course_n of_o my_o handle_n the_o follow_a subject_n necessary_o give_v my_o thought_n a_o approach_n to_o the_o consider_v the_o great_a use_n that_o providence_n not_o long_o ago_o make_v use_n of_o your_o lordship_n great_a ability_n as_o a_o fortification_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n i_o have_v hold_v it_o here_o but_o common_a justice_n to_o congratulate_v to_o your_o lordship_n your_o heroical_a loyalty_n and_o great_a success_n therein_o on_o one_o memorable_a day_n it_o please_v god_n in_o who_o book_n the_o member_n of_o man_n body_n and_o talent_n of_o their_o mind_n be_v write_v then_o to_o call_v forth_o your_o head_n and_o heart_n and_o tongue_n your_o flow_a elocution_n your_o fix_a judgement_n your_o great_a presence_n of_o mind_n and_o thought_n your_o comprehensive_a knowledge_n of_o the_o past_a public_a affair_n at_o home_n and_o abroad_o and_o even_o the_o generous_a ferment_n in_o your_o blood_n and_o to_o put_v they_o all_o to_o signal_n use_v in_o preserve_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o kingdom_n your_o lordship_n goodness_n be_v herein_o the_o more_o godlike_a for_o that_o as_o the_o great_a benign_a father_n of_o the_o creation_n be_v please_v with_o be_v a_o benefactor_n to_o such_o who_o ingratitude_n he_o foreknow_v and_o to_o some_o who_o will_v render_v he_o as_o negligent_a of_o the_o concern_v of_o his_o creature_n and_o to_o other_o who_o will_v represent_v he_o as_o unjust_a in_o his_o prescription_n and_o cruel_a in_o his_o design_n and_o take_v pleasure_n in_o the_o destruction_n of_o soul_n so_o your_o lordship_n be_v resolve_v on_o your_o beneficence_n to_o your_o country_n in_o the_o black_a conjuncture_n of_o our_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n and_o you_o be_v then_o communicative_a of_o the_o bright_a beam_n and_o sweet_a influence_n of_o your_o serene_a and_o great_a thought_n to_o it_o when_o you_o know_v that_o by_o some_o of_o the_o people_n for_o your_o so_o do_v you_o will_v be_v malign_v and_o misrepresent_v as_o a_o hostess_fw-la patriae_fw-la i_o shall_v presume_v to_o give_v your_o lordship_n no_o further_o trouble_v then_o by_o the_o sincere_a profession_n of_o my_o be_v my_o lord_n your_o lordship_n be_v most_o obedient_a servant_n p._n p._n the_o obligation_n relate_v to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n in_o point_n of_o conscience_n discuss_v as_o result_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o the_o taker_n of_o those_o oath_n prove_v to_o be_v thereupon_o become_v bind_v to_o bear_v faith_n and_o true_a allegiance_n to_o those_o heir_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o due_a and_o legal_a course_n of_o descent_n i_o shall_v without_o proem_n or_o passion_n here_o approach_v to_o the_o great_a areopagus_n of_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n and_o have_v state_v the_o question_n of_o what_o obligation_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n result_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n in_o point_n of_o conscience_n shall_v deliver_v my_o judgement_n of_o the_o same_o in_o some_o conclusion_n and_o answer_v objection_n that_o may_v occur_v i_o shall_v here_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o word_n obligation_n from_o be_v original_o a_o band_n or_o tie_v of_o the_o law_n for_o payment_n of_o debt_n have_v be_v since_o frequent_o apply_v to_o the_o discharge_n of_o moral_a office_n obligatio_fw-la est_fw-la juris_fw-la vinculum_fw-la quo_fw-la necessitate_v restringimur_fw-la alicujus_fw-la solvendae_fw-la rei_fw-la instìt_fw-la de_fw-fr obligationibus_fw-la and_o pursuant_n hereunto_o man_n may_v be_v proper_o say_v to_o pay_v their_o allegiance_n to_o prince_n in_o discharge_n of_o their_o natural_a obligation_n and_o their_o oath_n but_o here_o i_o consider_v not_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o natural_a allegiance_n that_o english_a subject_n owe_v their_o monarch_n nor_o yet_o their_o obligation_n to_o allegiance_n from_o the_o divine_a law_n positive_a nor_o from_o the_o lex_fw-la terrae_fw-la though_o yet_o i_o account_v it_o very_o plain_a that_o we_o be_v on_o all_o those_o account_n bind_v to_o pay_v they_o allegiance_n but_o do_v choose_v to_o confine_v my_o discussion_n of_o the_o obligation_n to_o allegiance_n as_o result_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o as_o mention_v in_o our_o statute_n in_o relation_n to_o our_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n and_o most_o particular_o from_o that_o clause_n in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n viz._n i_o will_v bear_v faith_n and_o true_a allegiance_n to_o his_o majesty_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n and_o he_o and_o they_o will_v defend_v to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o my_o power_n against_o all_o conspiracy_n and_o attempt_n whatsoever_o which_o shall_v be_v make_v against_o his_o or_o their_o person_n their_o crown_n and_o dignity_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o in_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n viz._n and_o do_v promise_v that_o from_o henceforth_o i_o shall_v bear_v faith_n and_o true_a allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n highness_n his_o heir_n and_o lawful_a successor_n and_o to_o my_o power_n shall_v assist_v and_o defend_v all_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n preeminence_n and_o authority_n grant_v or_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n highness_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o here_o inquire_v how_o far_o the_o obligation_n result_v from_o those_o clause_n in_o those_o oath_n in_o relation_n to_o such_o heir_n and_o successor_n may_v be_v judge_v in_o point_n of_o conscience_n to_o extend_v as_o to_o the_o question_n thus_o explain_v and_o state_v i_o shall_v lay_v down_o these_o follow_a conclusion_n first_o that_o those_o oath_n and_o indeed_o all_o other_o do_v respect_n a_o duty_n to_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o future_a time_n that_o be_v at_o the_o least_o some_o time_n though_o perhaps_o a_o very_a small_a one_o after_o the_o obligation_n contract_v as_o be_v well_o open_v by_o sanderson_n in_o his_o first_o lecture_n of_o the_o obligation_n of_o oath_n and_o where_o he_o show_v that_o this_o happen_v in_o every_o oath_n assertory_n as_o well_o as_o promissory_a for_o whoever_o swear_v oblige_v himself_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la to_o manifest_a the_o truth_n in_o that_o which_o he_o be_v about_o to_o say_v whether_o it_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n past_a or_o present_a by_o a_o assertory_n or_o in_o a_o future_a matter_n by_o a_o promissory_a oath_n second_o that_o by_o that_o part_n of_o a_o oath_n promissory_a contain_v in_o the_o forementioned_a clause_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n as_o likewise_o by_o all_o other_o oath_n promissory_a the_o party_n swear_v be_v bind_v to_o endeavour_v for_o the_o future_a as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v by_o his_o deed_n to_o fulfil_v what_o he_o have_v swear_v in_o word_n and_o this_o sanderson_n in_o his_o second_o lecture_n have_v well_o assert_v as_o to_o a_o oath_n promissory_a viz._n that_o he_o who_o endeavour_v not_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v be_v guilty_a of_o perjury_n in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o in_o a_o assertory_n oath_n if_o i_o take_v the_o same_o with_o a_o wellcomposed_a mind_n and_o have_v give_v my_o testimony_n true_o i_o have_v discharge_v my_o duty_n and_o have_v my_o quietus_n from_o my_o conscience_n for_o the_o same_o but_o in_o a_o oath_n promissory_a and_o particular_o in_o the_o promissory_a part_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n i_o be_o not_o discharge_v by_o the_o sincerity_n of_o my_o intention_n in_o my_o promise_n i_o have_v engage_v myself_o to_o action_n and_o have_v launch_v myself_o into_o a_o sea_n of_o business_n from_o that_o time_n forward_o till_o the_o end_n of_o my_o life_n and_o as_o there_o be_v occasion_n and_o opportunity_n i_o be_o to_o do_v what_o in_o those_o clause_n i_o have_v promise_v to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n and_o thus_o the_o style_n of_o do_v run_v in_o number_n 30._o 2._o if_o a_o man_n swear_v a_o oath_n to_o bind_v his_o soul_n with_o a_o bond_n he_o shall_v do_v according_a to_o all_o that_o procee_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n three_o that_o those_o oath_n and_o all_o other_o be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o imposer_n for_o the_o oath_n be_v take_v that_o the_o imposer_n may_v be_v assure_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o person_n swear_v shall_v be_v effectual_o make_v good_a to_o he_o there_o will_v be_v no_o assurance_n thereof_o in_o
the_o least_o if_o the_o oath_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v otherwise_o than_o in_o the_o imposer_n sense_n and_o under_o this_o conclusion_n it_o may_v be_v proper_o add_v that_o where_o that_o sense_n be_v sufficient_o manifest_a in_o the_o word_n it_o be_v exact_o to_o be_v stand_v to_o as_o sanderson_n have_v well_o show_v in_o his_o second_o lecture_n of_o the_o aforesaid_a subject_n and_o where_o have_v show_v how_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o impose_v not_o on_o the_o oath_n we_o have_v take_v or_o any_o part_n thereof_o other_o sense_n than_o that_o which_o any_o other_o pious_a and_o prudent_a man_n and_o who_o be_v unconcern_v in_o the_o business_n be_v of_o a_o free_a judgement_n may_v easy_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o word_n themselves_o he_o say_v that_o we_o become_v without_o question_n guilty_a of_o the_o heinous_a crime_n of_o perjury_n if_o that_o mild_a interpretation_n which_o encourage_v we_o unto_o the_o oath_n chance_v to_o deceive_v we_o and_o in_o his_o 6_o lecture_n lecture_n 7._o he_o say_v as_o it_o be_v one_o kind_n of_o perjury_n to_o strain_v the_o word_n during_o the_o act_n of_o swear_v unto_o another_o sense_n than_o that_o wherein_o they_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o auditor_n so_o it_o be_v another_o kind_n of_o perjury_n have_v swear_v honest_o not_o to_o proceed_v sincere_o but_o to_o decline_v and_o elude_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o oath_n though_o the_o word_n be_v preserve_v with_o some_o new_a forge_a invention_n various_o turn_v and_o dress_v the_o word_n to_o cloak_v the_o guilt_n of_o their_o conscience_n as_o tacitus_n say_v of_o some_o and_o he_o conclude_v that_o section_n by_o say_v that_o where_o the_o word_n of_o a_o oath_n be_v so_o clear_a in_o themselves_o that_o among_o honest_a man_n there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n of_o their_o meaning_n the_o party_n swear_v be_v oblige_v in_o that_o sense_n which_o they_o apparent_o afford_v and_o may_v not_o either_o in_o swear_v or_o when_o he_o have_v swear_v stretch_v those_o word_n upon_o the_o last_o of_o his_o interest_n by_o any_o study_a interpretation_n there_o appear_v nothing_o more_o detestable_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o old_a civil_a law_n then_o fraud_n and_o trick_n and_o particular_o the_o destroy_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o a_o law_n by_o a_o cavil_v fraudulent_a interpretation_n that_o retain_v the_o word_n but_o confound_v the_o end_n for_o which_o the_o law_n be_v make_v and_o according_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o digest_v in_o fraudem_fw-la legis_fw-la facit_fw-la qui_fw-la salvis_fw-la verbis_fw-la legis_fw-la sententiam_fw-la ejus_fw-la circumvenit_fw-la but_o this_o in_o the_o case_n of_o a_o oath_n be_v more_o abominate_v and_o according_o cicero_n tell_v we_o that_o fraus_fw-la adstringit_fw-la non_fw-la dissolvit_fw-la perjurium_fw-la and_o if_o the_o civil_a law_n be_v afterward_o so_o provident_a for_o the_o honour_n of_o humane_a nature_n as_o to_o determine_v in_o the_o case_n of_o a_o unasked_a free_a gift_n that_o come_v in_o arbitrio_fw-la cujuscunque_fw-la sit_fw-la hoc_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la instituit_fw-la oportet_fw-la eum_fw-la vel_fw-la minime_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la prosilire_fw-la vel_fw-la cum_fw-la venire_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la properaverit_fw-la non_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la excogitatis_fw-la artibus_fw-la suum_fw-la propositum_fw-la defraudare_fw-la tantamque_fw-la indevotionem_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la quasi_fw-la legitimis_fw-la velamentis_fw-la prolegere_fw-la any_o one_o may_v judge_v how_o much_o it_o abhor_v any_o thing_n of_o fraud_n in_o the_o evade_n of_o the_o payment_n of_o a_o due_a subjection_n to_o sovereign_a power_n acknowledge_v by_o what_o the_o think_a heathen_n term_v sacramentum_fw-la as_o if_o the_o most_o eminent_a or_o only_a thing_n emphatical_o sacred_a and_o religious_o to_o be_v observe_v i_o shall_v not_o since_o the_o extermination_n of_o the_o jesuit_n doctrine_n of_o equivocate_a have_v think_v it_o worth_a while_n so_o much_o to_o dilate_v on_o this_o plain_a conclusion_n before_o the_o publish_n a_o pamphlet_n in_o our_o metropolis_n in_o the_o year_n 1680_o call_v a_o account_n of_o the_o new_a sheriff_n hold_v their_o office_n make_v public_a upon_o reason_n of_o conscience_n respect_v themselves_o and_o other_o in_o regard_n to_o the_o act_n for_o corporation_n and_o in_o which_o act_n though_o the_o lawgiver_n mean_v of_o the_o oath_n thereby_o impose_v be_v most_o apparent_o manifest_v out_o of_o the_o word_n yet_o the_o author_n of_o that_o casuistical_a pamphlet_n make_v it_o lawful_a to_o take_v the_o oath_n and_o subscribe_v the_o declaration_n and_o not_o in_o the_o literal_a strict_a construction_n but_o in_o a_o imaginary_a sense_n top_v upon_o the_o lawgiver_n and_o that_o nothing_o but_o a_o vitiate_a fancy_n or_o injudicious_a mind_n can_v imagine_v i_o be_v sorry_a to_o hear_v that_o that_o pamphlet_n be_v write_v by_o a_o nonconformist_a divine_a and_o that_o in_o a_o conjuncture_n when_o the_o magistrate_n of_o that_o city_n be_v so_o hot_a against_o the_o name_n of_o popery_n any_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o zealous_a for_o the_o thing_n call_v jesuitism_n and_o that_o any_o man_n by_o attempt_v to_o rivet_v equivocation_n into_o their_o model_n of_o protestancy_n shall_v at_o once_o endeavour_v to_o rob_v we_o of_o the_o energy_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o of_o the_o test_n itself_o and_o to_o make_v the_o sacredness_n of_o all_o oath_n whatsoever_o to_o evaporate_v let_v any_o sober_a person_n of_o the_o dissenter_n party_n but_o serious_o read_v that_o pamphlet_n so_o scandalous_a to_o protestancy_n and_o it_o can_v but_o give_v he_o the_o alarm_n of_o come_v out_o from_o among_o they_o for_o that_o he_o must_v do_v that_o will_v come_v out_o even_o from_o the_o jesuitick_a equivocation_n if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o church_n of_o england_n protestancy_n in_o that_o loyal_a city_n i_o may_v without_o unjust_a reflection_n say_v it_o that_o magistrate_n who_o be_v accessary_a to_o the_o erect_v that_o paper-monument_n to_o equivocation_n and_o to_o the_o try_v to_o help_v it_o to_o a_o jus_o divinum_fw-la and_o to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o pure_a religion_n and_o undefiled_a can_v bring_v little_a honour_n to_o our_o metropolis_n by_o call_v it_o a_o protestant_a city_n on_o its_o monument_n of_o stone_n as_o we_o find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n that_o all_o that_o see_v that_o inhuman_a butcher_a and_o quarter_a out_o into_o piece_n of_o the_o levite_n wife_n by_o her_o own_o husband_n cry_v out_o and_o say_v there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n do_v or_o see_v since_o the_o time_n that_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n until_o that_o day_n i_o believe_v it_o may_v be_v affirm_v that_o never_o in_o any_o protestant_a city_n in_o the_o world_n since_o the_o time_n that_o it_o be_v free_v from_o the_o egyptian_a servitude_n of_o the_o papal_a imposition_n be_v any_o such_o barbarous_a butcher_a of_o the_o obligation_n of_o a_o oath_n by_o equivocation_n in_o a_o print_a case_n send_v about_o the_o kingdom_n by_o the_o pretend_a espouser_n of_o protestancy_n ever_o do_v or_o see_v and_o according_a to_o the_o say_n that_o nisi_fw-la serpens_fw-la serpentem_fw-la comederit_fw-la non_fw-la fit_n draco_fw-it it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o the_o most_o superlative_a and_o dreadful_a outrage_a of_o oath_n can_v be_v compass_v but_o by_o the_o conscience_n of_o pretend_a protestant_n digest_v the_o old_a equivocation_n of_o the_o jesuit_n when_o i_o consider_v this_o therefore_o that_o the_o false_a protestant_a discusser_n of_o that_o case_n of_o conscience_n of_o the_o sheriff_n do_v determine_v that_o by_o take_v up_o arm_n against_o the_o king_n mention_v in_o the_o oath_n be_v to_o be_v mean_v against_o his_o rightful_a government_n and_o that_o the_o oath_n must_v be_v take_v in_o the_o sense_n or_o mean_v of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o both_o house_n that_o pass_v it_o and_o then_o make_v their_o meaning_n so_o opposite_a to_o their_o word_n and_o do_v recollect_v what_o be_v so_o clear_o lay_v down_o in_o my_o lord_n chancellor_n hatton_n treatise_n concern_v statute_n and_o the_o exposition_n of_o act_n of_o parliament_n viz._n that_o the_o assembly_n of_o parliament_n be_v end_v functi_fw-la sunt_fw-la officii_fw-la and_o that_o as_o to_o all_o of_o the_o low_a house_n who_o be_v by_o election_n their_o authority_n be_v return_v to_o the_o elector_n so_o clear_o that_o if_o they_o be_v altogether_o assemble_v again_o for_o interpretation_n by_o a_o voluntary_a meeting_n eorum_fw-la non_fw-la esset_fw-la interpretari_fw-la and_o that_o then_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o statute_n fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o sage_n of_o the_o law_n and_o when_o i_o consider_v that_o great_a caution_n of_o sanderson_n in_o his_o say_a book_n that_o where_o we_o depart_v from_o the_o word_n of_o a_o oath_n to_o the_o intent_n it_o must_v be_v well_o prove_v that_o
contention_n between_o the_o word_n heir_n and_o successor_n though_o with_o as_o little_a sense_n as_o be_v in_o sir_n w._n i_n fancy_n of_o treason_n whereby_o he_o will_v have_v set_v the_o assertory_n and_o the_o promissory_a clause_n in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n at_o variance_n nay_o the_o promissory_a clause_n at_o variance_n with_o itself_o there_o be_v a_o book_n write_v by_o a_o late_a lawyer_n call_v historical_a discourse_n of_o the_o uniformity_n of_o the_o government_n of_o england_n first_o print_v in_o the_o year_n 1647_o and_o reprint_v by_o some_o factious_a anti-papists_a since_o the_o epoch_n of_o our_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n of_o popery_n and_o with_o that_o former_a year_n in_o the_o title_n which_o be_v a_o ill_a ominous_a sign_n of_o the_o fatal_a time_n such_o person_n will_v have_v drive_v we_o back_o upon_o if_o they_o can_v where_o in_o p._n 279_o of_o the_o 2d_o part_v ill_a reflection_n be_v make_v on_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n which_o oath_n say_v the_o author_n do_v make_v much_o parley_n concern_v inheritance_n and_o heir_n but_o that_o they_o do_v not_o hold_v forth_o any_o such_o obligation_n to_o heir_n otherwise_o than_o as_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v successor_n and_o in_o that_o relation_n only_o his_o design_n be_v too_o plain_o express_v viz._n to_o strike_v at_o the_o right_n of_o our_o hereditary_a monarchy_n and_o to_o invite_v parliament_n to_o interlope_v in_o control_a the_o succession_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o he_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n he_o there_o insinuate_v do_v not_o go_v down_o well_o with_o those_o that_o do_v pretend_v to_o prerogative_n aid_v by_o the_o act_n of_o recognition_n make_v to_o king_n james_n and_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o allegiance_n and_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o i_o hope_v it_o never_o will_v and_o it_o be_v pity_n but_o a_o book_n that_o in_o so_o many_o place_n of_o it_o impeach_v the_o old_a know_a right_n of_o the_o crown_n shall_v in_o this_o conjuncture_n of_o loyalty_n find_v some_o person_n at_o leisure_n ex_fw-la professo_fw-la to_o make_v animadversion_n on_o it_o and_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o the_o author_n do_v in_o the_o vehicle_n of_o somewhat_o like_o wit_n and_o his_o affectation_n of_o which_o be_v by_o people_n of_o middling_a capacity_n who_o general_o make_v the_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n judge_v to_o be_v wit_n dispense_v his_o poison_n yet_o as_o to_o the_o signification_n of_o heir_n and_o successor_n he_o have_v before_o in_o his_o first_o part_n save_v any_o one_o the_o labour_n of_o show_v their_o identity_n for_o there_o in_o p._n 109_o and_o in_o his_o chapter_n of_o the_o law_n of_o property_n of_o land_n and_o good_n under_o the_o saxon_n he_o quote_v tacitus_n about_o some_o of_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o german_n which_o he_o judge_v remain_v here_o with_o they_o and_o which_o show_v that_o heir_n and_o successor_n pass_v then_o as_o current_a coin_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o tacitus_n haeredes_fw-la &_o successores_fw-la cuique_fw-la liberi_fw-la &_o nullum_fw-la est_fw-la testamentum_fw-la and_o thus_o english_v by_o that_o author_n viz._n the_o heir_n and_o successor_n to_o every_o one_o be_v his_o child_n and_o there_o be_v no_o testamentary_a power_n to_o disherit_v or_o alter_v the_o course_n of_o descent_n which_o by_o custom_n or_o law_n be_v settle_v and_o as_o be_v show_v the_o term_n of_o lawful_a annex_v to_o successor_n have_v nail_v the_o canon_n of_o that_o sophism_n and_o expose_v the_o ridiculousness_n of_o any_o cavil_v or_o calumnious_a interpretation_n about_o heir_n and_o successor_n though_o yet_o without_o the_o interposal_n of_o the_o word_n lawful_a the_o plain_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n heir_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o oath_n will_v clear_o enough_o have_v oblige_v we_o to_o the_o same_o person_n we_o say_v that_o id_fw-la possumus_fw-la quod_fw-la jure_fw-la possumus_fw-la and_o none_o be_v to_o be_v construe_v heir_n or_o successor_n but_o such_o who_o be_v so_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o law_n and_o with_o reference_n to_o proximity_n of_o blood_n i._n e._n they_o who_o be_v mean_v for_o such_o by_o the_o law_n in_o the_o due_a course_n of_o their_o descent_n but_o i_o hope_v that_o england_n happy_a future_a state_n will_v so_o far_o influence_n loyalty_n as_o to_o incline_v all_o conscientious_a protestant_n to_o leave_v of_o all_o senseless_a cavil_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o plain_a word_n in_o those_o oath_n and_o to_o agree_v to_o employ_v their_o most_o serious_a and_o constant_a thought_n about_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o moral_a office_n that_o relate_v to_o their_o bear_n true_a faith_n and_o allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n and_o other_o very_a important_a matter_n in_o the_o promissory_a clause_n most_o clear_o express_v in_o order_n to_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o allegiance_n and_o the_o duty_n of_o loyalty_n viz._n defend_v he_o and_o they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o our_o power_n against_o all_o conspiracy_n that_o shall_v be_v make_v against_o his_o or_o their_o person_n their_o crown_n and_o dignity_n as_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n run_v and_o to_o our_o assist_v and_o defend_v to_o our_o power_n all_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n preeminence_n and_o authority_n grant_v or_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n highness_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n there_o be_v no_o unweighed_a and_o idle_a word_n in_o the_o promissory_a clause_n and_o we_o be_v to_o make_v it_o our_o business_n with_o the_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n to_o consider_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o and_o to_o retain_v it_o in_o our_o memory_n and_o mens_fw-la not_o do_v which_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o ebb_n of_o loyalty_n in_o some_o conjuncture_n according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o man_n intellectual_a talent_n and_o particular_o the_o talon_n of_o understanding_n beyond_o other_o man_n the_o law_n natural_a and_o positive_a and_o the_o lex_fw-la terrae_fw-la some_o be_v beyond_o other_o moral_o bind_v to_o defend_v the_o particular_a momentous_a point_n relate_v to_o all_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n preeminence_n grant_v or_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n and_o therefore_o a_o disloyal_a divine_a and_o a_o disloyal_a lawyer_n be_v thing_n that_o do_v particular_o hear_v very_o ill_o but_o as_o there_o be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o moral_a office_n express_v in_o these_o oath_n sufficient_o plain_a and_o obvious_a to_o vulgar_a capacity_n and_o which_o with_o their_o native_a light_n do_v strike_v common_a understanding_n so_o the_o extent_n of_o these_o office_n ought_v to_o employ_v the_o meditation_n of_o all_o the_o taker_n of_o these_o oath_n and_o how_o low_a soever_o their_o talent_n lie_v they_o be_v to_o use_v all_o the_o mean_n they_o can_v and_o particular_o that_o of_o the_o consilium_fw-la peritorum_fw-la as_o any_o occasion_n shall_v offer_v itself_o for_o their_o defence_n of_o any_o of_o the_o privilege_n or_o preeminence_n belong_v to_o the_o crown_n our_o duty_n in_o this_o kind_n be_v very_o well_o express_v by_o sanderson_n in_o his_o three_o lecture_n where_o speak_v of_o the_o subject_n obligation_n by_o oath_n of_o this_o nature_n he_o say_v doubtless_o the_o subject_a to_o his_o power_n be_v oblige_v to_o defend_v all_o right_n which_o appear_v either_o by_o law_n or_o custom_n legitimate_a whether_o define_v by_o the_o write_a law_n or_o in_o force_n through_o the_o long_a use_n of_o time_n or_o prescription_n that_o be_v so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v know_v or_o may_v moral_o be_v know_v but_o he_o be_v not_o equal_o oblige_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o those_o which_o be_v controvert_v thus_o therefore_o as_o to_o any_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n or_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o crown_n that_o may_v seem_v doubtful_a the_o swearer_n be_v many_o time_n bind_v to_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n that_o it_o may_v be_v moral_o know_v to_o he_o as_o sanderson_n word_n be_v yet_o what_o i_o have_v urge_v in_o this_o six_o conclusion_n as_o obligatory_a to_o we_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o oath_n be_v sufficient_o plain_a and_o there_o be_v no_o occasion_n for_o employ_v a_o great_a genius_n and_o penetrate_a understanding_n and_o wit_n to_o discover_v that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o crown_n to_o be_v hereditary_a and_o that_o the_o taker_n of_o the_o oath_n be_v indissoluble_o bind_v to_o defend_v that_o right_n there_o be_v several_a explicatory_a notion_n of_o the_o word_n defend_v and_o its_o extent_n that_o often_o occur_v in_o the_o author_n that_o treat_v express_o of_o the_o ius_n protectitium_fw-la seu_fw-la defensorium_fw-la among_o who_o i_o account_v magerus_n de_fw-fr advocatiâ_fw-la armatâ_fw-la or_o of_o the_o right_n of_o protection_n give_v by_o sovereign_a power_n to_o be_v instar_fw-la
same_o purpose_n that_o internal_a communion_n be_v due_a always_o from_o all_o christian_n to_o all_o christian_n even_o to_o those_o with_o who_o we_o can_v communicate_v external_o in_o many_o thing_n whether_o opinion_n or_o practice_n but_o external_a communion_n may_v sometime_o be_v suspend_v more_o or_o less_o etc._n etc._n and_o he_o do_v afterward_o in_o p._n 18_o assert_v that_o christian_a communion_n imply_v not_o a_o unity_n in_o all_o opinion_n and_o show_v that_o the_o roman_a and_o african_a church_n hold_v good_a communion_n one_o with_o another_o while_o they_o differ_v both_o in_o judgement_n and_o practice_n about_o rebaptisation_n as_o for_o any_o project_v universal_a unity_n of_o opinion_n i_o look_v on_o it_o to_o be_v as_o impracticable_a as_o our_o level_a republican_n eqval_a division_n of_o land_n in_o the_o late_a time_n by_o their_o wild_a agrarian_a law_n for_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o next_o child_n will_v necessary_o break_v that_o their_o model_n and_o the_o same_o fate_n may_v be_v expect_v to_o happen_v the_o same_o way_n to_o this_o model_n of_o unity_n of_o opinion_n or_o perhaps_o by_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o next_o hour_n but_o this_o internal_a communion_n be_v a_o thing_n most_o possible_a and_o our_o duty_n though_o without_o hope_n of_o unity_n in_o all_o religionary_a opinion_n to_o ensue_v thereby_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o great_a primate_n if_o then_o we_o be_v moral_o bind_v to_o have_v this_o internal_a communion_n with_o all_o foreign_a roman_a catholic_n prince_n and_o their_o subject_n as_o before_o describe_v how_o can_v we_o without_o horror_n think_v of_o the_o exclude_v any_o heir_n to_o the_o crown_n for_o fear_n of_o his_o believe_v the_o same_o religionary_a notion_n that_o they_o do_v from_o the_o catholic_n communion_n and_o of_o exclude_v he_o from_o his_o birthright_n on_o such_o a_o account_n who_o we_o must_v always_o have_v this_o internal_a communion_n with_o and_o rejoice_v in_o his_o good_a success_n and_o condole_v with_o he_o in_o his_o ill_n and_o to_o hold_v a_o external_a communion_n with_o he_o and_o any_o church_n he_o be_v of_o in_o votis_fw-la in_o our_o desire_n and_o to_o endeavour_v it_o by_o all_o mean_n that_o be_v in_o our_o power_n do_v any_o endeavour_n it_o who_o will_v by_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o birthright_n on_o that_o account_n and_o hold_v the_o same_o tenet_n with_o papist_n of_o dominium_fw-la fundatur_fw-la in_o gratiâ_fw-la give_v he_o such_o a_o just_a cause_n of_o scandal_n as_o without_o the_o divine_a spirit_n assist_v he_o may_v endanger_v his_o withdraw_n from_o the_o whole_a christian_a communion_n and_o though_o the_o honest_a heathen_a can_v tell_v we_o that_o cavendum_fw-la est_fw-la ne_fw-la poena_fw-la major_a sit_fw-la quam_fw-la culpa_fw-la and_o all_o casuist_n agree_v that_o poena_n non_fw-la debet_fw-la excedere_fw-la delictum_fw-la and_o though_o magna_fw-la charta_fw-la tell_v we_o that_o exit_fw-la quantitate_fw-la poenae_fw-la cognoscitur_fw-la quantitas_fw-la delicti_fw-la quia_fw-la poena_fw-la debet_fw-la esse_fw-la commensurabilis_fw-la delicto_fw-la yet_o attempt_v to_o punish_v he_o by_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o birthright_n of_o the_o crown_n when_o it_o can_v not_o be_v certain_a to_o we_o that_o he_o have_v commit_v any_o fault_n at_o all_o and_o when_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v commit_v none_o to_o many_o of_o our_o nominal_a protestant_n who_o thought_n and_o idea_n of_o christian_a communion_n be_v too_o narrow_a to_o extend_v not_o only_o to_o a_o national_a church_n but_o to_o a_o parochial_a one_o this_o notion_n of_o the_o incomparable_a primate_n for_o who_o august_n charity_n one_o christian_a world_n of_o religionary_a difference_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o overcome_v about_o internal_a communion_n will_v i_o believe_v seem_v new_a doctrine_n and_o duras_n sermo_n but_o if_o they_o will_v be_v true_a christian_n instead_o of_o be_v call_v true_a protestant_n this_o duty_n of_o internal_a communion_n from_o all_o christian_n to_o all_o christian_n must_v be_v practise_v by_o they_o and_o if_o this_o duty_n have_v a_o divine_a right_n for_o it_o as_o to_o the_o person_n of_o papist_n abroad_o it_o must_v be_v operative_a as_o to_o those_o here_o at_o home_n he_o who_o love_v not_o his_o brother_n who_o he_o have_v see_v i_o may_v ask_v how_o can_v he_o love_v either_o his_o god_n or_o his_o brother_n that_o he_o have_v not_o see_v the_o sham-war_n among_o any_o protestant_n and_o papist_n must_v not_o only_o be_v lest_o off_o but_o they_o must_v honour_v the_o person_n of_o one_o another_o and_o protestant_n be_v not_o only_o to_o forbear_v rob_v papist_n of_o their_o good_n on_o pretence_n of_o carry_v away_o their_o image_n and_o picture_n but_o be_v to_o honour_v the_o image_n of_o god_n shine_v in_o the_o life_n of_o or_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n dispense_v to_o any_o papist_n mr._n burrough_n in_o his_o irenicum_fw-la p._n 38._o say_v we_o account_v it_o tyranny_n and_o persecution_n in_o the_o bishop_n when_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v such_o as_o can_v not_o conform_v to_o their_o church_n discipline_n and_o ceremony_n to_o teach_v grammar_n or_o practice_v physic_n and_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o dependence_n between_o their_o error_n if_o you_o will_v call_v they_o so_o and_o these_o thing_n to_o deny_v the_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n the_o benefit_n of_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o man_n on_o such_o a_o pretence_n that_o they_o will_v abuse_v their_o liberty_n we_o think_v it_o be_v hard_a deal_n yea_o no_o less_o than_o a_o persecution_n suppose_v a_o man_n differ_v from_o his_o brethren_n in_o point_n of_o church_n discipline_n must_v not_o this_o man_n have_v a_o place_n in_o a_o army_n therefore_o though_o he_o see_v not_o the_o reason_n of_o such_o a_o discipline_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o god_n have_v endue_v he_o with_o a_o spirit_n of_o valour_n and_o he_o understand_v what_o military_a discipline_n mean_v etc._n etc._n ought_v not_o then_o person_n of_o his_o principle_n to_o revere_a the_o heroical_a endowment_n of_o a_o heir_n to_o the_o crown_n which_o do_v much_o preponderate_a as_o to_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o be_v and_o well-being_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o suppose_a orthodoxy_n in_o some_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o be_v show_v out_o of_o mr._n nigh_o king_n james_n have_v great_a talent_n in_o polemical_a divinity_n to_o prove_v by_o word_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n but_o will_v not_o these_o latter_a endowment_n necessary_o prevent_v the_o pope_n being_n antichrist_n in_o deed_n if_o he_o be_v incline_v to_o hurt_v we_o by_o show_v himself_o such_o aim_n in_o his_o puritanismus_fw-la anglicanus_n give_v this_o as_o the_o chief_a reason_n why_o the_o puritan_n hold_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o antichrist_n viz._n for_o that_o he_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a ruler_n do_v arrogate_v and_o exercise_v the_o chief_a power_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o do_v any_o one_o fear_n that_o he_o can_v exercise_v such_o power_n over_o a_o prince_n of_o these_o endowment_n and_o i_o may_v add_v have_v not_o many_o factious_a and_o republican_n nominal_a protestant_n here_o complete_v that_o figure_n of_o antichrist_n how_o many_o virtue_n must_v any_o indifferent_a man_n overlook_v in_o this_o pope_n who_o think_v he_o will_v outrage_v our_o civil_a government_n and_o how_o many_o vice_n must_v he_o wink_v at_o in_o such_o person_n who_o think_v they_o will_v not_o do_v it_o and_o by_o virtue_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n have_v decide_v it_o that_o he_o be_v the_o better_a son_n who_o say_v he_o will_v not_o do_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n and_o do_v it_o may_v it_o not_o be_v say_v that_o those_o papist_n who_o say_n they_o will_v not_o take_v these_o oath_n and_o yet_o perform_v their_o natural_a allegiance_n be_v more_o loyal_a than_o such_o nominal_a protestant_n who_o have_v take_v the_o oath_n and_o observe_v they_o not_o as_o much_o a_o abhorrer_n as_o i_o be_o of_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n condemn_v by_o this_o pope_n i_o shall_v yet_o think_v myself_o bind_v by_o the_o moral_a office_n beforementioned_a out_o of_o ames_n not_o to_o charge_v the_o belief_n or_o practice_n of_o they_o on_o all_o person_n in_o that_o order_n for_o when_o i_o consider_v the_o devotional_a book_n of_o some_o jesuit_n write_v with_o such_o strong_a and_o lively_a expression_n of_o the_o practic_n part_n of_o religion_n as_o any_o person_n of_o candour_n will_v think_v to_o be_v found_v on_o a_o real_a deep_a sense_n of_o all_o moral_a office_n lie_v warm_a at_o their_o heart_n i_o account_v it_o impossible_a for_o they_o to_o have_v believe_v some_o of_o those_o tenet_n and_o as_o i_o once_o observe_v at_o the_o anatomy_n of_o a_o poor_a malefactor_n that_o his_o stomach_n
appear_v not_o able_a to_o contain_v above_o the_o quantity_n of_o a_o quart_n will_v easy_o have_v thence_o infer_v have_v i_o hear_v he_o accuse_v of_o be_v wont_n in_o his_o life-time_n to_o debauch_v by_o ingurgitate_v vast_a quantity_n of_o liquor_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o thing_n so_o shall_v i_o think_v it_o not_o possible_a that_o this_o sober_a party_n of_o the_o jesuit_n who_o be_v real_o devout_a can_v swallow_v such_o irreligionary_a principle_n as_o too_o many_o other_o of_o they_o have_v do_v we_o know_v that_o not_o many_o eminent_a popish_a writer_n but_o particular_o azorius_fw-la the_o jesuite_n have_v write_v against_o the_o jesuit_n doctrine_n of_o equivocation_n and_o mental_a reservation_n and_o crackanthorp_n and_o ames_n and_o other_o protestant_a writer_n in_o their_o write_n impeach_v that_o doctrine_n of_o the_o jesuit_n have_v quote_v azorius_fw-la as_o on_o their_o side_n in_o that_o point_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o many_o pious_a person_n of_o that_o order_n be_v glad_a of_o this_o pope_n have_v damn_v such_o tenet_n which_o they_o never_o do_v or_o can_v believe_v and_o i_o will_v now_o upon_o the_o pope_n have_v condemn_v they_o judge_v no_o particular_a papist_n too_o believe_v they_o till_o i_o find_v cause_n so_o to_o do_v and_o notwithstanding_o the_o hard_a usage_n our_o learned_a lord_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n book_n have_v from_o the_o author_n of_o the_o compendium_n say_v that_o the_o title_n of_o the_o book_n confute_v the_o whole_a because_o it_o mention_v the_o principle_n approve_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pernicious_a when_o real_o believe_v and_o practise_v i_o shall_v still_o think_v the_o pleonasm_n or_o exuberance_n of_o the_o charity_n in_o so_o qualify_a the_o danger_n of_o the_o tenet_n he_o confute_v to_o be_v worthy_a a_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o do_v think_v the_o like_a of_o the_o charity_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n express_v in_o his_o print_a sermon_n of_o the_o 5_o of_o november_n where_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o dissenter_n tend_v to_o sedition_n and_o rebellion_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o say_v if_o those_o doctrine_n be_v believe_v and_o practise_v they_o must_v necessary_o produce_v confusion_n among_o we_o and_o do_v think_v that_o if_o the_o papist_n can_v gain_v the_o point_n namely_o to_o be_v look_v on_o by_o protestant_n as_o not_o to_o believe_v several_a part_n of_o the_o tenet_n of_o popery_n that_o be_v irreligionary_a and_o particular_o that_o about_o the_o exterminium_fw-la of_o heretic_n enjoin_v by_o the_o lateran_n council_n to_o be_v not_o believe_v by_o they_o it_o will_v be_v a_o point_n very_o well_o gain_v and_o any_o one_o who_o can_v gain_v it_o for_o they_o will_v be_v a_o more_o useful_a friend_n to_o they_o than_o ever_o bellarmin_n be_v to_o give_v a_o man_n the_o lie_n be_v the_o great_a dishonour_n and_o therefore_o when_o any_o papist_n shall_v tell_v i_o that_o he_o believe_v not_o the_o lateran_n council_n as_o oblige_v or_o other_o tenet_n chargeable_a on_o the_o papacy_n i_o shall_v not_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o do_v but_o shall_v pass_v my_o judgement_n of_o charity_n that_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o same_o and_o shall_v account_v he_o still_o a_o roman_n catholic_n tho_o perhaps_o erroneous_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v a_o general_n council_n as_o i_o account_v luther_n a_o christian_a and_o owner_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bible_n though_o he_o erroneous_o deny_v the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o st._n james._n the_o learned_a author_n of_o the_o advocate_n of_o conscience_n liberty_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1673._o and_o say_v to_o be_v mr._n brown_n a_o franciscan_a in_o his_o 8_o chapter_n viz._n of_o roman_a catholic_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o practice_n or_o principle_n destructive_a to_o government_n and_o reproach_v the_o english_a and_o foreign_a protestant_n with_o such_o principle_n say_v be_v it_o from_o any_o of_o their_o book_n mean_v the_o book_n of_o the_o papist_n you_o have_v draw_v those_o wild_a maxim_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v of_o humane_a right_n that_o the_o people_n be_v above_o the_o king_n that_o the_o people_n can_v give_v power_n to_o the_o prince_n and_o take_v it_o away_o that_o if_o a_o king_n fail_v in_o perform_v his_o oath_n at_o coronation_n the_o people_n be_v loosen_v from_o their_o allegiance_n that_o if_o prince_n fall_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o people_n be_v loose_v from_o their_o subjection_n do_v not_o these_o doctrine_n proceed_v from_o wicliff_n waldenses_n and_o other_o sectary_n and_o then_o mention_v calvin_n for_o own_v such_o maxim_n say_v that_o calvin_n l._n 4._o c._n 3._o instit._n from_o his_o high_a consistory_n give_v this_o absolution_n to_o all_o oath_n of_o that_o nature_n quibuscunque_fw-la evangel●i_fw-la huius_fw-la lux_fw-la effulgeat_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la laqueis_fw-la juramentisque_fw-la absolvitur_fw-la but_o that_o loyal_a franciscan_a there_o happen_v to_o injure_v calvin_n by_o a_o false_a quotation_n which_o i_o believe_v he_o have_v take_v up_o on_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o romanist_n author_n of_o monarcho-machia_a or_o jerusalem_n and_o babel_n who_o have_v cite_v the_o four_o book_n of_o calvin_n institution_n for_o that_o purpose_n but_o very_o false_o for_o calvin_n in_o all_o that_o chapter_n have_v not_o a_o word_n of_o such_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n as_o subject_n take_v to_o their_o sovereign_n but_o treat_v only_o of_o monastic_a vow_n he_o say_v nunc_fw-la postquam_fw-la veritatis_fw-la notitiâ_fw-la sunt_fw-la illuminati_fw-la simul_fw-la christi_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la liberos_fw-la esse_fw-la dico_fw-la etc._n etc._n i._n e._n from_o those_o monkish_a unwarrantable_a vow_n that_o they_o have_v make_v and_o out_o of_o error_n and_o ignorance_n hold_v themselves_o oblige_v by_o but_o i_o doubt_v not_o if_o parson_n alias_o doleman_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o the_o prince_n have_v be_v show_v to_o this_o franciscan_a he_o will_v have_v answer_v to_o this_o effect_n viz._n these_o man_n and_o many_o roman_a catholic_n author_n by_o they_o cite_v hold_v those_o disloyal_a traitorous_a principle_n beforementioned_a but_o i_o fall_v will_v a_o sacrifice_n rather_o than_o hold_v such_o i_o honour_v the_o spirit_n of_o zeal_n against_o disloyalty_n that_o run_v through_o his_o book_n and_o in_o p._n 204_o 205_o 206_o 207_o 208._o he_o very_o learned_o endeavour_v to_o answer_v the_o objection_n about_o the_o lateran_n council_n and_o say_v thereupon_o what_o the_o matter_n will_v bear_v and_o he_o and_o many_o other_o roman_n catholic_n writer_n have_v disow_v the_o authority_n of_o that_o council_n as_o obligatory_a and_o therefore_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n will_v incline_v any_o one_o to_o think_v that_o such_o roman_a catholic_n will_v not_o disorder_v the_o world_n by_o it_o moreover_o some_o protestant_a writer_n have_v judge_v that_o council_n to_o be_v invalid_a and_o dr._n donne_n who_o be_v very_o well_o study_v in_o the_o learning_n that_o relate_v to_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o general_n council_n do_v particular_o in_o his_o pseudomartyr_n p._n 377_o 378_o 379_o 380._o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n to_o show_v the_o invalidity_n of_o that_o council_n and_o that_o it_o be_v never_o mean_v to_o oblige_v sovereign_a prince_n but_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o the_o prince_n do_v in_o p._n 228_o 229_o 230_o 231_o 232_o 233_o 234_o 235_o 236._o with_o much_o learning_n statuminate_v the_o authority_n of_o that_o council_n and_o assert_n it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o general_n one_o as_o the_o cardinal_n perron_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n have_v do_v yet_o what_o i_o have_v mention_v of_o that_o famous_a cardinal_n be_v not_o believe_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n found_v on_o that_o council_n for_o prince_n exterminate_v their_o heretical_a subject_n as_o always_o obligatory_a nor_o promote_a the_o practice_n thereof_o in_o france_n where_o the_o huguenot_n be_v then_o about_o a_o seven_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a people_n have_v justify_v the_o reasonableness_n of_o the_o charity_n of_o our_o bishop_n in_o qualify_a the_o danger_n of_o some_o papal_a principle_n with_o the_o restriction_n of_o their_o be_v real_o believe_v and_o practise_v and_o the_o same_o rule_n in_o my_o notion_n of_o their_o danger_n shall_v always_o guide_v i_o that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o the_o poison_n of_o such_o principle_n be_v real_o swallow_v it_o must_v then_o be_v pernicious_a the_o poison_n may_v lie_v in_o the_o box_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n or_o a_o general_n council_n and_o yet_o not_o poison_v the_o mind_n of_o pious_a catholic_n nor_o foul_a their_o finger_n i_o have_v find_v just_a cause_n so_o far_o to_o honour_v all_o the_o roman_a catholic_n of_o my_o
that_o i_o affirm_v therein_o we_o have_v oblige_v ourselves_o to_o by_o our_o oath_n be_v so_o incomparable_o assert_v in_o a_o long_a speech_n of_o that_o great_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n reginaldus_n belnensis_fw-la archbishop_n of_o bourge_n in_o france_n i_o shall_v refer_v any_o one_o to_o it_o as_o print_v in_o ●huanus_n the_o speech_n be_v speak_v in_o a_o famous_a assembly_n and_o on_o a_o great_a occasion_n for_o to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o quiet_a reception_n of_o harry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n while_o a_o protestant_n into_o the_o throne_n and_o it_o be_v frame_v with_o such_o profound_a thought_n of_o loyalty_n and_o with_o such_o extraordinary_a learning_n refer_v both_o to_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o to_o father_n and_o church_n history_n and_o civil_a and_o canon_n law_n and_o with_o such_o close_a and_o nervous_a argumentation_n to_o evince_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o allegiance_n due_a to_o prince_n and_o particular_o without_o any_o respect_n have_v to_o their_o religion_n that_o it_o may_v pass_v for_o one_o of_o the_o best_a bulwark_n of_o absolute_a loyalty_n i_o know_v of_o next_o to_o the_o 13_o of_o the_o roman_n and_o other_o thing_n contain_v in_o holy_a writ_n and_o because_o i_o think_v no_o serious_a christian_a who_o read_v ●t_a will_n ever_o find_v in_o his_o heart_n afterward_o to_o ridicule_n passive_a obedience_n or_o make_v ridiculous_a platform_n of_o conditional_a loyalty_n i_o do_v intend_v to_o translate_v and_o publish_v it_o moreover_o because_o there_o be_v in_o that_o speech_n one_o noble_a peculiar_a character_n of_o the_o moral_a office_n of_o loyalty_n wherein_o it_o be_v pity_n that_o the_o proverbial_a english_a good_a nature_n shall_v in_o any_o man_n come_v short_a of_o that_o of_o the_o french_a civility_n and_o any_o protestant_n loyalty_n of_o a_o roman-catholic_n i_o mean_v that_o arch-bishop_n honour_v the_o mind_n and_o soul_n of_o his_o prince_n who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o church_n and_o even_o then_o vindicate_v he_o from_o heresy_n and_o say_v that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v think_v a_o heretic_n and_o prop_v up_o his_o honourable_a thought_n of_o his_o prince_n with_o a_o quotation_n out_o of_o st._n austin_n viz._n that_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v among_o heretic_n who_o without_o pertinacy_n defend_v his_o opinion_n tho_o erroneous_a &c_n &c_n i_o think_v the_o hang_n up_o so_o great_a a_o picture_n in_o public_a view_n wherein_o that_o man_n of_o god_n do_v with_o such_o exquisite_a draught_n design_n and_o colour_n thus_o paint_v his_o prince_n character_n and_o that_o of_o his_o own_o loyalty_n to_o eternity_n may_v be_v various_o useful_a and_o the_o very_a sight_n of_o the_o great_a colour_n in_o which_o can_v methinks_v but_o raise_v the_o little_a one_o of_o blush_n in_o any_o nominal_a protestant_n who_o do_v with_o such_o foul_a and_o hard_a hand_n handle_v the_o religionary_a concernment_n of_o king_n who_o be_v nominal_a god_n and_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o danger_n of_o heterodoxy_n in_o subject_n and_o in_o prince_n i_o have_v mention_v it_o that_o there_o be_v less_o danger_n of_o any_o prince_n believe_v or_o practise_v what_o may_v favour_v the_o papal_a usurpation_n than_o of_o such_o belief_n or_o practice_n in_o a_o subject_a and_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o instance_n in_o many_o erroneous_a religionary_a tenet_n which_o as_o hold_v by_o party_n among_o subject_n may_v cause_v general_a apprehension_n of_o danger_n but_o from_o which_o as_o hold_v by_o a_o prince_n it_o will_v be_v ridiculous_a to_o fear_v any_o ill_a or_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o prince_n can_v imbibe_n the_o dregs_o of_o those_o tenet_n as_o they_o discriminate_a discontent_a party_n as_o for_o example_n how_o can_v any_o one_o fear_n that_o a_o prince_n by_o believe_v that_o personal_a reign_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n will_v hurt_v his_o own_o government_n or_o that_o a_o prince_n by_o ●eing_v a_o socinian_n ●ould_v hold_v the_o tenet_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o defensive_a war_n or_o that_o a_o prince_n who_o favour_v the_o order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n will_v approve_v of_o their_o te●ets_n of_o calumny_n and_o equivocation_n etc._n etc._n and_o several_a of_o their_o vile_a casuistical_a tenet_n or_o that_o any_o magistracy_n will_v permit_v some_o of_o their_o apology_n and_o particular_o that_o of_o guymenius_n to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o publish_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o country_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o be_v moral_o bind_v to_o make_v a_o great_a difference_n in_o our_o demeanour_n towards_o our_o prince_n when_o suppose_a to_o err_v in_o opinion_n about_o religion_n from_o the_o measure_v we_o be_v allow_v to_o take_v in_o relation_n to_o our_o ●ellow_a subject_n so_o err_v error_n be_v a_o part_n of_o humane_a frailty_n and_o subject_n be_v moral_o bind_v to_o conceal_v the_o frailty_n of_o their_o king_n and_o not_o to_o censure_v or_o publish_v they_o to_o their_o dishonour_n and_o be_v to_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o apologise_v for_o their_o prince_n on_o all_o occasion_n than_o for_o their_o parent_n s●_n peter_n in_o that_o verse_n where_o the_o duty_n of_o honour_v all_o man_n and_o love_a the_o brotherhood_n be_v mention_v subjoin_v a_o particular_a precept_n of_o honour_v the_o king._n we_o be_v never_o to_o think_v of_o the_o heart_n of_o king_n but_o as_o be_v in_o the_o h●nds_n of_o god_n nor_o of_o any_o mist_n of_o error_n that_o may_v be_v in_o their_o head_n without_o think_v of_o the_o ray_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n that_o like_o a_o glory_n surround_v they_o and_o which_o in_o the_o usual_a concourse_n of_o providence_n do_v dissipate_v all_o danger_n from_o any_o error_n within_o they_o though_o in_o man_n belief_n who_o be_v subject_n religionary_a error_n be_v often_o complicate_v with_o irreligionary_a one_o yet_o we_o be_v to_o think_v of_o the_o oil_n of_o the_o lord_n anoint_v as_o uppermost_a and_o appear_v above_o such_o latter_a error_n and_o suppress_v the_o fume_n of_o they_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o prince_n and_o be_v to_o fear_v no_o more_o harm_n from_o the_o person_n of_o our_o prince_n than_o from_o our_o guardian_n angel_n differ_v from_o we_o in_o many_o great_a religionary_a speculation_n and_o be_v to_o think_v with_o honour_n of_o our_o king_n as_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n to_o discern_v between_o good_a and_o bad_a religion_n and_o irreligion_n and_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n for_o any_o not_o to_o imitate_v the_o popish_a archbishop_n aforesaid_a in_o clear_v his_o prince_n though_o of_o another_o communion_n from_o pertinacy_n since_o such_o a_o moral_a defect_n be_v a_o humour_n of_o positiveness_n that_o of_o all_o man_n king_n be_v most_o natural_o free_v from_o and_o who_o become_a dissidence_n of_o their_o own_o understanding_n how_o great_a soever_o be_v conspicuous_a by_o the_o wear_n away_o so_o much_o of_o their_o life_n in_o hear_v the_o advice_n of_o their_o council_n and_o when_o ever_o passive_a obedience_n be_v call_v for_o by_o prince_n and_o must_v be_v ready_o pay_v as_o a_o due_a debt_n we_o be_v even_o then_o to_o strain_v our_o most_o improve_a thought_n to_o find_v a_o honourable_a interpretation_n of_o our_o prince_n action_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o some_o of_o the_o loyal_a nonconformist_n to_o the_o gallican_n church_n have_v do_v as_o appear_v by_o a_o great_a observation_n in_o their_o book_n call_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n a_o book_n that_o maimbourg_n in_o print_n have_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o best_a late_o publish_v by_o their_o party_n viz._n that_o their_o prince_n never_o make_v any_o great_a assault_n on_o the_o papal_a power_n but_o what_o cost_v their_o protestant_a subject_n dear_a this_o this_o be_v loyalty_n worthy_a the_o name_n of_o christian_a and_o after_o all_o if_o yet_o any_o man_n will_v make_v wanton_a supposition_n of_o the_o belief_n or_o practice_n of_o sovereign_n be_v never_o so_o contrary_a to_o religion_n let_v those_o know_v that_o a_o absolute_a and_o irrespective_a loyalty_n be_v that_o which_o by_o these_o oath_n they_o have_v oblige_v themselves_o to_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o attempt_v to_o exclude_v any_o heir_n of_o the_o crown_n from_o his_o birthright_n on_o any_o pretence_n of_o his_o religion_n or_o other_o pretence_n whatsoever_o since_o we_o must_v pay_v a_o absolute_a obedience_n and_o allegiance_n to_o he_o immediate_o on_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o crown_n to_o he_o and_o according_o as_o by_o these_o oath_n we_o have_v oblige_v ourselves_o to_o do_v have_v thus_o in_o these_o conclusion_n assert_v the_o obligation_n relate_v to_o our_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n as_o result_v from_o the_o plain_a and_o genuine_a sense_n of_o the_o
hereditary_a monarch_n he_o know_v that_o a_o popish_a parliament_n in_o england_n have_v show_v their_o abhorrence_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v somewhat_o like_o a_o excluder-general_n of_o king_n and_o a_o arbitrary_a one_o too_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n in_o the_o statute_n of_o 25_o h._n 8._o viz._n the_o pope_n contrary_a to_o the_o inviolable_a grant_n of_o jurisdiction_n by_o god_n immediate_o to_o emperor_n and_o king_n have_v presume_v to_o invest_v who_o shall_v please_v he_o to_o inherit_v in_o other_o man_n kingdom_n and_o dominion_n which_o we_o your_o loyal_a subject_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a abhor_v and_o detest_v and_o the_o practice_n at_o rome_n for_o king_n james_n exclusion_n have_v make_v deep_a impression_n in_o his_o thought_n as_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n of_o great_a read_n he_o can_v not_o but_o know_v particular_o the_o many_o anti-monarchical_a tenet_n that_o be_v publish_v by_o many_o popish_a commentator_n positive_a writer_n schoolman_n canonist_n and_o never_o censure_v by_o any_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la though_o yet_o several_a popish_a author_n who_o assert_v the_o power_n of_o king_n be_v so_o censure_v and_o particular_o bodin_n de_fw-fr republicâ_fw-la and_o he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o pope_n have_v require_v several_a crown_v head_n to_o swear_v fidelity_n to_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n and_o that_o particular_o the_o pope_n send_v hubertus_n to_o require_v william_n the_o conqueror●o_o ●o_z swear_v allegiance_n and_o fidelity_n to_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n and_o who_o magnanimous_o refuse_v so_o to_o do_v and_o that_o the_o papacy_n endeavour_v to_o root_v its_o power_n in_o the_o world_n by_o oblige_a man_n in_o their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n to_o any_o particular_a pope_n to_o swear_v the_o same_o likewise_o to_o his_o successor_n according_a to_o the_o common_a style_n in_o those_o oath_n viz._n fidelis_n &_o obediens_fw-la ero_fw-la domino_fw-la papae_fw-la etc._n etc._n &_o suis_fw-la successoribus_fw-la and_o that_o thus_o too_o the_o oath_n of_o all_o popish_a bishop_n at_o their_o consecration_n run_v and_o that_o the_o great_a austrian_a family_n have_v not_o more_o careful_o secure_v to_o itself_o the_o sceptre_n of_o the_o empire_n by_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n than_o the_o papacy_n have_v make_v provision_n of_o that_o king_n be_v be_v swear_v that_o he_o will_v from_o that_o time_n be_v a_o protector_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n according_a to_o those_o word_n in_o the_o oath_n as_o i_o find_v it_o set_v down_o in_o magerus_n viz._n ego_fw-la n._n rex_fw-la romanorum_fw-la futurus_n imperator_fw-la promitto_fw-la spondeo_fw-la &_o polliceor_fw-la atque_fw-la juro_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o leato_fw-la petro_n me_fw-it de_fw-fr caetero_fw-la protectorem_fw-la atque_fw-la desensorem_fw-la fore_fw-la summi_fw-la pontisicis_fw-la &_o sanctae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o have_v moreover_o consider_v the_o great_a fermentation_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o so_o many_o loyal_a people_n in_o england_n by_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v so_o reserve_v as_o she_o be_v in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o succession_n and_o which_o as_o dr._n matthew_n hulton_n archbishop_n of_o york_n mention_v in_o a_o memorable_a sermon_n he_o preach_v before_o she_o at_o white-hall_n give_v hope_n to_o foreigner_n to_o attempt_v fresh_a invasion_n and_o breed_v fear_n in_o many_o of_o her_o subject_n of_o a_o new_a conquest_n and_o who_o thereupon_o very_o loyal_o say_v then_o the_o only_a way_n in_o policy_n leave_v to_o quell_v those_o hope_n and_o assuage_v those_o fear_n be_v to_o establish_v the_o succession_n and_o at_o last_o intimate_v as_o far_o as_o he_o dare_v say_v my_o author_n the_o nearness_n of_o blood_n of_o our_o present_a sovereign_n he_o say_v plain_o that_o the_o expectation_n and_o presage_n of_o all_o writer_n go_v northward_o name_v without_o any_o circumlocution_n scotland_n there_o be_v a_o abstract_n of_o this_o loyal_a and_o learned_a sermon_n and_o which_o throughout_o point_v at_o the_o succession_n in_o the_o history_n of_o some_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n in_o the_o time_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1653_o and_o the_o fate_n of_o the_o sermon_n be_v such_o that_o though_o perhaps_o it_o tickle_v not_o the_o ear_n of_o that_o queen_n it_o so_o far_o touch_v her_o conscience_n that_o the_o historian_n say_v she_o open_v the_o window_n of_o her_o closet_n and_o give_v the_o archbishop_n thank_v for_o it_o no_o doubt_n but_o parson_n say_v in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n that_o he_o think_v the_o affair_n about_o it_o can_v not_o be_v end_v without_o some_o war_n do_v much_o heighten_v the_o popular_a fear_n of_o war_n happen_v thereupon_o and_o it_o be_v most_o probable_a the_o long_a fear_n of_o war_n in_o that_o fermentation_n do_v various_o weaken_v the_o kingdom_n nor_o be_v it_o a_o new_a thought_n for_o the_o long_a fear_n of_o war_n to_o be_v hold_v to_o bear_v some_o proportion_n to_o the_o mischief_n of_o war_n itself_o in_o obstruct_v trade_n and_o commerce_n insomuch_o that_o several_a writer_n of_o the_o regalia_z and_o fiscal_v matter_n among_o the_o tractatus_fw-la illustrium_fw-la have_v tell_v we_o that_o quando_fw-la timor_fw-la belli_fw-la idem_fw-la operatur_fw-la quod_fw-la ipsum_fw-la bellum_fw-la remissio_fw-la sit_fw-la conductoribus_fw-la i._n e._n of_o the_o revenue_n and_o have_v entitle_v they_o to_o defalcation_n we_o may_v imagine_v by_o the_o just_a effect_n of_o our_o late_a fermentation_n what_o the_o state_n of_o the_o body_n politic_a be_v in_o that_o namely_o like_o the_o state_n of_o long_a torment_a anguish_n in_o the_o body_n natural_a upon_o the_o prick_n of_o a_o artery_n and_o import_v often_o more_o trouble_v and_o danger_n than_o the_o cut_n of_o one_o and_o by_o the_o great_a triumphant_a flame_n of_o joy_n appear_v in_o the_o act_n of_o recognition_n in_o king_n james_n time_n and_o which_o appear_v in_o our_o statute-book_n as_o i_o may_v say_v l●ke_v a_o pyramid_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o zealous_a loyalty_n and_o great_a and_o high_a than_o any_o former_a act_n of_o that_o nature_n we_o may_v judge_v how_o overjoy_v all_o the_o loyal_a people_n of_o england_n be_v on_o his_o come_n to_o the_o crown_n and_o as_o pliny_n in_o his_o panegyric_n say_v of_o nerva_n adopt_v trajan_n it_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v have_v please_v all_o when_o it_o be_v do_v except_o it_o have_v please_v all_o before_o it_o be_v do_v the_o same_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o case_n of_o king_n james_n succession_n to_o the_o crown_n the_o very_a title_n of_o the_o act_n speak_v the_o triumph_n of_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n viz._n a_o recognition_n that_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n be_v lawful_o descend_v to_o king_n james_n his_o progeny_n and_o posterity_n there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o all_o the_o dreadful_a inconvenience_n of_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o succession_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o people_n of_o what_o be_v worse_o than_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n by_o wild_a horses_n i_o mean_v the_o rend_a their_o conscience_n by_o contrary_a oath_n about_o the_o succession_n as_o in_o harry_n the_o 8th_n time_n there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o the_o ●ears_n from_o the_o grow_a greatness_n of_o france_n and_o fear_n of_o any_o foreign_a fremuerunt_fw-la gentes_fw-la england_n be_v restore_v to_o itself_o and_o scotland_n add_v to_o it_o and_o though_o boccaline_a like_o a_o airy_a i●genioso_n in_o his_o politic_a touchstone_n make_v england_n weigh_v less_o on_o the_o throw_a scotland_n into_o the_o scale_n any_o one_o will_v find_v that_o in_o he_o but_o grave_a romancery_n who_o shall_v consider_v what_o with_o oracular_a wisdom_n another-guess_a statos-man_n than_o boccaline_a tell_v harry_n the_o four_o i_o mean_v d'ossat_fw-la in_o his_o long_a letter_n to_o he_o from_o rome_n book_n seven_o and_o anno_fw-la 1601._o where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n desist_v not_o to_o hope_v that_o his_o majesty_n may_v be_v persuade_v by_o reason_n of_o state_n to_o endeavour_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n and_o scotland_n may_v not_o be_v join_v in_o the_o person_n of_o one_o king_n consider_v the_o great_a mischief_n that_o the_o english_a alone_o have_v do_v to_o the_o french_a more_o than_o all_o other_o nation_n put_v together_o etc._n etc._n and_o indeed_o that_o england_n be_v at_o this_o day_n preserve_v not_o only_o from_o the_o danger_n of_o be_v overbalanced_a by_o france_n but_o from_o the_o loss_n of_o its_o ancient_a figure_n of_o balance_v the_o world_n must_v high_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n be_v fix_v in_o the_o line_n of_o king_n james_n and_o to_o scotland_n be_v throw_v into_o the_o scale_n as_o be_v say_v and_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v tell_v i_o by_o the_o way_n that_o the_o weight_n of_o scotland_n be_v prejudicial_a to_o loyalty_n in_o
in_o king_n james_n time_n for_o make_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n a_o praemuniment_n in_o our_o conscience_n against_o popular_a as_o well_o as_o papal_a usurpation_n i_o shall_v here_o call_v in_o testimonium_fw-la adversarii_fw-la i_o mean_v the_o publisher_n of_o cardinal_n perron_n long_a oration_n make_v in_o the_o chamber_n of_o the_o 3d_o estate_n or_o commonalty_n of_o france_n upon_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n exhibit_v in_o the_o general_n assembly_n of_o the_o three_o estate_n of_o that_o kingdom_n and_o in_o his_o long_a preface_n to_o which_o he_o call_v our_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o allegiance_n detestable_a but_o say_v that_o the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o 3d_o chamber_n do_v frame_v the_o form_n of_o a_o oath_n which_o they_o wish_v may_v be_v minister_v in_o that_o kingdom_n as_o that_o which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o allegiance_n in_o we_o whereby_o the_o same_o principal_a article_n be_v abjure_v namely_o that_o no_o french_a king_n can_v be_v depose_v for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o and_o that_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n be_v heretical_a and_o repugnant_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o this_o difference_n be_v find_v between_o the_o two_o oath_n that_o whereas_o the_o english_a one_o in_o one_o of_o the_o clause_n seem_v to_o exclude_v not_o only_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n over_o king_n but_o even_o of_o the_o commonwealth_n also_o yea_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v accompany_v even_o with_o that_o of_o the_o church_n that_o of_o france_n shoot_v only_o at_o the_o abnegation_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n the_o author_n however_o in_o that_o preface_n and_o which_o be_v permiss●_n superiorum_fw-la contrary_a to_o the_o loyal_a sentiment_n of_o the_o majority_n of_o that_o 3d_o chamber_n insert_v very_o impious_o and_o disloyal_o that_o kingly_a authority_n can_v come_v immediate_o from_o god_n to_o any_o man_n but_o by_o miracle_n and_o that_o all_o the_o king_n who_o we_o know_v do_v either_o rule_n by_o force_n of_o conquest_n and_o in_o that_o case_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n if_o it_o be_v usurp_v may_v be_v resume_v or_o by_o donation_n election_n marriage_n or_o succession_n of_o blood_n in_o which_o case_n king_n forfeit_v by_o not_o perform_v the_o condition_n under_o which_o either_o they_o or_o their_o first_o ancestor_n do_v enter_v whether_o they_o be_v express_v or_o necessary_o employ_v but_o neither_o that_o author_n nor_o any_o other_o roman_n catholic_n writer_n have_v write_v with_o great_a contempt_n of_o and_o spite_n against_o the_o power_n of_o king_n than_o some_o nominal_a protestant_a author_n have_v to_o the_o scandal_n of_o christianity_n do_v and_o that_o i_o may_v show_v how_o necessary_a it_o be_v that_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n shall_v be_v level_v at_o the_o outrageous_a principle_n of_o disloyalty_n in_o protestant_n as_o well_v as_o papist_n i_o shall_v conclude_v my_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n with_o a_o reference_n to_o a_o book_n of_o some_o vile_a nominal_a protestant_n who_o have_v according_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n expression_n aforesaid_a derive_v doctrine_n of_o sedition_n and_o rebellion_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v writer_n be_v i_o may_v add_v grow_v therein_o perhaps_o more_o learned_a than_o their_o master_n it_o be_v print_v in_o 8_o o_o beyond_o sea_n in_o the_o year_n 1556._o and_o call_v a_o short_a treatise_n of_o politic_a power_n and_o of_o the_o true_a obedience_n which_o subject_n owe_v to_o king_n and_o other_o civil_a governor_n with_o a_o exhortation_n to_o all_o true_a english_a man_n compile_v by_o d._n i._n p._n b._n r._n w._n who_o the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v i_o know_v not_o nor_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o initial_a letter_n of_o name_n but_o do_v judge_v it_o to_o be_v in_o principle_n of_o sedition_n and_o treason_n as_o bad_a as_o doleman_n of_o the_o succession_n or_o mariana_n and_o to_o have_v startle_v king_n philip_n and_o queen_n mary_n as_o much_o as_o the_o book_n of_o kill_v no_o murder_n do_v cromwell_n i_o never_o in_o the_o course_n of_o my_o view_v book_n see_v but_o one_o of_o they_o and_o the_o reader_n will_v quick_o see_v why_o no_o library_n dare_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o those_o prince_n harbour_n it_o it_o be_v there_o assert_v that_o the_o body_n of_o every_o state_n may_v redress_v and_o correct_v the_o vice_n of_o their_o governor_n and_o aught_o so_o to_o do_v and_o the_o book_n endeavour_n to_o prove_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o kill_a tyrant_n by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o prophane_v the_o book_n of_o god_n by_o cite_v for_o a_o desperate_a use_n some_o extraordinary_a act_n of_o private_a person_n there_o record_v and_o indeed_o a_o loyal_a man_n can_v read_v the_o book_n without_o horror_n and_o especial_o when_o he_o shall_v consider_v what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o this_o detestable_a book_n it_o help_v to_o provoke_v the_o fury_n of_o philip_n and_o mary_n to_o fly_v out_o into_o the_o arbitrary_a proclamation_n several_a month_n before_o her_o death_n for_o the_o declare_v of_o any_o one_o a_o rebel_n and_o be_v without_o delay_n execute_v by_o martial_a law_n with_o who_o that_o and_o other_o book_n of_o that_o nature_n print_v beyond_o sea_n shall_v here_o be_v find_v and_o another_o effect_n of_o the_o publication_n of_o that_o and_o those_o other_o book_n be_v to_o irritate_fw-la the_o government_n against_o those_o poor_a innocent_n who_o be_v here_o martyr_v and_o who_o sufficient_o abhor_v such_o treasonable_a book_n for_o this_o book_n be_v publish_v beyond_o sea_n and_o probable_o import_v here_o about_o two_o year_n before_o her_o death_n but_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o english_a exile_n then_o i_o judge_v that_o none_o of_o they_o have_v a_o hand_n therein_o i_o have_v observe_v many_o word_n and_o idiom_n and_o phrase_n there_o to_o have_v be_v scotish_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o king_n james_n and_o his_o minister_n have_v hear_v of_o this_o execrable_a book_n wherein_o some_o nominal_a protestant_n trumpet_v out_o their_o principle_n of_o real_a rebellion_n and_o no_o wonder_n then_o if_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v therefore_o frame_v with_o clause_n to_o secure_v the_o government_n from_o all_o irreligionary_a principle_n of_o protestant_n as_o well_v as_o papist_n it_o have_v be_v object_v in_o the_o second_o place_n against_o our_o be_v become_v bind_v to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n by_o virtue_n of_o those_o oath_n that_o it_o be_v by_o all_o casuist_n agree_v that_o among_o the_o tacit_fw-la condition_n that_o be_v presume_v to_o be_v in_o all_o oath_n and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v regard_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o be_v express_v rebus_fw-la sic_fw-la stantibus_fw-la be_v one_o and_o that_o that_o therefore_o as_o none_o of_o the_o king_n heir_n be_v then_o exclude_v from_o the_o privilege_n or_o right_n of_o his_o lineal_a succession_n by_o the_o legislative_a power_n so_o if_o thing_n thus_o stand_v with_o he_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o crown_n that_o be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o king_n decease_n the_o oath_n oblige_v to_o the_o payment_n of_o absolute_a and_o irrespective_a loyalty_n to_o he_o then_o and_o that_o thus_o when_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n be_v king_n and_o queen_n of_o this_o realm_n according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o some_o old_a oath_n they_o will_v be_v entitle_v to_o our_o allegiance_n and_o not_o otherwise_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n i_o shall_v say_v first_o that_o if_o we_o shall_v admit_v that_o which_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o rebus_fw-la sic_fw-la stantibus_fw-la be_v so_o to_o be_v apply_v in_o this_o case_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o the_o taker_n of_o these_o oath_n who_o be_v any_o member_n of_o the_o three_o estate_n in_o parliament_n be_v thereby_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o actual_o bind_v as_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o 7t●_o conclusion_n not_o to_o do_v any_o act_n there_o to_o exclude_v the_o succession_n according_a to_o proximity_n of_o blood_n and_o moreover_o any_o of_o the_o people_n who_o take_v these_o oath_n be_v thereby_o moral_o bind_v not_o to_o choose_v any_o to_o represent_v they_o in_o parliament_n from_o who_o they_o may_v fear_v their_o endeavour_v of_o such_o exclusion_n second_o premise_v that_o there_o be_v somewhat_o of_o irreverence_n in_o suppose_v that_o the_o legislative_a power_n will_v ever_o afterward_o make_v a_o solutio_fw-la conti●ui_fw-la as_o i_o call_v it_o in_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n yet_o it_o must_v be_v say_v that_o any_o suppose_a act_n of_o that_o kind_n will_v be_v null_a and_o void_a as_o the_o loyal_a and_o learned_a late_a writer_n of_o the_o succession_n have_v show_v and_o to_o who_o writer_n of_o that_o subject_a i_o refer_v and_o therefore_o our_o obligation_n to_o
philosophical_a axiom_n and_o such_o as_o non_fw-la entis_fw-la nulla_fw-la sunt_fw-la accidentia_fw-la but_o it_o be_v a_o solecism_n to_o deny_v that_o the_o taker_n of_o these_o oath_n have_v become_v bind_v at_o that_o time_n to_o the_o haeredes_fw-la viventis_fw-la who_o be_v then_o nondum_fw-la vivi_fw-la or_o that_o a_o lessee_n be_v bind_v at_o the_o perfect_a of_o his_o lease_n to_o pay_v his_o rent_n to_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o lessor_n though_o then_o not_o in_o nature_n if_o the_o style_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n can_v in_o a_o elective_a government_n and_o during_o the_o emperor_n life_n be_v ego_fw-la n._n rex_fw-la romanorum_fw-la futurus_fw-la imperator_fw-la be_v not_o the_o next_o heir_n of_o the_o crown_n in_o a_o hereditary_a monarchy_n to_o be_v style_v the_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a heir_n of_o the_o crown_n as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v i_o find_v not_o the_o term_n of_o apparent_a join_v to_o heir_n in_o any_o book_n of_o law_n or_o history_n but_o of_o our_o country_n but_o god_n make_v heir_n and_o especial_o the_o heir_n of_o crown_n the_o inherent_a birthright_n by_o proximity_n of_o blood_n be_v the_o id_fw-la ipsum_fw-la to_o be_v regard_v and_o if_o haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la qvatenus_n such_o must_v be_v a_o solecis●●_n according_a to_o sir_n w._n i_n insinuation_n than_o the_o quotation_n usual_o bring_v out_o of_o sir_n e._n coke_n by_o writer_n of_o this_o subject_a that_o the_o heir_n apparent_a be_v heir_n before_o the_o death_n of_o his_o ancestor_n must_v be_v a_o solecism_n too_o according_a to_o the_o know_a rule_n in_o logic_n of_o a_o quatenus_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v studious_o avoid_v the_o embarass_v the_o question_n with_o needless_a point_n of_o law_n and_o do_v consider_v that_o i●_n in_o court_n of_o law_n we_o be_v above_o the_o apices_fw-la verborum_fw-la we_o be_v much_o more_o above_o they_o in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n and_o here_o i_o must_v say_v it_o that_o if_o in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o prince_n savour_n and_o concession_n we_o be_v allow_v to_o go_v by_o the_o rule_n that_o in_o they_o exuberantior_fw-la fides_fw-la requiritur_fw-la and_o that_o therefore_o promissio_fw-la in_o dignitate_fw-la regali_fw-la factà_fw-la aequipollet_fw-la juramento_fw-la and_o that_o a_o sovereign_a prince_n appeal_v to_o about_o the_o right_n of_o subject_n be_v moral_o bind_v to_o proceed_v therein_o ut_fw-la deus_fw-la qui_fw-la soli_fw-la veritati_fw-la innititur_fw-la and_o according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o the_o judge_n delegated_a by_o sovereign_a prince_n solâ_fw-la rei_fw-la veritate_fw-la inspectâ_fw-la and_o throw_v off_o the_o formal_a rule_n and_o solemnity_n even_o of_o positive_a law_n themselves_o it_o may_v be_v well_o infer_v that_o the_o divine_a law_n of_o nature_n oblige_v we_o to_o gratitude_n we_o be_v moral_o bind_v in_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o life_n and_o right_n of_o prince_n though_o we_o have_v not_o be_v swear_v to_o they_o yet_o to_o regard_v they_o as_o god_n and_o not_o to_o obscure_v their_o right_n with_o formality_n and_o subtlety_n of_o law_n and_o much_o less_o with_o trick_n of_o word_n but_o especial_o in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o our_o oath_n to_o they_o to_o use_v the_o great_a simplicity_n therein_o that_o be_v suitable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n nature_n and_o christianity_n and_o to_o abhor_v what_o the_o lawyer_n call_v a_o subdola_fw-la juris_fw-la interpretatio_fw-la and_o what_o may_v be_v call_v as_o the_o expression_n be_v in_o job_n a_o darken_n of_o council_n by_o word_n without_o knowledge_n and_o a_o gloss_n that_o corrupt_v the_o text_n and_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o right_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o the_o secure_n of_o which_o and_o removing_z all_o doubt_n or_o strife_n about_o the_o same_o these_o oath_n be_v make_v and_o shall_v any_o one_o tell_v i_o of_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o say_n nemo_fw-la est_fw-la haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la in_o our_o common-law_n and_o that_o land_n be_v give_v to_o a._n for_o life_n and_o the_o remainder_n to_o the_o heir_n of_o b._n and_o that_o a._n die_v while_n b._n live_v who_o have_v at_o that_o time_n a_o son_n that_o son_n shall_v never_o have_v the_o land_n because_o of_o non_fw-la est_fw-la haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la but_o it_o shall_v go_v back_o to_o the_o donor_n if_o alive_a or_o if_o dead_a to_o his_o heir_n i_o will_v ask_v he_o if_o the_o donor_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o justice_n and_o equity_n by_o a_o certain_a future_a time_n to_o let_n the_o heir_n of_o b._n have_v the_o land_n and_o have_v voluntary_o swear_v that_o b_n heir_n shall_v then_o have_v the_o same_o whether_o the_o donor_n than_o can_v with_o a_o salvo_n to_o conscience_n keep_v the_o son_n or_o other_o heir_n from_o the_o same_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o non_fw-la est_fw-la haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la but_o we_o be_v to_o be_v tender_a how_o we_o compare_v the_o inheritance_n of_o private_a person_n with_o that_o of_o the_o crown_n which_o be_v of_o a_o high_a nature_n and_o without_o a_o metaphor_n differ_v from_o they_o toto_fw-la coelo_fw-la and_o be_v so_o much_o above_o they_o and_o how_o regardless_o be_v they_o then_o of_o the_o birthright_n of_o the_o old_a monarchy_n in_o the_o world_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o present_a glorious_a royal_a line_n that_o will_v not_o allow_v it_o the_o privilege_n of_o be_v plain_o understand_v as_o they_o do_v to_o private_a inheritance_n and_o as_o to_o which_o william_n the_o conqueror_n in_o that_o part_n of_o his_o charter_n to_o london_n be_v allow_v to_o speak_v intelligible_o enough_o viz._n and_o i_o will_v that_o i_o child_n be_v his_o fader_n eyer_n but_o i_o be_o weary_a of_o this_o wild-goose_n chase_v of_o the_o haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la among_o old_a book_n and_o my_o point_v back_o any_o one_o to_o my_o 3d_o and_o 5_o conclusion_n may_v save_v my_o labour_n of_o speak_v here_o much_o more_o of_o it_o it_o be_v sufficient_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o three_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o word_n of_o oath_n be_v to_o be_v take_v and_o where_o i_o mention_v ames_n say_v that_o they_o be_v regular_o to_o be_v take_v in_o that_o sense_n that_o the_o word_n have_v in_o the_o common_a use_n of_o man_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n we_o be_v well_o tell_v by_o vaughan_n in_o shepbard_n and_o gosnald_n case_n that_o be_v the_o pen_n of_o a_o statute_n be_v dubious_a long_a usage_n be_v a_o just_a medium_fw-la to_o expound_v it_o by_o for_o jus_o &_o norma_fw-la loquendi_fw-la be_v govern_v by_o usage_n and_o the_o meaning_n of_o thing_n speak_v or_o write_v must_v be_v as_o it_o have_v constant_o be_v receive_v to_o be_v by_o common_a acceptation_n but_o i_o have_v show_v the_o word_n heir_n to_o be_v no_o doubtful_a word_n and_o as_o i_o have_v mention_v it_o to_o be_v a_o word_n that_o the_o glory_n and_o power_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v express_v by_o i_o may_v add_v that_o our_o noble_a privilege_n as_o we_o be_v christian_n be_v so_o often_o represent_v in_o scripture_n by_o the_o word_n heir_n etc._n etc._n we_o be_v moral_o bind_v to_o guard_v the_o word_n from_o the_o assault_n of_o any_o new_a interpretation_n that_o will_v outrage_v it_o with_o doubt_n and_o ambiguity_n i_o have_v show_v that_o as_o our_o oath_n be_v part_n of_o a_o statute-law_n if_o there_o can_v be_v any_o doubt_n of_o it_o the_o judge_n be_v to_o interpret_v it_o and_o our_o ancestor_n be_v so_o far_o from_o trust_v private_a man_n to_o interpret_v statute_n that_o they_o have_v not_o allow_v the_o court_n christian_n judicial_o interpret_v the_o very_a statute_n that_o concern_v the_o thing_n there_o conusable_a and_o as_o some_o papist_n do_v vain_o sometime_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o by_o our_o religion_n damn_v all_o our_o popish_a ancestor_n it_o may_v here_o with_o truth_n be_v say_v that_o any_o by_o find_v out_o a_o new_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n heir_n do_v condemn_v the_o understanding_n of_o those_o and_o their_o moral_n in_o not_o observe_v the_o oath_n by_o the_o measure_n of_o that_o interpretation_n and_o i_o may_v as_o true_o say_v that_o we_o venture_v on_o damn_v ourselves_o by_o perjury_n if_o while_o we_o venture_v on_o a_o new_a sense_n of_o the_o oath_n both_o contrary_a to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o the_o imposer_n we_o do_v not_o particular_o take_v the_o oath_n with_o our_o protestation_n of_o that_o new_a sense_n and_o much_o more_o if_o reserve_v that_o new_a sense_n in_o our_o mind_n we_o shall_v further_o in_o one_o of_o these_o oath_n viz._n that_o of_o allegiance_n declare_v that_o we_o have_v swear_v every_o thing_n therein_o according_a to_o the_o plain_a and_o common_a sense_n and_o understanding_n of_o the_o same_o word_n without_o any_o equivocation_n or_o mental_a evasion_n or_o secret_a reservation_n